|
THE GREAT CONTROVERSY BETWEEN CHRIST and SATAN
This best selling book of over 10 million copies
deals with the history of this great conflict throughout the
ages--especially centering from the time of Christ and His disciples,
through all the centuries to the present day, as well as what Bible
prophecy predicts for the future. The writer, E. White, was almost
killed several times when writing this 1884 edition.
VOLUME FOUR OF THE SPIRIT OF PROPHECY.
THE GREAT CONTROVERSY between CHRIST AND SATAN
by E. White
First published by author in 1884.
This is a copy of the original.
NOTE: In order to save space, we have not followed the original page breaks. Therefore the original paging is noted by parenthesis (page #).
Table of Contents
CHAPTER 1
DESTRUCTION OF JERUSALEM
(Page #17)
"The days shall come upon thee, that thine enemies shall cast a trench
about thee, and compass thee round, and keep thee in on every side, and
shall lay thee even with the ground, and thy children within thee; and
they shall not leave in thee one stone upon another; because thou
knewest not the time of thy visitation." Luke 19:43,44.
From the crest of Olivet, Jesus looks upon Jerusalem.
Fair and peaceful is the scene spread out before him. In the midst of
gardens and vineyards and green slopes studded with pilgrims' tents,
rise the terraced hills, the stately palaces, and massive bulwarks of
Israel's capital. The daughter of Zion seems in her pride to say, "I
sit a queen, and shall see no sorrow;" as lovely now, and deeming
herself as secure in Heaven's favor, as when, ages before, the royal
minstrel sung, "Beautiful for situation, the joy of the whole earth, is
Mount Zion," "the city of the great King." Ps. 48:2. In full view are
the magnificent buildings of the temple. The rays of the setting sun
light up the snowy whiteness of its marble walls, and gleam from golden
gate and tower (18) and pinnacle. "The perfection of beauty" it
stands, the pride of the Jewish nation. What child of Israel could gaze
upon the scene without a thrill of joy and admiration! But far other
thoughts occupy the mind of Jesus. "When he was come near, he beheld
the city, and wept over it." Luke 19:41. Amid the universal rejoicing
of the triumphal entry, while palm branches wave, while glad hosannas
awake the echoes of the hills, and thousands of voices declare him
king, the world's Redeemer is overwhelmed with a sudden and mysterious
sorrow. He, the Son of God, the Promised One of Israel, whose power has
conquered death, and called its captives from the grave, is in tears,
not of ordinary grief, but of intense, irrepressible agony.
His tears were not for himself, though he well knew
whither his feet were tending. Before him lay Gethsemane. Not far
distant was the place of crucifixion. Upon the path which he was soon
to tread must fall the horror of great darkness as he should make his
soul an offering for sin. Yet it was not a contemplation of these
scenes that cast the shadow upon him in this hour of gladness. No
forebodings of his own superhuman anguish clouded that unselfish
spirit. He wept for the doomed thousands of Jerusalem, --because of the
blindness and impenitence of those whom he came to bless and save.
The history of a thousand years of privilege and
blessing, granted to the Jewish people, was unfolded to the eye of
Jesus. The Lord had made Zion his holy habitation. There prophets had
unsealed their rolls and uttered their warnings. There (19)
priests had waved their censers, and daily offered the blood of slain
lambs, pointing forward to the Lamb of God. There had Jehovah dwelt in
visible glory, in the shekinah above the mercy-seat. There rested the
base of that mystic ladder connecting earth with Heaven,--that ladder
upon which angels of God descended and ascended, and which opened to
the world the way into the holiest of all. Had Israel as a nation
preserved her allegiance to Heaven, Jerusalem would have stood forever,
the elect metropolis of God. But the history of that favored people was
a record of backsliding and rebellion. They had resisted Heaven's
grace, abused their privileges, slighted their opportunities.
Amid forgetfulness and apostasy, God had dealt with
Israel as a loving father deals with a rebellious son, admonishing,
warning, correcting, still saying in the tender anguish of a parent's
soul, How can I give thee up? When remonstrance, entreaty, and rebuke
had failed, God sent to his people the best gift of Heaven; nay, he
poured out to them all Heaven in that one gift.
For three years the Son of God knocked at the gate of
the impenitent city. He came to his vineyard seeking fruit. Israel had
been as a vine transplanted from Egypt into a genial soil. He dug about
his vine; he pruned and cherished it. He was unwearied in his efforts
to save this vine of his own planting. For three years the Lord of
light and glory had gone in and out among his people. He healed the
sick; he comforted the sorrowing; he raised the dead; he spoke pardon
and peace to the repentant. He gathered about him the weak and (20)
the weary, the helpless and the desponding, and extended to all,
without respect to age or character, the invitation of mercy: "Come
unto me, all ye that labor and are heavy-laden, and I will give you
rest." Matt. 11:28.
Regardless of indifference and contempt, he had
steadfastly pursued his ministry of love. No frown upon his brow
repelled the suppliant. Himself subjected to privation and reproach, he
had lived to scatter blessings in his path, to plead with men to accept
the gift of life. The waves of mercy, beaten back by the stubborn
heart, returned in a tide of untiring love. But Israel had turned from
her best friend and only helper. The pleadings of his love had been
despised, his counsels spurned, his warnings ridiculed.
The hour of grace and reprieve was fast passing; the
cup of God's long-deferred wrath was almost full. The cloud of wrath
that had been gathering through ages of apostasy and rebellion, was
about to burst upon a guilty people, and He who alone could save them
from their impending fate had been slighted, abused, rejected, and was
soon to be crucified. When Christ should hang on Calvary's cross,
Israel's day as a nation favored and blessed of God would be ended. The
loss of even one soul is a calamity in comparison with which the gain
of a world sinks into insignificance; but as Christ looked upon
Jerusalem, the doom of a whole city, a whole nation, was before him;
that city, that nation which had once been the chosen of God,--his
peculiar treasure.
Prophets had wept over the apostasy of Israel.
Jeremiah wished that his eyes were a fountain of tears, that he might
"weep day and night for the (21) slain of the daughter of his
people." What, then, was the grief of Him whose prophetic glance took
in, not years, but ages? He beholds the destroying angel hovering over
the ancient metropolis of patriarchs and prophets. From the ridge of
Olivet, the very spot afterward occupied by Titus and his army, he
looks across the valley upon the sacred courts and porticoes, and with
tear-blinded eyes he sees, in awful perspective, the walls surrounded
by alien armies. He hears the tread of the hosts mustering for battle.
He hears the voice of mothers and children crying for bread in the
besieged city. He sees her holy and beautiful house, her palaces and
towers, given to the flames, and where once they stood, only a heap of
smoldering ruins.
He looks down the ages, and sees the covenant people
scattered in every land, like wrecks on a desert shore. He sees in the
temporal retribution about to fall upon her children, but the first
draught from that cup of wrath which at the final Judgment she must
drain to its dregs. Divine pity, yearning love, finds utterance in the
mournful words: "O Jerusalem, Jerusalem, thou that killest the
prophets, and stonest them which are sent unto thee, how often would I
have gathered thy children together, even as a hen gathereth her
chickens under her wings, and ye would not!" Matt. 23:37. Oh that thou,
a nation favored above every other, hadst known the time of thy
visitation, and the things that belong unto thy peace! I have stayed
the angel of justice, I have called thee to repentance, but all in
vain. It is not merely servants, delegates, and prophets, whom thou
hast refused and (22) rejected, but the Holy One of Israel, thy
Redeemer. If thou art destroyed, thou art alone responsible. "Ye will
not come to me that ye might have life."
Christ saw in Jerusalem a symbol of a world hardened
in unbelief and rebellion, and rushing on to meet the retributive
judgments of God. The woes of a fallen race, pressing upon his soul,
forced from his lips that exceeding bitter cry. He saw the record of
sin traced in human misery, in tears and blood; his heart was moved
with infinite pity for the afflicted and suffering ones of earth; he
yearned to relieve all. But he knew that even his hand might not turn
back the incoming tide of human woe; few would seek their only source
of help. He was willing to suffer and to die to bring salvation within
their reach; but few would come to him that they might have life.
The Majesty of Heaven in tears! the Son of the
infinite God troubled in spirit, bowed down with anguish! The scene
filled all Heaven with wonder. That scene reveals to us the exceeding
sinfulness of sin; it shows how hard a task it is, even for infinite
power, to save the guilty from the consequences of transgressing the
law of God. Jesus, looking down to the last generation, saw the world
inclosed in a deception similar to that which caused the destruction of
Jerusalem. The great sin of the Jews was their rejection of Christ; the
great sin of the Christian world would be their rejection of the law of
God, the foundation of his government in Heaven and earth. The precepts
of Jehovah would be despised and set at naught. Millions in bondage to
sin, slaves of Satan, doomed to suffer the second death, would refuse
to listen to the words of truth in their day of visitation. Terrible
blindness! strange infatuation!
(23)
Two days before the passover, when Christ had for the last time
departed from the temple, after denouncing the hypocrisy of the Jewish
rulers, he again went out with his disciples to the Mount of Olives,
and seated himself with them upon a grassy slope overlooking the city.
Once more he gazed upon its walls, its towers and palaces. Once more he
beheld the temple in its dazzling splendor, a diadem of beauty crowning
the sacred mount.
A thousand years before had the psalmist magnified
God's favor to Israel in making her holy house his dwelling-place: "In
Salem is his tabernacle, and his dwelling-place in Zion." Ps. 76:2. "He
chose the tribe of Judah, the Mount Zion which he loved. And he built
his sanctuary like high palaces." Ps. 78:68,69. The first temple had
been erected during the most prosperous period of Israel's history.
Vast stores of treasure for this purpose had been collected by King
David, and the plans for its construction were made by divine
inspiration. Solomon, the wisest of Israel's monarchs, had completed
the work. This temple was the most magnificent building which the world
ever saw. Yet the Lord had declared by the prophet Haggai, concerning
the second temple, "The glory of this latter house shall be greater
than of the former." "I will shake all nations, and the Desire of all
nations shall come, and I will fill this house with glory, saith the
Lord of hosts." Hag. 2:9,7.
After the destruction of the temple by
Nebuchadnezzar, it was rebuilt about five hundred years before the
birth of Christ, by a people who from a life-long captivity had
returned to a wasted and almost (24) deserted country. There
were then among them aged men who had seen the glory of Solomon's
temple, and who wept at the foundation of the new building, that it
must be so inferior to the former. The feeling that prevailed is
forcibly described by the prophet: "Who is left among you that saw this
house in her first glory? and how do ye see it now? is it not in your
eyes in comparison of it as nothing?" Hag. 2:3. Then was given the
promise that the glory of this latter house should be greater than of
the former.
But the second temple had not equaled the first in
magnificence; nor was it hallowed by those visible tokens of the divine
presence which pertained to the first temple. There was no
manifestation of supernatural power to mark its dedication. No cloud of
glory was seen to fill the newly erected sanctuary. No fire from Heaven
descended to consume the sacrifice upon its altar. The shekinah no
longer abode between the cherubim in the most holy place; the ark, the
mercy-seat, and the tables of the testimony were not to be found
therein. No voice sounded from Heaven to make known to the inquiring
priest the will of Jehovah.
For centuries the Jews had vainly endeavored to show
wherein the promise of God, given by Haggai, had been fulfilled; yet
pride and unbelief blinded their minds to the true meaning of the
prophet's words. The second temple was not honored with the cloud of
Jehovah's glory, but with the living presence of One in whom dwelt the
fullness of the Godhead bodily,--who was God himself manifest in the
flesh. The "Desire of all nations" had indeed come to his (25)
temple when the Man of Nazareth taught and healed in the sacred courts.
In the presence of Christ, and in this only, did the second temple
exceed the first in glory. But Israel had put from her the proffered
gift of Heaven. With the humble Teacher who had that day passed out
from its golden gate, the glory had forever departed from the temple.
Already were fulfilled the Saviour's words, "Your house is left unto
you desolate." Matt. 23:38.
The disciples had been filled with awe and wonder at
Christ's prediction of the overthrow of the temple, and they desired to
understand more fully the meaning of his words. Wealth, labor, and
architectural skill had for more than forty years been freely expended
to enhance its splendors. Herod the Great had lavished upon it both
Roman wealth and Jewish treasure, and even the emperor of the world had
enriched it with his gifts. Massive blocks of white marble, of almost
fabulous size, forwarded from Rome for this purpose, formed a part of
its structure; and to these the disciples had called the attention of
their Master, saying, "See what manner of stones and what buildings are
here!" Mark 13:1.
To these words, Jesus made the solemn and startling
reply, "Verily I say unto you, There shall not be left here one stone
upon another, that shall not be thrown down." Matt. 24:2.
With the overthrow of Jerusalem the disciples
associated the events of Christ's personal coming in temporal glory to
take the throne of universal empire, to punish the impenitent Jews, and
to break from off the nation the Roman yoke. The Lord had (26)
told them that he would come the second time. Hence at the mention of
judgments upon Jerusalem, their minds revert to that coming, and as
they are gathered about the Saviour upon the Mount of Olives, they ask,
"When shall these things be? and what shall be the sign of thy coming,
and of the end of the world?" Matt. 24:3.
The future was mercifully veiled from the disciples.
Had they at that time fully comprehended the two awful facts,--the
Redeemer's sufferings and death and the destruction of their city and
temple,--they would have been paralyzed with horror. Christ presented
before them an outline of the prominent events to transpire before the
close of time. His words were not then fully understood; but their
meaning was to be unfolded as his people should need the instruction
therein given. The prophecy which he uttered was twofold in its
meaning: while foreshadowing the destruction of Jerusalem, it
prefigured also the terrors of the last great day.
Jesus declared to the listening disciples the
judgments that were to fall upon apostate Israel, and especially the
retributive vengeance that would come upon them for their rejection and
crucifixion of the Messiah. Unmistakable signs would precede the awful
climax. The dreaded hour would come suddenly and swiftly. And the
Saviour warned his followers: "When ye therefore shall see the
abomination of desolation, spoken of by Daniel the prophet, stand in
the holy place (whoso readeth let him understand), then let them which
be in Judea flee into the mountains." Matt. 24:15,16. When the
idolatrous standards of (27) the Romans should be set up in the
holy ground, which extended some furlongs outside the city walls, then
the followers of Christ were to find safety in flight. When the warning
sign should be seen, judgment was to follow so quickly that those who
would escape must make no delay. He who chanced to be upon the housetop
must not go down through his house into the street; but he must speed
his way from roof to roof until he reach the city wall, and be saved
"so as by fire." Those who were working in the fields or vineyards must
not take time to return for the outer garment laid aside while they
should be toiling in the heat of the day. They must not hesitate a
moment, lest they be involved in the general destruction.
In the reign of Herod, Jerusalem had not only been
greatly beautified, but by the erection of towers, walls, and
fortresses, added to the natural strength of its situation, it had been
rendered apparently impregnable. He who would at this time have
foretold publicly its destruction, would, like Noah in his day, have
been called a crazed alarmist. But Christ had said, "Heaven and earth
shall pass away, but my words shall not pass away." Matt. 24:35.
Because of her sins, wrath had been denounced against Jerusalem, and
her stubborn unbelief rendered her doom certain.
The Lord had declared by the prophet Micah: "Hear
this, I pray you, ye heads of the house of Jacob, and princes of the
house of Israel, that abhor judgment, and pervert all equity. They
build up Zion with blood, and Jerusalem with iniquity. The heads
thereof judge for reward, and the priests thereof (28) teach
for hire, and the prophets thereof divine for money; yet will they lean
upon the Lord, and say, Is not the Lord among us? none evil can come
upon us." Micah 3:9-11.
How exactly did these words describe the corrupt and
self-righteous inhabitants of Jerusalem! While claiming to rigidly
observe the law of God, they were transgressing all its principles.
They hated Christ because his purity and holiness revealed their
iniquity; and they accused him of being the cause of all the troubles
which had come upon them in consequence of their sins. Though they knew
him to be sinless, they had declared that his death was necessary to
their safety as a nation. "If we let him thus alone," said the Jewish
leaders, "all men will believe on him; and the Romans shall come and
take away both our place and nation." John 11:48. If Christ were
sacrificed, they might once more become a strong, united people. Thus
they reasoned, and they concurred in the decision of their high priest,
that it would be better for one man to die than for the whole nation to
perish.
Thus had the Jewish leaders "built up Zion with
blood, and Jerusalem with iniquity." And yet, while they slew their
Saviour because he reproved their sins, such was their
self-righteousness that they regarded themselves as God's favored
people, and expected the Lord to deliver them from their enemies.
"Therefore," continued the prophet, "shall Zion for your sake be plowed
as a field, and Jerusalem shall become heaps, and the mountain of the
house as the high places of the forest." Micah 3:12.
For forty years after the doom of Jerusalem had (29)
been pronounced by Christ himself, the Lord delayed his judgments upon
the city and the nation. Wonderful was the long-suffering of God toward
the rejecters of his gospel and the murderers of his Son. The parable
of the unfruitful tree represented God's dealings with the Jewish
nation. The command had gone forth. "Cut it down; why cumbereth it the
ground?" Luke 13:7, but divine mercy had spared it yet a little longer.
There were still many among the Jews who were ignorant of the character
and the work of Christ. And the children had not enjoyed the
opportunities or received the light which their parents had spurned.
Through the preaching of the apostles and their associates, God would
cause light to shine upon them; they could see how prophecy had been
fulfilled, not only in the birth and life of Christ, but in his death
and resurrection. The children were not condemned for the sins of the
parents; but when, with a knowledge of all the light given to their
parents, the children rejected the additional light granted to
themselves, they became partakers of the parents' sins, and filled up
the measure of their iniquity.
The long-suffering of God toward Jerusalem, only
confirmed the Jews in their stubborn impenitence. In their hatred and
cruelty toward the disciples of Jesus, they rejected the last offer of
mercy. Then God withdrew his protection from them, and removed his
restraining power from Satan and his angels, and the nation was left to
the control of the leader she had chosen. Her children had spurned the
grace of Christ, which would have enabled them to subdue (30)
their evil impulses, and now these became the conquerors. Satan aroused
the fiercest and most debased passions of the soul. Men did not reason;
they were beyond reason,--controlled by impulse and blind rage. They
became Satanic in their cruelty. In the family and in the nation, alike
among the highest and the lowest classes, there was suspicion, envy,
hatred, strife, rebellion, murder. There was no safety anywhere.
Friends and kindred betrayed one another. Parents slew their children,
and children their parents. The rulers of the people had no power to
rule themselves. Uncontrolled passions made them tyrants. The Jews had
accepted false testimony to condemn the innocent Son of God. Now false
accusations made their own lives uncertain. By their actions they had
long been saying, "Cause the Holy One of Israel to cease from before
us." Isa. 30:11. Now their desire was granted. The fear of God no
longer disturbed them. Satan was at the head of the nation, and the
highest civil and religious authorities were under his sway.
The leaders of the opposing factions at times united
to plunder and torture their wretched victims, and again they fell upon
each other's forces, and slaughtered without mercy. Even the sanctity
of the temple could not restrain their horrible ferocity. The
worshipers were stricken down before the altar, and the sanctuary was
polluted with the bodies of the slain. Yet in their blind and
blasphemous presumption the instigators of this hellish work publicly
declared that they had no fear that Jerusalem would be destroyed, for
it was God's own city. To establish (31) their power more
firmly, they bribed false prophets to proclaim, even when Roman legions
were besieging the temple, that the people were to wait for deliverance
from God. To the last, multitudes held fast to the belief that the Most
High would interpose for the defeat of their adversaries. But Israel
had spurned the divine protection, and now she had no defense. Unhappy
Jerusalem! rent by internal dissensions, the blood of her children,
slain by one another's hands, crimsoning her streets, while alien
armies beat down her fortifications and slew her men of war!
All the predictions given by Christ concerning the
destruction of Jerusalem were fulfilled to the letter. The Jews
experienced the truth of his words of warning, "With what measure ye
mete, it shall be measured to you again."
Signs
and wonders appeared, foreboding disaster and doom. A comet, resembling
a flaming sword, for a year hung over the city. An unnatural light was
seen hovering over the temple. Upon the clouds were pictured chariots
mustering for battle. Mysterious voices in the temple court uttered the
warning words, "Let us depart hence." The eastern gate of the inner
court, which was of brass, and so heavy that it was with difficulty
shut by a score of men, and having bolts fastened deep into the firm
pavement, was seen at midnight to be opened of its own accord.
For seven years a man continued to go up and down the
streets of Jerusalem, declaring the woes that were to come upon the
city. By day and by night he chanted the wild dirge, "A voice from the (32)
east; a voice from the west; a voice from the four winds; a voice
against Jerusalem and the temple; a voice against the bridegroom and
the bride; and a voice against all the people." This strange being was
imprisoned and scourged; but no complaint escaped his lips. To insult
and abuse he answered only, "Woe to Jerusalem! woe, woe to the
inhabitants thereof!" His warning cry ceased not until he was slain in
the siege he had foretold.
Not one Christian perished in the destruction of
Jerusalem. Christ had given his disciples warning, and all who believed
his words watched for the promised sign. After the Romans had
surrounded the city, they unexpectedly withdrew their forces, at a time
when everything seemed favorable for an immediate attack. In the
providence of God the promised signal was thus given to the waiting
Christians, and without a moment's delay they fled to a place of
safety,--the refuge city Pella, in the land of Perea, beyond Jordan.
Terrible were the calamities which fell upon
Jerusalem in the siege of the city by Titus. The last desperate assault
was made at the time of the passover, when millions of Jews had
assembled within its walls to celebrate the national festival. Their
stores of provision, which if carefully preserved would have been
sufficient to supply the inhabitants for years, had previously been
destroyed through the jealousy and revenge of the contending factions,
and now all the horrors of starvation were experienced. A measure of
wheat was sold for a talent. Great numbers of the people would steal
out at night, to appease their hunger by devouring herbs and wild
plants growing (33) outside the city walls, though they were
often detected, and punished with torture and death. Some would gnaw
the leather on their shields and sandals. The most inhuman tortures
were inflicted by those in power to force from the want-stricken people
the last scanty supplies which they might have concealed. And these
cruelties were not infrequently practiced by men who were themselves
well fed, and who were merely desirous of laying up a store of
provision for the future.
Thousands perished from famine and pestilence.
Natural affection seemed to have been utterly destroyed. Children would
be seen snatching the food from the mouths of their aged parents. The
question of the prophet, "Can a woman forget her sucking child?" Isa.
49:15, received the answer within the walls of that doomed city, "The
hands of the pitiful women have sodden their own children; they were
their meat in the destruction of the daughter of my people." Lam. 4:10.
The Roman leaders endeavored to strike terror to the
Jews, and thus cause them to surrender. Those prisoners who resisted
when taken, were scourged, tortured, and crucified before the wall of
the city. Hundreds were daily put to death in this manner, and the
dreadful work continued until, along the valley of Jehoshaphat and at
Calvary, crosses were erected in so great numbers that there was
scarcely room to move among them. So terribly was fulfilled the profane
prayer uttered forty years before, "His blood be on us, and on our
children." Matt. 27:25.
Titus would willingly have put an end to the fearful scene, and thus have spared Jerusalem the full (34)
measure of her doom. He was filled with horror as he saw the bodies of
the dead lying in heaps in the valleys. Like one entranced, he looked
from the crest of Olivet upon the magnificent temple, and gave command
that not one stone of it be touched. Before attempting to gain
possession of this stronghold, he made an earnest appeal to the Jewish
leaders not to force him to defile the sacred place with blood. If they
would come forth and fight in any other place, no Roman should violate
the sanctity of the temple. Josephus himself, in a most eloquent
appeal, entreated them to surrender, to save themselves, their city,
and their place of worship. But his words were answered with bitter
curses. Darts were hurled at him, their last human mediator, as he
stood pleading with them. The Jews had rejected the entreaties of the
Son of God, and now expostulation and entreaty only made them more
determined to resist to the last. In vain were the efforts of Titus to
save the temple; One greater than he had declared that not one stone
was to be left upon another.
The blind obstinacy of the Jewish leaders, and the
detestable crimes perpetrated within the besieged city, excited the
horror and indignation of the Romans, and Titus at last decided to take
the temple by storm. He determined, however, that if possible it should
be saved from destruction. But his commands were disregarded. After he
had retired at night to his tent, the Jews, sallying from the temple,
attacked the soldiers without. In the struggle, a firebrand was flung
by a soldier through an opening in the porch, and immediately the
chambers about the holy house were in a blaze. Titus rushed to the
place, (35) followed by his generals and legionaries, and
commanded the soldiers to quench the flames. His words were unheeded.
In their fury the soldiers hurled blazing brands into the chambers
adjoining the temple, and then with their swords they slaughtered in
great numbers those who had found shelter there. Blood flowed down the
temple steps like water. Thousands upon thousands of Jews perished.
Above the sound of battle were heard voices shouting, "Ichabod!"--the
glory is departed.
The fire had not reached the holy house itself when
Titus entered, and beholding its unsurpassed splendor, he was impelled
to a last effort for its preservation. But in his very presence, a
soldier thrust a lighted torch between the hinges of the door, and in
an instant the flames burst out within the sanctuary. As the red glare
revealed the walls of the holy places, glittering with gold, a frenzy
seized the soldiers. Goaded on by a desire for plunder, and filled with
rage by the resistance of the Jews, they were beyond control.
The lofty and massive structures that had crowned
Mount Moriah were in flames. The temple towers sent up columns of fire
and smoke. As the lurid tide rolled on, devouring everything before it,
the whole summit of the hill blazed like a volcano. Mingled with the
roar of the fire, the shouts of the soldiers, and the crash of falling
buildings, were heard the frantic, heart-rending cries of old and
young, priests and rulers. The very mountains seemed to give back the
echo. The awful glare of the conflagration lighted up the surrounding
country, and the people gathered upon the hills, and gazed in terror
upon the scene.
(36)
After the destruction of the temple, the whole city soon fell into the
hands of the Romans. The leaders of the Jews forsook their impregnable
towers, and Titus found them solitary. He gazed upon them with
amazement, and declared that God had given them into his hands; for no
engines, however powerful, could have prevailed against those
stupendous battlements. Both the city and the temple were razed to
their foundations, and the ground upon which the holy house had stood
was "plowed as a field." More than a million of the people were
slaughtered; the survivors were carried away as captives, sold as
slaves, dragged to Rome to grace the conqueror's triumph, thrown to
wild beasts in the amphitheaters, or scattered as homeless wanderers
throughout the earth.
The Jews had forged their own fetters; they had
loaded for themselves the cloud of vengeance. In the utter destruction
that befell them as a nation, and in all the woes that followed them in
their dispersion, they were but reaping the harvest which their own
hands had sown. Their sufferings are often represented as a punishment
visited upon them by the direct decree of God. This is a device by
which the great deceiver seeks to conceal his own work. By stubborn
rejection of divine love and mercy, the Jews had caused the protection
of God to be withdrawn from them, and Satan was permitted to rule them
according to his will. The horrible cruelties enacted in the
destruction of Jerusalem are a demonstration of Satan's vindictive
power over those who yield to his control.
We cannot know how much we owe to Christ for (37)
the peace and protection which we enjoy. It is the restraining power of
God that prevents mankind from passing fully under the control of
Satan. The disobedient and unthankful have great reason for gratitude
for God's mercy and long-suffering in holding in check the cruel,
malignant power of the evil one. But when men pass the limits of divine
forbearance, that restraint is removed. God does not stand toward the
sinner as an executioner of the sentence against transgression; but he
leaves the rejecters of his mercy to themselves, to reap that which
they have sown. Every ray of light rejected, every warning despised or
unheeded, every passion indulged, every transgression of the law of
God, is a seed sown, which yields its unfailing harvest. The Spirit of
God, persistently resisted, is at last withdrawn from the sinner, and
then there is left no power to control the evil passions of the soul,
and no protection from the malice and enmity of Satan. The destruction
of Jerusalem is a fearful and solemn warning to all who are trifling
with the offers of divine grace, and turning away the pleadings of
divine mercy. Never was given a more decisive testimony to God's hatred
of sin, and to the certain punishment that will fall upon the guilty.
The Saviour's prophecy concerning the visitation of
judgments upon Jerusalem is to have another fulfillment, of which that
terrible scene was but a faint shadow. The second advent of the Son of
God is foretold by lips which make no mistake: "Then shall all the
tribes of the earth mourn, and they shall see the Son of man coming in
the clouds of heaven, with power and great glory. And he shall send his
(38) angels with a great sound of a trumpet, and they shall
gather together his elect from the four winds, from one end of heaven
to the other." Matt. 24:30,31. Then shall they that obey not the gospel
be consumed with the spirit of his mouth, and destroyed with the
brightness of his coming. 2 Thess. 2:8.
Let men beware lest they neglect the lesson conveyed
to them in the words of Christ. He has declared that he will come the
second time, to gather his faithful ones to himself, and to take
vengeance on them that reject his mercy. As he warned his disciples of
Jerusalem's destruction, giving them a sign of the approaching ruin
that they might make their escape, so he has warned his people of the
day of final destruction, and given them signs of its approach, that
all who will may flee from the wrath to come. Those who behold the
promised signs are to "know that it is near, even at the door." "Watch
ye therefore," are his words of admonition. "If thou shalt not watch, I
will come on thee as a thief."
The world is no more ready now to credit the warning
than were the Jews in the days of our Saviour. Come when it may, the
end will come unawares to the ungodly. When life is going on in its
unvarying round; when men are absorbed in pleasure, in business, in
traffic, in money-making; when religious leaders are magnifying the
world's progress and enlightenment, and the people are lulled in a
false security,--then, as the midnight thief steals within the
unguarded dwelling, so shall sudden destruction come upon the careless
and ungodly, "and they shall not escape."
CHAPTER 2
PERSECUTION IN THE FIRST CENTURIES
(39)
When Jesus revealed to his disciples the fate of Jerusalem and the
scenes of the second advent, he foretold also the experience of his
people from the time when he should be taken from them, to his return
in power and glory for their deliverance. From Olivet the Saviour
beheld the storms about to fall upon the apostolic church, and,
penetrating deeper into the future, his eye discerned the fierce,
wasting tempests that were to beat upon his followers in the coming
ages of darkness and persecution. In a few brief utterances, of awful
significance, he foretold the portion which the rulers of this world
would mete out to the church of God. The followers of Christ must tread
the same path of humiliation, reproach, and suffering which their
Master trod. The enmity that burst forth against the world's Redeemer,
would be manifested against all who should believe on his name.
The history of the early church testified to the
fulfillment of the Saviour's words. The powers of earth and hell
arrayed themselves against Christ in the person of his followers.
Paganism foresaw that should the gospel triumph, her temples and altars
would be swept away; therefore she summoned her forces to destroy
Christianity. The fires of persecution (40) were kindled.
Christians were stripped of their possessions, and driven from their
homes. They "endured a great fight of afflictions." They "had trial of
cruel mockings and scourgings, yea, moreover of bonds and
imprisonment." Heb. 11:36. Great numbers sealed their testimony with
their blood. Noble and slave, rich and poor, learned and ignorant, were
alike slain without mercy.
Wherever
they sought refuge, the followers of Christ were hunted like beasts of
prey. They were forced to seek concealment in desolate and solitary
places. "Destitute, afflicted, tormented, of whom the world was not
worthy, they wandered in deserts, and in mountains, and in dens and
caves of the earth." Heb. 11:37,38. The subterranean excavations
connected with the city of Rome afforded shelter for thousands. Long
galleries had been tunneled through earth and rock to procure material
for the vast structures of the capital, and the dark and intricate
network of passages extended for miles beyond the walls. In these
underground retreats, many of the followers of Christ, when suspected
and proscribed, found a home; and here also they buried their dead.
When the Lifegiver shall awaken those who have fought the good fight,
many a martyr for Christ's sake will come forth from those gloomy
caverns.
Under the fiercest persecution, these witnesses for
Jesus kept their faith unsullied. Though deprived of every comfort,
shut away from the light of the sun, making their home in the dark but
friendly bosom of the earth, they uttered no complaint. With words of
faith, patience, and hope, they (41) encouraged one another to
endure privation and distress. The loss of every earthly blessing could
not force them to renounce their belief in Christ. Trials and
persecutions were but steps bringing them nearer their rest and their
reward.
They called to mind the words of their Master, that
when persecuted for Christ's sake they were to be exceeding glad; for
great would be their reward in Heaven; for so had the prophets been
persecuted before them. Like God's servants of old, they were
"tortured, not accepting deliverance, that they might obtain a better
resurrection." Heb. 11:35. They rejoiced that they were accounted
worthy to suffer for the truth, and songs of triumph ascended in the
midst of crackling flames. Looking upward by faith, they saw Christ and
angels leaning over the battlements of Heaven, gazing upon them with
the deepest interest, and regarding their steadfastness with approval.
A voice came down to them from the throne of God, "Be thou faithful
unto death, and I will give thee a crown of life." Rev. 2:10.
In vain were Satan's efforts to destroy the church of
Christ by violence. The great controversy in which the disciples of
Jesus yielded up their lives did not cease when these faithful
standard-bearers fell at their post. By defeat they conquered. God's
workmen were slain, but his work went steadily forward. The gospel
continued to spread, and the number of its adherents to increase. It
penetrated into regions that were inaccessible, even to the eagles of
Rome. Said a Christian, expostulating with the heathen rulers who were
urging forward the persecution: (42) "You may torment, afflict,
and vex us. Your wickedness puts our weakness to the test, but your
cruelty is of no avail. It is but a stronger invitation to bring others
to our persuasion. The more we are mowed down, the more we spring up
again. The blood of the Christians is seed.
Thousands were imprisoned and slain; but others
sprung up to fill their places. And those who were martyred for their
faith were secured to Christ, and accounted of him as conquerors. They
had fought the good fight, and they were to receive the crown of glory
when Christ should come. The sufferings which they endured brought
Christians nearer to one another and to their Redeemer. Their living
example and dying testimony were a constant witness for the truth; and,
where least expected, the subjects of Satan were leaving his service,
and enlisting under the banner of Christ.
Satan therefore laid his plans to war more
successfully against the government of God, by planting his banner in
the Christian church. If the followers of Christ could be deceived, and
led to displease God, then their strength, fortitude, and firmness
would fail, and they would fall an easy prey.
The great adversary now endeavored to gain by
artifice what he had failed to secure by force. Persecution ceased, and
in its stead were substituted the dangerous allurements of temporal
prosperity and worldly honor. Idolaters were led to receive a part of
the Christian faith, while they rejected other essential truths. They
professed to accept Jesus as the Son of God, and to believe in his
death and resurrection; but they had no conviction of sin, and (43)
felt no need of repentance or of a change of heart. With some
concessions on their part, they proposed that Christians should make
concessions, that all might unite on the platform of belief in Christ.
Now was the church in fearful peril. Prison, torture,
fire, and sword were blessings in comparison with this. Some of the
Christians stood firm, declaring that they could make no compromise.
Others reasoned that if they should yield or modify some features of
their faith, and unite with those who had accepted a part of
Christianity, it might be the means of their full conversion. That was
a time of deep anguish to the faithful followers of Christ. Under a
cloak of pretended Christianity, Satan was insinuating himself into the
church, to corrupt their faith, and turn their minds from the word of
truth.
At last the larger portion of the Christian company
lowered their standard, and a union was formed between Christianity and
paganism. Although the worshipers of idols professed to be converted,
and united with the church, they still clung to their idolatry, only
changing the objects of their worship to images of Jesus, and even of
Mary and the saints. The foul leaven of idolatry, thus introduced into
the church, continued its baleful work. Unsound doctrines,
superstitious rites, and idolatrous ceremonies were incorporated into
her faith and worship. As the followers of Christ united with
idolaters, the Christian religion became corrupted, and the church lost
her purity and power. There were some, however, who were not misled by
these delusions. They still maintained their fidelity to the Author of
truth, and worshiped God alone.
(44)
There have ever been two classes among those who profess to be
followers of Christ. While one class study the Saviour's life, and
earnestly seek to correct their defects and to conform to the Pattern,
the other class shun the plain, practical truths which expose their
errors. Even in her best estate, the church was not composed wholly of
the true, pure, and sincere. Our Saviour taught that those who
willfully indulge in sin are not to be received into the church; yet he
connected with himself men who were faulty in character, and granted
them the benefits of his teachings and example, that they might have an
opportunity to see and correct their errors. Among the twelve apostles
was a traitor. Judas was accepted, not because of his defects of
character, but notwithstanding them. He was connected with the
disciples, that, through the instructions and example of Christ, he
might learn what constitutes Christian character, and thus be led to
see his errors, to repent, and, by the aid of divine grace, to purify
his soul "in obeying the truth." But Judas did not walk in the light so
graciously permitted to shine upon him. By indulgence in sin, he
invited the temptations of Satan. His evil traits of character became
predominant. He yielded his mind to the control of the powers of
darkness, he became angry when his faults were reproved, and thus he
was led to commit the fearful crime of betraying his Master. In like
manner do all who cherish evil under a profession of godliness hate
those who disturb their peace by condemning their course of sin. When a
favorable opportunity is presented, they will, like Judas, betray those
who for their good have sought to reprove them.
(45)
The apostles encountered those in the church who professed godliness
while they were secretly cherishing iniquity. Ananias and Sapphira
acted the part of deceivers, pretending to make an entire sacrifice for
God, when they were covetously withholding a portion for themselves.
The Spirit of truth revealed to the apostles the real character of
these pretenders, and the judgments of God forever rid the church of
this foul blot upon its purity. This signal evidence of the discerning
Spirit of Christ in the church was a terror to hypocrites and
evil-doers. They could not long remain in connection with those who
were, in habit and disposition, constant representatives of Christ; and
as trials and persecution came upon his followers, those only who were
willing to forsake all for the truth's sake desired to become his
disciples. Thus, as long as persecution continued, the church remained
comparatively pure. But as it ceased, converts were added who were less
sincere and devoted, and the way was opened for Satan to obtain a
foothold.
But there is no union between the Prince of light and
the prince of darkness, and there can be no union between their
followers. When Christians consented to unite with those who were but
half converted from paganism, they entered upon a path which led
farther and farther from the truth. Satan exulted that he had succeeded
in deceiving so large a number of the followers of Christ. He then
brought his power to bear more fully upon them, and inspired them to
persecute those who remained true to God. None could so well understand
how to oppose the true Christian faith as could those who had once been
its (46) defenders; and these apostate Christians, uniting with
their half-pagan companions, directed their warfare against the most
essential features of the doctrines of Christ.
It required a desperate struggle for those who would
be faithful to stand firm against the deceptions and abominations which
were disguised in sacerdotal garments and introduced into the church.
The Bible was not accepted as the standard of faith. The doctrine of
religious freedom was termed heresy, and its upholders were hated and
proscribed.
After a long and severe conflict, the faithful few
decided to dissolve all union with the apostate church if she still
refused to free herself from falsehood and idolatry. They saw that
separation was an absolute necessity if they would obey the word of
God. They dared not tolerate errors fatal to their own souls, and set
an example which would imperil the faith of their children and
children's children. To secure peace and unity they were ready to make
any concession consistent with fidelity to God; but they felt that even
peace would be too dearly purchased at the sacrifice of principle. If
unity could be secured only by the compromise of truth and
righteousness, then let there be difference, and even war.
Well would it be for the church and the world if the
principles that actuated those steadfast souls were revived in the
hearts of God's professed people. There is an alarming indifference in
regard to the doctrines which are the pillars of the Christian faith.
The opinion is gaining ground that, after all, these are not of vital
importance. This degeneracy is strengthening the hands of the agents of
Satan, so (47) that false theories and fatal delusions which
the faithful in ages past imperiled their lives to resist and expose,
are now regarded with favor by thousands who claim to be followers of
Christ.
The early Christians were indeed a peculiar people.
Their blameless deportment and unswerving faith were a continual
reproof that disturbed the sinners's peace. Though few in numbers,
without wealth, position, or honorary titles, they were a terror to
evil-doers wherever their character and doctrines were known. Therefore
they were hated by the wicked, even as Abel was hated by the ungodly
Cain. For the same reason that Cain slew Abel did those who would throw
off the restraint of the Holy Spirit, put to death God's people. It was
for the same reason that the Jews rejected and crucified the
Saviour,--because the purity and holiness of his character was a
constant rebuke to their selfishness and corruption. From the days of
Christ until now, his faithful disciples have excited the hatred and
opposition of those who love and follow the ways of sin.
How, then, can the gospel be called a message of
peace? When Isaiah foretold the birth of the Messiah, he ascribed to
him the title, "Prince of peace." When angels announced to the
shepherds that Christ was born, they sung above the plains of
Bethlehem, "glory to God in the highest, and on earth peace, good will
toward men." Luke 2:14. There is a seeming contradiction between these
prophetic declarations and the words of Christ, "I came not to send
peace, but a sword." Matt. 10:34. But rightly understood, the two are
in perfect harmony. The gospel is a message of peace. (48)
Christianity is a system, which, received and obeyed, would spread
peace, harmony, and happiness throughout the earth. The religion of
Christ will unite in close brotherhood all who accept its teachings. It
was the mission of Jesus to reconcile man to God, and thus to his
fellow-man. But the world at large are under the control of Satan,
Christ's bitterest foe. The gospel presents to them principles of life
which are wholly at variance with their habits and desires, and they
rise in rebellion against it. They hate the purity which reveals and
condemns their sins, and they persecute and destroy those who would
urge upon them its just and holy claims. It is in this sense--because
the exalted truths it brings, occasion hatred and strife--that the
gospel is called a sword.
The mysterious providence which permits the righteous
to suffer persecution at the hand of the wicked, has been a cause of
great perplexity to many who are weak in faith. Some are even ready to
cast away their confidence in God because he suffers the basest of men
to prosper, while the best and purest are afflicted and tormented by
their cruel power. How, it is asked, can One who is just and merciful,
and who is also infinite in power, tolerate such injustice and
oppression? This is a question with which we have nothing to do. God
has given us sufficient evidence of his love, and we are not to doubt
his goodness because we cannot understand the workings of his
providence. Said the Saviour to his disciples, foreseeing the doubts
that would press upon their souls in days of trial and darkness,
"Remember the word that I said unto you, The servant is not greater
than his lord. If they have persecuted me, they will also (49)
persecute you." John 15:20. Jesus suffered for us more than any of his
followers can be made to suffer through the cruelty of wicked men.
Those who are called to endure torture and martyrdom, are but following
in the steps of God's dear Son.
"The Lord is not slack concerning his promise." 2
Peter 3:9. He does not forget or neglect his children; but he permits
the wicked to reveal their true character, that none who desire to do
his will may be deceived concerning them. Again, the righteous are
placed in the furnace of affliction, that they themselves may be
purified; that their example may convince others of the reality of
faith and godliness; and also that their consistent course may condemn
the ungodly and unbelieving.
God permits the wicked to prosper, and to reveal
their enmity against him, that when they shall have filled up the
measure of their iniquity, all may see his justice and mercy in their
utter destruction. The day of his vengeance hastens, when all the
transgressors of his law and the oppressors of his people will meet the
just recompense of their deeds; when every act of cruelty or oppression
toward God's faithful ones will be punished as though done to Christ
himself.
There is another and more important question that
should engage the attention of the churches of to-day. The apostle Paul
declares that "all that will live godly in Christ Jesus shall suffer
persecution." 2 Tim. 3:12. Why is it then, that persecution seems in a
great degree to slumber?--The only reason is, that the church has
conformed to the world's standard, and (50) therefore awakens
no opposition. The religion current in our day is not of the pure and
holy character which marked the Christian faith in the days of Christ
and his apostles. It is only because of the spirit of compromise with
sin, because the great truths of the word of God are so indifferently
regarded, because there is so little vital godliness in the church,
that Christianity is apparently so popular with the world. Let there be
a revival of the faith and power of the early church, and the spirit of
persecution will be revived, and the fires of persecution will be
rekindled.
CHAPTER 3
THE ROMAN CHURCH
(51)
The apostle Paul, in his second letter to the Thessalonians, foretold
the great apostasy which would result in the establishment of the papal
power. He declared that the day of Christ should not come, "except
there come a falling away first, and that man of sin be revealed, the
son of perdition; who opposeth and exalteth himself above all that is
called God, or that is worshiped; so that he as God sitteth in the
temple of God, showing himself that he is God." And furthermore, the
apostle warns his brethren that "the mystery of iniquity doth already
work." 2 Thess. 2:3,4,7. Even at that early date he saw, creeping into
the church, errors that would prepare the way for the development of
the papacy.
Little by little, at first in stealth and silence,
and then more openly as it increased in strength and gained control of
the minds of men, the mystery of iniquity carried forward its deceptive
and blasphemous work. Almost imperceptibly the customs of heathenism
found their way into the Christian church. The spirit of compromise and
conformity was restrained for a time by the fierce persecutions which
the church endured under paganism. But as persecution ceased, and
Christianity entered the courts (52) and palaces of kings, she
laid aside the humble simplicity of Christ and his apostles for the
pomp and pride of pagan priests and rulers; and in place of the
requirements of God, she substituted human theories and traditions. The
nominal conversion of Constantine, in the early part of the fourth
century, caused great rejoicing; and the world, arrayed in robes of
righteousness, walked into the church. Now the work of corruption
rapidly progressed. Paganism, while appearing to be vanquished, became
the conqueror. Her spirit controlled the church. Her doctrines,
ceremonies, and superstitions were incorporated into the faith and
worship of the professed followers of Christ.
This compromise between paganism and Christianity
resulted in the development of the man of sin foretold in prophecy as
opposing and exalting himself above God. That gigantic system of false
religion is a masterpiece of Satan's power,--a monument of his efforts
to seat himself upon the throne to rule the earth according to his
will.
Satan once endeavored to form a compromise with
Christ. He came to the Son of God in the wilderness of temptation, and,
showing him all the kingdoms of the world and the glory of them,
offered to give all into his hands if he would but acknowledge the
supremacy of the prince of darkness. Christ rebuked the presumptuous
tempter, and forced him to depart. But Satan meets with greater success
in presenting the same temptations to man. To secure worldly gains and
honors, the church was led to seek the favor and support of the great
men of earth, and having thus rejected Christ, she was (53) induced to yield allegiance to the representative of Satan,--the bishop of Rome.
It is one of the leading doctrines of Romanism that
the pope is the visible head of the universal church of Christ,
invested with supreme authority over bishops and pastors in all parts
of the world. More than this, the pope had arrogated the very titles of
Deity. He styles himself "Lord God the Pope," assumes infallibility,
and demands that all men pay him homage. Thus the same claim urged by
Satan in the wilderness of temptation is still urged by him through the
church of Rome, and vast numbers are ready to yield him homage.
But those who fear and reverence God meet this
Heaven-daring assumption as Christ met the solicitations of the wily
foe: "Thou shalt worship the Lord thy God, and him only shalt thou
serve." Luke 4:8. God has never given a hint in his word that he has
appointed any man to be the head of the church. The doctrine of papal
supremacy is directly opposed to the teachings of the Scriptures. The
pope can have no power over Christ's church except by usurpation.
Romanists have persisted in bringing against
Protestants the charge of heresy, and willful separation from the true
church. But these accusations apply rather to themselves. They are the
ones who laid down the banner of Christ, and departed from the faith
once delivered to the saints.
Satan well knew that the Holy Scriptures would enable
men to discern his deceptions and withstand his power. It was by the
word that even the Saviour of the world had resisted his attacks. At
every (54) assault, Christ presented the shield of eternal
truth, saying, "It is written." To every suggestion of the adversary he
opposed the wisdom and power of the word. In order for Satan to
maintain his sway over men, and establish the authority of the papal
usurper, he must keep them in ignorance of the Scriptures. The Bible
would exalt God, and place finite men in their true position; therefore
its sacred truths must be concealed and suppressed. This logic was
adopted by the Roman Church. For hundreds of years the circulation of
the Bible was prohibited. The people were forbidden to read it, or to
have it in their houses, and unprincipled priests and prelates
interpreted its teachings to sustain their pretensions. Thus the pope
came to be almost universally acknowledged as the vicegerent of God on
earth, endowed with supreme authority over Church and State.
The detector of error having been removed, Satan
worked according to his will. Prophecy had declared that the papacy was
to "think to change times and laws." Dan. 7:25. This work it was not
slow to attempt. To afford converts from heathenism a substitute for
the worship of idols, and thus to promote their nominal acceptance of
Christianity, the adoration of images and relics was gradually
introduced into the Christian worship. The decree of a general council
finally established this system of popish idolatry. To complete the
sacrilegious work, Rome presumed to expunge from the law of God the
second commandment, forbidding image worship, and to divide the tenth
commandment in order to preserve the number.
(55) The
spirit of concession to paganism opened the way for a still further
disregard of Heaven's authority. Satan tampered with the fourth
commandment also, and essayed to set aside the ancient Sabbath, the day
which God had blessed and sanctified, and in its stead to exalt the
festival observed by the heathen as "the venerable day of the sun."
This change was not at first attempted openly. In the first centuries
the true Sabbath had been kept by all Christians. They were jealous for
the honor of God, and, believing that his law is immutable, they
zealously guarded the sacredness of its precepts. But with great
subtlety, Satan worked through his agents to bring about his object.
That the attention of the people might be called to the Sunday, it was
made a festival in honor of the resurrection of Christ. Religious
services were held upon it; yet it was regarded as a day of recreation,
the Sabbath being still sacredly observed.
Constantine, while still a heathen, issued a decree
enjoining the general observance of Sunday as a public festival
throughout the Roman empire. After his conversion, he remained a
staunch advocate of Sunday, and his pagan edict was then enforced by
him in the interests of his new faith. But the honor shown this day was
not as yet sufficient to prevent Christians from regarding the true
Sabbath as the holy of the Lord. Another step must be taken; the false
Sabbath must be exalted to an equality with the true. A few years after
the issue of Constantine's decree, the bishop of Rome conferred on the
Sunday the title of Lord's day. Thus the people were gradually led to
regard it as possessing a degree of sacredness. Still the original
Sabbath was kept.
(56) The
arch-deceiver had not completed his work. He was resolved to gather the
Christian world under his banner, and to exercise his power through his
vicegerent, the proud pontiff who claimed to be the representative of
Christ. Through half-converted pagans, ambitious prelates, and
world-loving churchmen, he accomplished his purpose. Vast councils were
held, from time to time, in which the dignitaries of the church were
convened from all the world. In nearly every council the Sabbath which
God had instituted was pressed down a little lower, while the Sunday
was correspondingly exalted. Thus the pagan festival came finally to be
honored as a divine institution, while the Bible Sabbath was pronounced
a relic of Judaism, and its observers were declared to be accursed.
The great apostate had succeeded in exalting himself
"above all that is called God, or that is worshiped." He had dared to
change the only precept of the divine law that unmistakably points all
mankind to the true and living God. In the fourth commandment, God is
revealed as the Creator of the heavens and the earth, and is thereby
distinguished from all false gods. It was a memorial of the work of
creation that the seventh day was sanctified as a rest-day for man. It
was designed to keep the living God ever before the minds of men as the
source of being and the object of reverence and worship. Satan strives
to turn men from their allegiance to God, and from rendering obedience
to his law; therefore he directs his efforts especially against that
commandment which points to God as the Creator.
(57) Protestants
now urge that the resurrection of Christ on Sunday, made it the
Christian Sabbath. But Scripture evidence is lacking. No such honor was
given to the day by Christ or his apostles. The observance of Sunday as
a Christian institution has its origin in that "mystery of lawlessness"
which, even in Paul's day, had begun its work. Where and when did the
Lord adopt this child of the papacy? What valid reason can be given for
a change concerning which the Scriptures are silent?
In the sixth century the papacy had become firmly
established. Its seat of power was fixed in the imperial city, and the
bishop of Rome was declared to be the head over the entire church.
Paganism had given place to the papacy. The dragon had given to the
beast "his power, and his seat, and great authority." Rev. 13:2. And
now began the 1260 years of papal oppression foretold in the prophecies
of Daniel and John. Dan. 7:25, Rev 13:5-7. Christians were forced to
choose, either to yield their integrity and accept the papal ceremonies
and worship, or to wear away their lives in dungeon cells, or suffer
death by the rack, the fagot, or the headsman's ax. Now were fulfilled
the words of Jesus, "Ye shall be betrayed both by parents, and
brethren, and kinsfolks, and friends; and some of you shall they cause
to be put to death. And ye shall be hated of all men for my name's
sake." Luke 21:16,17. Persecution opened upon the faithful with greater
fury than ever before, and the world became a vast battle-field. For
hundreds of years the church of Christ found refuge in seclusion and
obscurity. Thus says the prophet: "The woman fled into the wilderness,
where (58) she hath a place prepared of God, that they should feed her there a thousand two hundred and three-score days." Rev. 12:6.
The accession of the Roman Church to power marked the
beginning of the Dark Ages. As her power increased, the darkness
deepened. Faith was transferred from Christ, the true foundation, to
the pope of Rome. Instead of trusting in the Son of God for forgiveness
of sins and for eternal salvation, the people looked to the pope, and
the priests and prelates to whom he delegated authority. They were
taught that the pope was their mediator, and that none could approach
God except through him, and, further, that he stood in the place of God
to them, and was therefore to be implicitly obeyed. A deviation from
his requirements was sufficient cause for the severest punishment to be
visited upon the bodies and souls of the offenders. Thus the minds of
the people were turned away from God to fallible, erring, and cruel
men, nay more, to the prince of darkness himself, who exercised his
power through them. Sin was disguised in a garb of sanctity. When the
Scriptures are suppressed, and man comes to regard himself as supreme,
we need look only for fraud, deception, and debasing iniquity. With the
elevation of human laws and traditions was manifest the corruption that
ever results from setting aside the law of God.
Those were days of peril for the church of Christ.
The faithful standard-bearers were few indeed. Though the truth was not
left without witnesses, yet at times it seemed that error and
superstition (59) would wholly prevail, and true religion would
be banished from the earth. The gospel was lost sight of, but the forms
of religion, were multiplied, and the people were burdened with
rigorous exactions.
They were taught not only to look to the pope as
their mediator, but to trust to works of their own to atone for sin.
Long pilgrimages, acts of penance, the worship of relics, the erection
of churches, shrines, and altars, the payment of large sums to the
church,--these and many similar acts were enjoined to appease the wrath
of God or to secure his favor; as if God were like men, to be angered
at trifles, or pacified by gifts or acts of penance!
Notwithstanding vice prevailed, even among the
leaders of the Romish Church, her influence seemed steadily to
increase. About the close of the eighth century, papists put forth the
claim that in the first ages of the church the bishops of Rome had
possessed the same spiritual power which they now assumed. To establish
this claim, some means must be employed to give it a show of authority;
and this was readily suggested by the father of lies. Ancient writings
were forged by monks. Decrees of councils before unheard of were
discovered, establishing the universal supremacy of the pope from the
earliest times. And a church that had rejected the truth greedily
accepted these deceptions.
The few faithful builders upon the true foundation
were perplexed and hindered as the rubbish of false doctrine obstructed
the work. Like the builders upon the wall of Jerusalem in Nehemiah's
day, some were ready to say, "The strength of the bearers of (60)
burdens is decayed, and there is much rubbish, so that we are not able
to build." Neh. 4:10. Wearied with the constant struggle against
persecution, fraud, iniquity, and every other obstacle that Satan could
devise to hinder their progress, some who had been faithful builders
became disheartened; and for the sake of peace and security for their
property and their lives they turned away from the true foundation.
Others, undaunted by the opposition of their enemies, fearlessly
declared, "Be not ye afraid of them; remember the Lord, which is great
and terrible;" Neh. 4:14, and they proceeded with the work, every one
with his sword girded by his side.
The same spirit of hatred and opposition to the truth
has inspired the enemies of God in every age, and the same vigilance
and fidelity have been required in his servants. The words of Christ to
the first disciples are applicable to his followers to the close of
time: "What I say unto you, I say unto all, Watch." Mark 13:37.
The darkness seemed to grow more dense. Image worship
became more general. Candles were burned before images, and prayers
were offered to them. The most absurd and superstitious customs
prevailed. The minds of men were so completely controlled by
superstition that reason itself seemed to have lost her sway. While
priests and bishops were themselves pleasure-loving, sensual, and
corrupt, it could only be expected that the people who looked to them
for guidance would be sunken in ignorance and vice.
Another step in papal assumption was taken, when, in
the eleventh century, Pope Gregory VII proclaimed the perfection of the
Romish Church. (61) Among the propositions which he put forth,
was one declaring that the church had never erred, nor would it ever
err, according to the Scriptures. But the Scripture proofs did not
accompany the assertion. The proud pontiff next claimed the power to
depose emperors, and declared that no sentence which he pronounced
could be reversed by any one, but that it was his prerogative to
reverse the decisions of all others.
A striking illustration of the tyrannical character
of this advocate of infallibility was given in his treatment of the
German king, Henry IV. For presuming to disregard the pope's authority,
this monarch was declared to be excommunicated and dethroned. In order
to make his peace with Rome, Henry crossed the Alps in midwinter that
he might humble himself before the pope. Upon reaching the castle
whither Gregory had withdrawn, he was conducted, without his guards,
into an outer court, and there, in the severe cold of winter, with
uncovered head and naked feet and in a miserable dress, he awaited the
pope's permission to come into his presence. Not until he had continued
three days fasting and making confession did the pontiff condescend to
grant him pardon. Even then it was only upon condition that the emperor
should await the sanction of the pope before resuming the insignia or
exercising the power of royalty. And Gregory, elated with his triumph,
boasted that it was his duty "to pull down the pride of kings."
How striking the contrast between the overbearing
pride of this haughty pontiff and the meekness and gentleness of
Christ, who represents himself as (62) pleading at the door of
the heart for admittance, that he may come in to bring pardon and
peace, and who taught his disciples, "Whosoever will be chief among
you, let him be your servant." Matt. 20:27.
The advancing centuries witnessed a constant increase
of error in the doctrines put forth from Rome. Even before the
establishment of the papacy, the teaching of heathen philosophers had
received attention and exerted an influence in the church. Many who
professed conversion still clung to the tenets of their pagan
philosophy, and not only continued its study themselves, but urged it
upon others as a means of extending their influence among the heathen.
Thus were serious errors introduced into the Christian faith. Prominent
among these was the belief in man's natural immortality and his
consciousness in death. This doctrine laid the foundation upon which
Rome established the invocation of saints and the adoration of the
virgin Mary. From this sprung also the heresy of eternal torment for
the finally impenitent, which was early incorporated into the papal
faith.
Then the way was prepared for the introduction of
still another invention of paganism, which Rome named purgatory, and
employed to terrify the credulous and superstitious multitudes. By this
heresy is affirmed the existence of a place of torment, in which the
souls of such as have not merited eternal damnation are to suffer
punishment for their sins, and from which, when freed from impurity,
they are admitted to Heaven.
Still another fabrication was needed to enable (63)
Rome to profit by the fears and the vices of her adherents. This was
supplied by the doctrine of indulgences. Full remission of sins, past,
present, and future, and release from all the pains and penalties
incurred, were promised to all who would enlist in the pontiff's wars
to extend his temporal dominion, to punish his enemies, or to
exterminate those who dared deny his spiritual supremacy. The people
were also taught that by the payment of money to the church they might
free themselves from sin, and also release the souls of their deceased
friends who were confined in the tormenting flames. By such means did
Rome fill her coffers, and sustain the magnificence, luxury, and vice
of the pretended representatives of Him who had not where to lay his
head.
The scriptural ordinance of the Lord's supper had
been supplanted by the idolatrous sacrifice of the mass. Papist priests
pretended, by their senseless mummery, to convert the simple bread and
wine into the actual body and blood of Christ. With blasphemous
presumption, they openly claimed the power to "create their Creator."
All Christians were required, on pain of death, to avow their faith in
this horrible, Heaven-insulting heresy. Those who refused were given to
the flames.
In the thirteenth century was established that most
terrible of all the engines of the papacy,--the Inquisition. The prince
of darkness wrought with the leaders of the papal hierarchy. In their
secret councils, Satan and his angels presided, while unseen in the
midst stood an angel of God, taking the fearful record of their
iniquitous decrees, and writing the history of deeds too horrible to
appear to human (64) eyes. "Babylon the great " was "drunken
with the blood of the saints." The mangled forms of millions of martyrs
cried to God for vengeance upon that apostate power.
Popery had become the world's despot. Kings and
emperors bowed to the decrees of the Roman pontiff. The destinies of
men, both for time and for eternity, seemed under his control. For
hundreds of years the doctrines of Rome had been extensively and
implicitly received, its rites reverently performed, its festivals
generally observed. Its clergy were honored and liberally sustained.
Never since has the Roman Church attained to greater dignity,
magnificence, and power.
The noontide of the papacy was the world's moral
midnight. The Holy Scriptures were almost unknown, not only to the
people, but to the priests. Like the Pharisees of old, the papist
leaders hated the light which would reveal their sins. God's law, the
standard of righteousness, having been removed, they exercised power
without limit, and practiced vice without restraint. Fraud, avarice,
and profligacy prevailed. Men shrank from no crime by which they could
gain wealth or position. The palaces of popes and prelates were scenes
of the vilest debauchery. Some of the reigning pontiffs were guilty of
crimes so revolting that secular rulers endeavored to depose these
dignitaries of the church as monsters too vile to be tolerated upon the
throne. For centuries there was no progress in learning, arts, or
civilization. A moral and intellectual paralysis had fallen upon
Christendom.
In the condition of the world under the Romish (65) power
was presented a fearful and striking fulfillment of the words of the
prophet Hosea: "My people are destroyed for lack of knowledge. Because
thou hast rejected knowledge, I will also reject thee." "Seeing thou
has forgotten the law of thy God, I will also forget thy children."
"There is no truth, nor mercy, nor knowledge of God in the land. By
swearing, and lying, and killing, and stealing, and committing
adultery, they break out, and blood toucheth blood." Hosea 4:6,1,2.
Such were the results of banishing the word of God.
CHAPTER 4
THE WALDENSES
(66) Amid
the gloom that settled upon the earth during the long period of papal
supremacy, the light of truth could not be wholly extinguished. In
every age there were witnesses for God,--men who cherished faith in
Christ as the only mediator between God and man, who held the Bible as
the only rule of life, and who hallowed the true Sabbath. How much the
world owes to these men, posterity will never know. They were branded
as heretics, their motives impugned, their characters maligned, their
writings suppressed, misrepresented, or mutilated. Yet they stood firm,
and from age to age maintained their faith in its purity, as a sacred
heritage for the generations to come.
The history of God's faithful people for hundreds of
years after Rome attained to power, is known alone to Heaven. They
cannot be traced in human records, except as hints of their existence
are found in the censures and accusations of their persecutors. It was
the policy of Rome to obliterate every trace of dissent from her
doctrines or decrees. Everything heretical, whether persons or
writings, was destroyed. A single expression of doubt, a question as to
the authority of papal dogmas, was enough to cost the life of rich or
poor, high or low. Rome endeavored (67) also to destroy every
record of her cruelty toward dissenters. Papal councils decreed that
books and writings containing such records should be committed to the
flames. Before the invention of printing, books were few in number, and
in a form not favorable for preservation; therefore there was little to
prevent the Romanists from carrying out their purpose.
No church within the limits of Romish jurisdiction
was long left undisturbed in the enjoyment of freedom of conscience. No
sooner had the papacy obtained power than she stretched out her arms to
crush all that refused to acknowledge her sway, and one after another,
the churches submitted to her dominion.
In Great Britain a primitive Christianity had very
early taken root. Faithful men had preached the gospel in that country
with great zeal and success. Among the leading evangelists was an
observer of the Bible Sabbath, and thus this truth found its way among
the people for whom he labored. Toward the close of the sixth century,
missionaries were sent from Rome to England to convert the barbarian
Saxons. They induced many thousands to profess the Romish faith, and as
the work progressed, the papal leaders and their converts encountered
the primitive Christians. A striking contrast was presented. The latter
were simple, humble, and scriptural in character, doctrine, and
manners, while the former manifested the superstition, pomp, and
arrogance of popery. The emissary of Rome demanded that these Christian
churches acknowledge the supremacy of the sovereign pontiff. The
Britons meekly replied that they desired to love all men, but that the
pope was not entitled to supremacy in the church, and they (68)
could render to him only that submission which was due to every
follower of Christ. Repeated attempts were made to secure their
allegiance to Rome; but these humble Christians, amazed at the pride
displayed by her apostles, steadfastly replied that they knew no other
master than Christ. Now the true spirit of the papacy was revealed.
Said the Romish leader, "If you will not receive brethren who bring you
peace, you shall receive enemies who will bring you war. If you will
not unite with us in showing the Saxons the way of life, you shall
receive from them the stroke of death." These were no idle threats.
War, intrigue, and deception were employed against these witnesses for
a Bible faith, until the churches of Britain were destroyed, or forced
to submit to the authority of the pope.
In lands beyond the jurisdiction of Rome, there
existed for many centuries bodies of Christians who remained almost
wholly free from papal corruption. They were surrounded by heathenism,
and in the lapse of ages were affected by its errors; but they
continued to regard the Bible as the only rule of faith, and adhered to
many of its truths. These Christians believed in the perpetuity of the
law of God, and observed the Sabbath of the fourth commandment.
Churches that held to this faith and practice, existed in Central
Africa and among the Armenians of Asia.
But of those who resisted the encroachments of the
papal power, the Waldenses stood foremost. For centuries the churches
of Piedmont maintained their independence; but the time came at last
when Rome demanded their submission. After ineffectual struggles
against her tyranny, the leaders of these churches (69)
reluctantly acknowledged the supremacy of the power to which the whole
world seemed bowing down. A considerable number, however, refused to
yield to the authority of pope or prelate. They were determined to
maintain their allegiance to God, and to preserve the purity and
simplicity of their faith. A separation took place. Some of the
protesters crossed the Alps, and raised the standard of truth in
foreign lands. Others retired into the more secluded valleys among the
mountains, and there maintained their freedom to worship God.
The religious belief of the Waldenses was founded
upon the written word of God, the true system of Christianity, and was
in marked contrast to the errors of Rome. But those herdsmen and
vine-dressers, in their obscure retreats, shut away from the world, had
not themselves arrived at the truth in opposition to the dogmas and
heresies of the apostate church. Theirs was not a faith newly received.
Their religious belief was their inheritance from their fathers. They
contended for the faith of the apostolic church,--"the faith once
delivered to the saints."
Among the leading causes that had led to the
separation of the true church from Rome, was the inveterate hatred of
the latter toward the Bible Sabbath. As foretold by prophecy, the papal
power cast down the truth to the ground. The law of God was trampled in
the dust, while the traditions and customs of men were exalted. The
churches that were under the rule of the papacy were early compelled to
honor the Sunday as a holy day. Amid the prevailing error and
superstition, many even of the true people of God, became so bewildered
that while they (70) observed the Sabbath, they refrained from
labor also on the Sunday. But this did not satisfy the papal leaders.
They demanded not only that Sunday be hallowed, but that the Sabbath be
profaned; and they denounced in the strongest language those who dared
to show it honor. It was only by fleeing from the power of Rome that
any could obey God's law in peace.
The Waldenses were the first of all the peoples of
Europe to obtain a translation of the Scriptures. Hundreds of years
before the Reformation, they possessed the entire Bible in manuscript
in their native tongue. They had the truth unadulterated, and this
rendered them the special objects of hatred and persecution. They
declared the church of Rome to be the apostate Babylon of the
Apocalypse, and at the peril of their lives they stood up to resist her
corruptions. While, under the pressure of long-continued persecution,
some compromised their faith, little by little yielding its distinctive
principles, others held fast the truth. Through ages of darkness and
apostasy, there were Waldenses who denied the supremacy of Rome, who
rejected image worship as idolatry, and who kept the true Sabbath.
Under the fiercest tempests of opposition they maintained their faith.
Though gashed by the Savoyard spear, and scorched by the Romish fagot,
they stood unflinchingly for God's word and his honor. They would not
yield one iota of the truth.
Behind the lofty bulwarks of the mountains,--in all
ages the refuge of the persecuted and oppressed,--the Waldenses found a
hiding-place. Here the lamp of truth was kept burning during the long
night that (71) descended upon Christendom. Here for a thousand years they maintained their ancient faith.
God had provided for his people a sanctuary of awful
grandeur, befitting the mighty truths committed to their trust. To
those faithful exiles the mountains were an emblem of the immutable
righteousness of Jehovah. They pointed their children to the heights
towering above them in unchanging majesty, and spoke to them of Him
with whom there is no variableness nor shadow of turning, whose word is
as enduring as the everlasting hills. God had set fast the mountains,
and girded them with strength; no arm but that of infinite power could
move them out of their place. In like manner had he established his
law, the foundation of his government in Heaven and upon earth. The arm
of man might reach his fellow-men and destroy their lives; but that arm
could as readily uproot the mountains from their foundations, and hurl
them into the sea, as it could change one precept of the law of
Jehovah, or blot out one of his promises to those who do his will. In
their fidelity to his law, God's servants should be as firm as the
unchanging hills.
The mountains that girded their lowly valleys were a
constant witness of God's creative power, and a never-failing assurance
of his protecting care. Those pilgrims learned to love the silent
symbols of Jehovah's presence. They indulged no repining because of the
hardships of their lot; they were never lonely amid the mountain
solitudes. They thanked God that he had provided for them an asylum
from the wrath and cruelty of men. They rejoiced in their freedom to
worship before him. Often when pursued by their (72) enemies,
the strength of the hills proved a sure defense. From many a lofty
cliff they chanted the praise of God, and the armies of Rome could not
silence their songs of thanksgiving.
Pure, simple, and fervent was the piety of these
followers of Christ. The principles of truth they valued above houses
and lands, friends, kindred, even life itself. These principles they
earnestly sought to impress upon the hearts of the young. From earliest
childhood the youth were instructed in the Scriptures, and taught to
sacredly regard the claims of the law of God. Copies of the Bible were
rare; therefore its precious words were committed to memory. Many were
able to repeat large portions of both the Old and the New Testament.
Thoughts of God were associated alike with the sublime scenery of
nature and with the humble blessings of daily life. Little children
learned to look with gratitude to God as the giver of every favor and
every comfort.
Parents, tender and affectionate as they were, loved
their children too wisely to accustom them to self-indulgence. Before
them was a life of trial and hardship, perhaps a martyr's death. They
were educated from childhood to endure hardness, to submit to control,
and yet to think and act for themselves. Very early they were taught to
bear responsibilities, to be guarded in speech, and to understand the
wisdom of silence. One indiscreet word let fall in the hearing of their
enemies, might imperil not only the life of the speaker, but the lives
of hundreds of his brethren; for as wolves hunting their prey did the
enemies of truth pursue those who dared to claim freedom of religious
faith.
(73)
The Waldenses had sacrificed their worldly prosperity for the truth's
sake, and with persevering patience they toiled for their bread. Every
spot of tillable land among the mountains was carefully improved; the
valleys and the less fertile hillsides were made to yield their
increase. Economy and severe self-denial formed a part of the education
which the children received as their only legacy. They were taught that
God designs life to be a discipline, and that their wants could be
supplied only by personal labor, by forethought, care, and faith. The
process was laborious and wearisome, but it was wholesome, just what
man needs in his fallen state, the school which God has provided for
his training and development.
While the youth were inured to toil and hardship, the
culture of the intellect was not neglected. They were taught that all
their powers belonged to God, and that all were to be improved and
developed for his service.
The
church of the Alps, in its purity and simplicity, resembled the church
in the first centuries. The shepherds of the flock lead their charge to
the fountain of living waters, --the word of God. On the grassy slopes
of the valleys, or in some sheltered glen among the hills, the people
gathered about the servants of Christ to listen to the words of truth.
Here the youth received instruction. The Bible was their text-book.
They studied and committed to memory the words of Holy Writ. A
considerable portion of their time was spent, also, in reproducing
copies of the Scriptures. Some manuscripts contained the whole Bible,
others only brief selections, (74) to which some simple
explanations of the text were added by those who were able to expound
the Scriptures. Thus were brought forth the treasures of truth so long
concealed by those who sought to exalt themselves above God.
By patient, untiring labor, sometimes in the deep,
dark caverns of the earth, by the light of torches, were the Sacred
Scriptures written out, verse by verse, chapter by chapter. Thus the
work went on, the revealed will of God shining out like pure gold; how
much brighter, clearer, and more powerful because of the trials
undergone for its sake, only those could realize who were engaged in
the work. Angels from Heaven surrounded these faithful workers.
Satan had urged on the papal bishops and prelates to
bury the word of truth beneath the rubbish of error, heresy, and
superstition; but in a most wonderful manner was it preserved
uncorrupted through all the ages of darkness. It bore not the stamp of
man, but the impress of God. Men have been unwearied in their efforts
to obscure the plain, simple meaning of the Scriptures, and to make
them contradict their own testimony; but, like the ark upon the billowy
deep, the word of God outrides the storms that threaten it with
destruction. As the mine has rich veins of gold and silver hidden
beneath the surface, so that all must dig who would discover its
precious stores, so the Holy Scriptures have treasures of truth that
are unfolded only to the earnest, humble, prayerful seeker. God
designed the Bible to be a lesson-book to all mankind, in childhood,
youth, and manhood, and to be studied through all time. He gave his
word to men as a revelation of himself. (75) Every new truth
discerned is a fresh disclosure of the character of its Author. The
study of the Scriptures is the means divinely ordained to bring men
into closer connection with their Creator, and to give them a clearer
knowledge of his will. It is the medium of communication between God
and man.
When the Waldensian youth had spent some time in
their schools in the mountains, some of them were sent to complete
their education in the great cities, where they could have a wider
range for thought and observation than in their secluded homes. The
youth thus sent forth were exposed to temptation, they witnessed vice,
they encountered Satan's wily agents, who urged upon them the most
subtle heresies and the most dangerous deceptions. But their education
from childhood had been of a character to prepare them for all this.
In the schools whither they went, they were not to
make confidants of any. Their garments were so prepared as to conceal
their greatest treasure,--the precious manuscripts of the Scriptures.
These, the fruit of months and years of toil, they carried with them,
and whenever it could be done without exciting suspicion, they
cautiously placed some portion in the way of those whose hearts seemed
open to receive it. From their mother's knee the Waldensian youth had
been trained with this purpose in view; they understood their work, and
faithfully performed it. Converts to the true faith were won in these
institutions of learning, and frequently its principles were found to
be permeating the entire school: yet the papist leaders could not, by
the closest inquiry, trace the so-called corrupting heresy to its
source.
(76) The
Waldenses felt that God required more of them than merely to maintain
the truth in their own mountains; that a solemn responsibility rested
upon them to let their light shine forth to those who were in darkness;
that by the mighty power of God's word, they were to break the bondage
which Rome had imposed. It was a law among them that all who entered
the ministry should, before taking charge of a church at home, serve
three years in the missionary field. As the hands of the men of God
were laid upon their heads the youth saw before them, not the prospect
of earthly wealth or glory, but possibly a martyr's fate. The
missionaries began their labors in the plains and valleys at the foot
of their own mountains, going forth two and two, as Jesus sent out his
disciples. These co-laborers were not always together, but often met
for prayer and counsel, thus strengthening each other in the faith.
To make known the nature of their mission would have
insured its defeat; therefore they concealed their real character under
the guise of some secular profession, most commonly that of merchants
or peddlers. They offered for sale silks, jewelry, and other valuable
articles, and were received as merchants where they would have been
repulsed as missionaries. All the while their hearts were uplifted to
God for wisdom to present a treasure more precious than gold or gems.
They carried about with them portions of the Holy Scriptures concealed
in their clothing or merchandise, and whenever they could do so with
safety, they called the attention of the inmates of the dwelling to
these manuscripts. When they saw that an interest was awakened, they
left some portion with them as a gift.
(77) With
naked feet and in coarse garments, these missionaries passed through
great cities, and traversed provinces far removed from their native
valleys. Everywhere they scattered the precious seed. Churches sprang
up in their path, and the blood of martyrs witnessed for the truth. The
day of God will reveal a rich harvest of souls garnered by the labors
of these faithful men. Veiled and silent, the word of God was making
its way through Christendom, and meeting a glad reception in the homes
and hearts of men.
To the Waldenses the Scriptures were not merely a
record of God's dealing with men in the past, and a revelation of the
responsibilities and duties of the present, but an unfolding of the
perils and glories of the future. They believed that the end of all
things was not far distant; and as they studied the Bible with prayer
and tears, they were the more deeply impressed with its precious
utterances, and with their duty to make known to others its saving
truths. They saw the plan of salvation clearly revealed in the word of
God, and they found comfort, hope, and peace in believing in Jesus. As
the light illuminated their understanding and made glad their hearts,
they longed to shed its beams upon those who were in the darkness of
papal error.
They saw that under the guidance of pope and priests,
multitudes were vainly endeavoring to obtain pardon, by afflicting
their bodies for the sin of their souls. Taught to trust to their good
works to save them, they were ever looking to themselves, their minds
dwelling upon their sinful condition, seeing themselves exposed to the
wrath of God, afflicting (78) soul and body, yet finding no
relief. Thus were conscientious souls bound by the doctrines of Rome.
Thousands abandoned friends and kindred, and spent their lives in
convent cells. By oft-repeated fasts and cruel scourgings, by midnight
vigils, by prostration for weary hours upon the cold, damp stones of
their dreary abode, by long pilgrimages, by humiliating penance and
fearful torture, many vainly sought to obtain peace of conscience.
Oppressed with a sense of sin, and haunted with the fear of God's
avenging wrath, they suffered on, until exhausted nature gave way, and
without one ray of light or hope, they sank into the tomb.
The Waldenses longed to break to those starving souls
the bread of life, to open to them the messages of peace in the
promises of God, and to point them to Christ as their only hope of
salvation. The doctrine that good works can make satisfaction for
transgression of God's law, they held to be based upon falsehood.
Reliance upon human merits intercepts the view of Christ's infinite
love. Jesus died as men's sacrifice, because they can do nothing to
recommend themselves to God. The merits of a crucified and risen
Saviour are the foundation of the Christian's faith. The union of the
soul to Christ by faith is as real, as close, as that of a limb to the
body, or of a branch to the vine.
The teachings of popes and priests had led men to
look upon the character of God, and even of Christ, as stern, gloomy,
and forbidding. The Saviour of the world was represented as so far
devoid of all sympathy with man in his fallen state that the mediation
of priests and saints must be invoked. How those (79) whose
minds had been enlightened by the word of God longed to point these
souls to Jesus as their compassionate, loving Saviour, standing with
outstretched arms, inviting all to come to him with their burden of
sin, their care and weariness. They longed to clear away the
obstructions which Satan had piled up that men might not see the
promises, and come directly to God, confessing their sins, and
obtaining pardon and peace.
Eagerly did the Vaudois missionary unfold to the
inquiring mind the precious truths of the gospel. Cautiously he
produced the carefully written portions of the word of God. It was his
greatest joy to give hope to the conscientious, sin-stricken soul, who
could see only a God of vengeance, waiting to execute justice. With
quivering lip and tearful eye did he, often on bended knees, open to
his brethren the precious promises that reveal the sinner's only hope.
Thus the light of truth penetrated many a darkened mind, rolling back
the cloud of gloom, until the Sun of Righteousness shone into the heart
with healing in his beams. Some portions of Scripture were read again
and again, the hearer desiring them to be often repeated, as if he
would assure himself that he had heard aright. Especially was the
repetition of these words eagerly desired: "The blood of Jesus Christ
his Son cleanseth us from all sin." 1 John 1:7. "As Moses lifted up the
serpent in the wilderness, even so must the Son of man be lifted up,
that whosoever believeth in him should not perish, but have eternal
life." John 3:14,15.
Many were undeceived in regard to the claims of Rome. They saw how vain is the mediation of men (80)
or angels in behalf of the sinner. As the true light dawned upon their
minds, they exclaimed with rejoicing, "Christ is my priest; his blood
is my sacrifice; his altar is my confessional." They cast themselves
wholly upon the merits of Jesus, repeating the words, "Without faith it
is impossible to please God." Heb. 11:6. "There is none other name
under heaven given among men, whereby we must be saved." Acts 4:12.
The assurance of a Saviour's love seemed too much for
some of these poor tempest-tossed souls to realize. So great was the
relief which it brought, such a flood of light was shed upon them, that
they seemed transported to Heaven. Their hand was laid confidingly in
the hand of Christ; their feet were planted upon the Rock of Ages. All
fear of death was banished. They could now covet the prison and the
fagot if they might thereby honor the name of their Redeemer.
In the secret places the word of God was thus brought
forth and read, sometimes to a single soul, sometimes to a little
company who were longing for light and truth. Often the entire night
was spent in this manner. So great would be the wonder and admiration
of the listeners that the messenger of mercy was not infrequently
compelled to cease his reading until the understanding could grasp the
tidings of salvation. Often would words like these be uttered: "Will
God indeed accept my offering? Will he smile upon me? Will he pardon
me?" The answer was read, "Come unto me, all ye that labor and are
heavy-laden, and I will give you rest." Matt. 11:28.
Faith grasps the promise, and the glad response is heard, "No more long pilgrimages to make; no more (81)
painful journeys to holy shrines. I may come to Jesus just as I am,
sinful and unholy, and he will not spurn the penitential prayer. 'Thy
sins be forgiven thee.' Mine, even mine, may be forgiven."
A tide of sacred joy would fill the heart, and the
name of Jesus would be magnified by praise and thanksgiving. Those
happy souls returned to their homes to diffuse light, to repeat to
others, as well as they could, their new experience; that they had
found the true and living way. There was a strange and solemn power in
the words of Scripture that spoke directly to the heart of those who
were longing for the truth. It was the voice of God and it carried
conviction to those who heard.
The messenger of truth went on his way; but his
appearance of humility, his sincerity, his earnestness and deep fervor,
were subjects of frequent remark. In many instances his hearers had not
asked him whence he came, or whither he went. They had been so
overwhelmed, at first with surprise, and afterward with gratitude and
joy, that they had not thought to question him. When they had urged him
to accompany them to their homes, he had replied that he must visit the
lost sheep of the flock. Could he have been an angel from Heaven? they
queried.
In many cases the messenger of truth was seen no
more. He had made his way to other lands, he was wearing out his life
in some unknown dungeon, or perhaps his bones were whitening on the
spot where he had witnessed for the truth. But the words he had left
behind could not be destroyed. They were doing their work in the hearts
of men: the blessed results will be fully known only in the Judgment.
(82) The
Waldensian missionaries were invading the kingdom of Satan, and the
powers of darkness aroused to greater vigilance. Every effort to
advance the truth was watched by the prince of evil, and he excited the
fears of his agents. The papal leaders saw a portent of danger to their
cause from the labors of those humble itinerants. If the light of truth
were allowed to shine unobstructed, it would sweep away the heavy
clouds of error that enveloped the people; it would direct the minds of
men to God alone, and would eventually destroy the supremacy of Rome.
The very existence of this people, holding the faith
of the ancient church, was a constant testimony to Rome's apostasy, and
therefore excited the most bitter hatred and persecution. Their refusal
to surrender the Scriptures was also an offense that Rome could not
tolerate. She determined to blot them from the earth. Now began the
most terrible crusades against God's people in their mountain homes.
Inquisitors were put upon their track, and the scene of innocent Abel
falling before the murderous Cain was often repeated.
Again and again were their fertile lands laid waste,
their dwellings and chapels swept away, so that where once were
flourishing fields and the homes of an innocent, industrious people,
there remained only a desert. As the ravenous beast is rendered more
furious by the taste of blood, so was the rage of the papists kindled
to greater intensity by the sufferings of their victims. Many of these
witnesses for a pure faith were pursued across the mountains, and
hunted down in the valleys where they were hidden, shut in by mighty
forests, and pinnacles of rock.
(83) No
charge could be brought against the moral character of this proscribed
class. Even their enemies declared them to be a peaceable, quiet, pious
people. Their grand offense was that they would not worship God
according to the will of the pope. For this crime, every humiliation,
insult, and torture that men or devils could invent was heaped upon
them.
When Rome at one time determined to exterminate the
hated sect, a bull was issued by the pope condemning them as heretics,
and delivering them to slaughter. They were not accused as idlers, or
dishonest, or disorderly; but it was declared that they had an
appearance of piety and sanctity that seduced "the sheep of the true
fold." Therefore the pope ordered "that the malicious and abominable
sect of malignants," if they refuse to abjure,"be crushed like venomous
snakes." Did this haughty potentate expect to meet those words again?
Did he know that they were registered in the books of Heaven, to
confront him at the Judgment? "Inasmuch as ye have done it unto one of
the least of these my brethren," said Jesus, "ye have done it unto me."
Matt. 25:40.
This bull invited all Catholics to take up the cross
against the heretics. In order to stimulate them in this cruel work, it
absolved them from all ecclesiastical pains and penalties, it released
all who joined the crusade from any oaths they might have taken; it
legalized their title to any property which they might have illegally
acquired, and promised remission of all their sins to such as should
kill any heretic. It annulled all contracts made in favor of the
Vaudois, ordered their domestics to abandon them, forbade all (84)
persons to give them any aid whatever, and empowered all persons to
take possession of their property. How clearly does this document
reveal the master spirit behind the scenes! It is the roar of the
dragon, and not the voice of Christ, that is heard therein.
The papal leaders would not conform their characters
to the great standard of God's law, but erected a standard to suit
themselves and determined to compel all to conform to this because Rome
willed it. The most horrible tragedies were enacted. Corrupt and
blasphemous priests and popes were doing the work which Satan appointed
them. Mercy had no place in their natures. The same spirit that
crucified Christ, and that slew the apostles, the same that moved the
blood-thirsty Nero against the faithful in his day, was at work to rid
the earth of those who were beloved of God.
The persecutions visited for many centuries upon this
God-fearing people were endured by them with a patience and constancy
that honored their Redeemer. Notwithstanding the crusades against them,
and the inhuman butchery to which they were subjected, they continued
to send out their missionaries to scatter the precious truth. They were
hunted to the death; yet their blood watered the seed sown, and it
failed not of yielding fruit. Thus the Waldenses witnessed for God,
centuries before the birth of Luther. Scattered over many lands, they
planted the seeds of the Reformation that began in the time of
Wycliffe, grew broad and deep in the days of Luther, and is to be
carried forward to the close of time by those who also are willing to
suffer all things for "the word of God and for the testimony of Jesus
Christ." Rev. 1:9.
CHAPTER 5
EARLY REFORMERS
(85)
So bitter had been the war waged upon the Bible, that at times there
were very few copies in existence; but God had not suffered his word to
be wholly destroyed. Its truths were not to be forever hidden. He could
as easily unchain the words of life as he could open prison doors and
unbolt iron gates to set his servants free. In the different countries
of Europe, men were moved by the Spirit of God to search for the truth
as for hidden treasure. Providentially guided to the Holy Scriptures,
they studied the sacred pages with intense interest. They were willing
to accept the light, at any cost to themselves. Though they did not see
all things clearly, they were enabled to perceive many long-buried
truths. As Heaven-sent messengers they went forth, rending asunder the
chains of error and superstition, and calling upon those who had been
so long enslaved to arise and assert their liberty.
Except among the Waldenses, the word of God had for
ages been locked up in languages known only to the learned; but the
time had come for the Scriptures to be translated, and given to the
people of different lands in their native tongue. The world had passed
its midnight. The hours of darkness were wearing (86) away, and in many lands appeared tokens of the coming dawn.
In the fourteenth century arose in England the
"morning star of the Reformation." John Wycliffe was the herald of
reform, not for England alone, but for all Christendom. He was the
progenitor of the Puritans; his era was an oasis in the desert.
Wycliffe received a liberal education, and with him
the fear of the Lord was the beginning of wisdom. He was noted at
college for his fervent piety as well as for his remarkable talents and
sound scholarship. He was educated in the civil and the canon law, and
sought to become acquainted with every branch of knowledge. In his
after-labors the value of this early discipline was apparent. While he
could wield the sword of the spirit, he was acquainted also with the
practice of the schools. This combination of accomplishments won for
him the respect of all parties. His followers saw with satisfaction
that their teacher was foremost among the sages and doctors of his
time. The Lord saw fit to intrust the work of reform to one whose
intellectual ability would give character and dignity to his labors.
This silenced the voice of contempt, and prevented the adversaries of
truth from attempting to put discredit upon his cause by ridiculing the
ignorance of the advocate.
When Wycliffe had mastered the learning of the
schools, he entered upon the study of the Scriptures. Every subject to
which he turned his attention he was accustomed to investigate
thoroughly, and he pursued the same course with the Bible. Heretofore
he had felt a great want, which neither his scholastic studies nor the
teachings of the church could satisfy. (87) In the Scriptures
he found that which he had before sought in vain. Here he saw the plan
of salvation revealed, and Christ set forth as the only advocate for
man. He saw that Rome had forsaken the Biblical paths for human
traditions. He gave himself to the service of Christ, and determined to
proclaim the truths which he had discovered.
He commenced with great prudence, but as he discerned
more clearly the errors of the papacy, he taught more earnestly the
doctrine of faith. His knowledge of theology, his penetrating mind, the
purity of his life, and his unbending courage and integrity, won for
him general confidence and esteem. He was an able and earnest teacher,
and an eloquent preacher, and his daily life was a demonstration of the
truths he preached. He accused the clergy of having banished the Holy
Scriptures, and demanded that the authority of the Bible should be
re-established in the church. Many of the people had become
dissatisfied with their former faith as they saw the iniquity that
prevailed in the Roman Church, and they hailed with unconcealed joy the
truths brought to view in these discussions; but the papist leaders
trembled with rage when they perceived that this reformer was gaining
an influence greater than their own.
Wycliffe was a clear thinker and a keen detector of
error, and he struck boldly against many of the abuses sanctioned by
the authority of Rome. Thus he brought upon himself the enmity of the
pope and his supporters. Repeated attempts were made to condemn and
execute him for heresy; but God had given him favor with princes, who
stood in his defense. (88) While acting as chaplain for the
king, he had taken a bold stand against the payment of the tribute
claimed by the pope from the English monarch, and had declared the
papal assumption of authority over secular rulers to be contrary to
both reason and revelation. A few years later, he ably defended the
rights of the English crown against the encroachments of the Romish
power. The people and the nobility of England sided with him, and his
enemies could accomplish nothing against him. Upon one occasion, when
he was brought to trial before a synod of bishops, the people
surrounded the building where the synod met, and, rushing in, stood
between him and all harm.
About this time, strife was caused in the church by
the conflicting claims of two rival popes. Each professed
infallibility, and demanded obedience. Each called upon the faithful to
assist him to make war upon the other, enforcing his demand by terrible
anathemas against his adversaries, and the promises of rewards in
Heaven to his supporters. This occurrence greatly weakened the power of
the papacy, and saved Wycliffe from further persecution.
God had preserved his servant for more important
labors. Wycliffe, like his Master, preached the gospel to the poor. As
a professor of theology, he presented the truth to the students under
his instruction, and received the title of "The Gospel Doctor." In his
parish he addressed the people as a friend and pastor.
But the greatest work of his life was the translation
of the Scriptures into the English language. This was the first
complete English translation ever made. The art of printing being still
unknown, it (89) was only by slow and wearisome labor that
copies of the work could be multiplied; yet this was done, and the
people of England received the Bible in their own tongue. Thus the
light of God's word began to shed its bright beams athwart the
darkness. A divine hand was preparing the way for the Great
Reformation.
The appeal to men's reason aroused them from their
passive submission to papal dogmas. The Scriptures were received with
favor by the higher classes, who alone in that age possessed a
knowledge of letters. Wycliffe now taught the distinctive doctrines of
Protestantism,--salvation through faith in Christ, and the sole
infallibility of the Scriptures. Many priests joined him in circulating
the Bible and in preaching the gospel; and so great was the effect of
these labors and of Wycliffe's writings, that the new faith was
accepted by nearly one-half of the people of England. The kingdom of
darkness trembled. Mendicant friars, who swarmed in England, listened
in anger and amazement to his bold, eloquent utterances. The hatred of
Rome was kindled to greater intensity, and again she plotted to silence
the Reformer's voice. But the Lord covered with his shield the
messenger of truth. The efforts of his enemies to stop his work and to
destroy his life were alike unsuccessful, and in his sixty-first year
he died in peace in the very service of the altar.
The doctrines which had been taught by Wycliffe
continued for a time to spread; but soon the pitiless storm of
persecution burst upon those who had dared to accept the Bible as their
guide and standard. Martyrdom succeeded martyrdom. The advocates (90)
of truth, proscribed and tortured, could only pour their suffering
cries into the ear of the Lord of Sabaoth. The hunted reformers found
shelter as best they could among the lower classes, preaching in secret
places, and hiding away even in dens and caves. Many bore fearless
witness to the truth in massive dungeons and Lollard towers.
The Papists had failed to work their will with
Wycliffe during his life, and their hatred could not be satisfied while
his body rested quietly in the grave. More than forty years after his
death, his bones were disinterred and publicly burned, and the ashes
were thrown into a neighboring brook. "The brook," says an old writer,
"did convey his ashes into Avon, Avon into Severn, Severn into the
narrow seas, and they into the main ocean, and thus the ashes of
Wycliffe are the emblem of his doctrine, which now is dispersed all the
world over." Little did his enemies realize the significance of their
malicious act.
It was through the writings of Wycliffe that John
Huss of Bohemia was led to renounce many of the errors of Romanism, and
to enter upon the work of reform. Like Wycliffe, Huss was a noble
Christian, a man of learning and of unswerving devotion to the truth.
His appeals to the Scriptures and his bold denunciations of the
scandalous and immoral lives of the clergy, awakened wide-spread
interest, and thousands gladly accepted a purer faith. This excited the
ire of pope and prelates, priests and friars, and Huss was summoned to
appear before the Council of Constance to answer to the charge of
heresy.
A safe-conduct was granted him by the German (91)
emperor, and upon his arrival at Constance he was personally assured by
the pope that no injustice should be done him. In a short time,
however, he was placed under arrest, by order of the pope and
cardinals, and thrust into a loathsome dungeon. Some of the nobles and
people of Bohemia addressed to the council earnest protests against
this outrage. The emperor, who was loth to permit the violation of a
safe-conduct, opposed the proceedings against him. But the enemies of
the Reformer were malignant and determined. They appealed to the
emperor's prejudices, to his fears, to his zeal for the church. They
brought forward arguments of great length to prove that he was
perfectly at liberty not to keep faith with a heretic; and that the
council, being above the emperor, could free him from his word. Thus
they prevailed.
After a long trial, in which he firmly maintained the
truth, Huss was required to choose whether he would recant his
doctrines or suffer death. He chose the martyr's fate, and after seeing
his books given to the flames, he was himself burned at the stake. In
the presence of the assembled dignitaries of Church and State, the
servant of God had uttered a solemn and faithful protest against the
corruptions of the papal hierarchy. His execution, in shameless
violation of the most solemn and public promise of protection,
exhibited to the whole world the perfidious cruelty of Rome. The
enemies of truth, though they knew it not, were furthering the cause
which they sought vainly to destroy.
In the gloom of his dungeon, John Huss had foreseen the triumph of the true faith. Returning in his (92)
dreams, to the humble parish where he had preached the gospel, he saw
the pope and his bishops effacing the pictures of Christ which he had
painted on the walls of his chapel. The sight caused him great
distress; but the next day he was filled with joy as he beheld many
artists busily engaged in replacing the figures in greater numbers and
brighter colors. When their work was completed, the painters exclaimed
to the immense crowd surrounding them, "Now let the popes and bishops
come! They shall never efface them more!" Said the Reformer, as he
related his dream, "I am certain that the image of Christ will never be
effaced. They have wished to destroy it, but it shall be painted in all
hearts by much better preachers than myself."
Soon after the death of Huss, his faithful friend
Jerome, a man of the same fervent piety and of greater learning, was
also condemned, and he met his fate in the same manner. So perished
God's faithful light-bearers. But the light of the truths which they
proclaimed,--the light of their heroic example,--could not be
extinguished. As well might men attempt to turn back the sun in its
course, as to prevent the dawning of that day which was even then
breaking upon the world.
Notwithstanding the rage of persecution, a calm,
devout, earnest, patient protest against the prevailing corruption of
religious faith continued to be uttered after the death of Wycliffe.
Like the believers in apostolic days, many freely sacrificed their
worldly possessions for the cause of Christ. Those who were permitted
to dwell in their homes, gladly received their brethren who had been
banished from home (93) and kindred. When they too were driven
forth, they accepted the lot of the outcast, and rejoiced that they
were permitted to suffer for the truth's sake.
Strenuous efforts were made to strengthen and extend
the power of the papacy; but while the popes still claimed to be
Christ's representatives, their lives were so corrupt as to disgust the
people. By the aid of the invention of printing, the Scriptures were
more widely circulated, and many were led to see that the papal
doctrines were not sustained by the word of God.
When one witness was forced to let fall the torch of
truth, another seized it from his hand, and with undaunted courage held
it aloft. The struggle had opened that was to result in the
emancipation, not only of individuals and churches, but of nations.
Across the gulf of a hundred years, men stretched their hands to grasp
the hands of the Lollards of the time of Wycliffe. Under Luther began
the Reformation in Germany; Calvin preached the gospel in France,
Zwingle in Switzerland. The world was awakened from the slumber of
ages, as from land to land were sounded the magic words, "Religious
Liberty."
CHAPTER 6
LUTHER'S SEPARATION FROM ROME
(94) Foremost
among those who were called to lead the church from the darkness of
popery into the light of a purer faith, stood Martin Luther. Zealous,
ardent, and devoted, knowing no fear but the fear of God, and
acknowledging no foundation for religious faith but the Holy
Scriptures, Luther was the man for his time; through him, God
accomplished a great work for the reformation of the church and the
enlightenment of the world.
Like the first heralds of the gospel, Luther sprung
from the ranks of poverty. His early years were spent in the humble
home of a German peasant. By daily toil as a miner, his father earned
the means for his education. He intended him for a lawyer, but God
designed to make him a builder in the great temple that was rising so
slowly through the centuries. Hardship, privation, and severe
discipline were the school in which Infinite Wisdom prepared Luther for
the important mission of his life.
Luther's father was a man of strong and active mind,
and great force of character, honest, resolute, and straightforward. He
was true to his convictions of duty, let the consequences be what they
might. His sterling good sense led him to regard the monastic system
with distrust. He was highly displeased (95) when Luther,
without his consent, entered a monastery; and it was two years before
the father was reconciled to his son, and even then his opinions
remained the same.
Luther's parents bestowed great care upon the
education and training of their children. They endeavored to instruct
them in the knowledge of God and the practice of Christian virtues. The
father's prayer often ascended in the hearing of his son, that the
child might remember the name of the Lord, and one day aid in the
advancement of his truth. Every advantage for moral or intellectual
culture which their life of toil permitted them to enjoy, was eagerly
improved by these parents. Their efforts were earnest and persevering
to prepare their children for a life of piety and usefulness. With
their firmness and strength of character they sometimes exercised too
great severity; but the Reformer himself, though conscious that in some
respects they had erred, found in their discipline more to approve than
to condemn.
At school, where he was sent at an early age, Luther
was treated with harshness and even violence. So great was the poverty
of his parents, that for a time he was obliged to obtain his food by
singing from door to door, and he often suffered from hunger. The
gloomy, superstitious ideas of religion then prevailing filled him with
fear. He would lie down at night with a sorrowful heart, looking
forward with trembling to the dark future, and in constant terror at
the thought of God as a stern, unrelenting judge, a cruel tyrant,
rather than a kind heavenly Father. Yet under so many and so great
discouragements, (96) Luther pressed resolutely forward toward
the high standard of moral and intellectual excellence which he had
determined to attain.
He thirsted for knowledge, and the earnest and
practical character of his mind led him to desire the solid and useful
rather than the showy and superficial. When, at the age of eighteen, he
entered the University of Erfurth, his situation was more favorable and
his prospects brighter than in his earlier years. His parents having by
thrift and industry acquired a competence, they were able to render him
all needed assistance. And the influence of judicious friends had
somewhat lessened the gloomy effects of his former training. He now
diligently applied himself to the study of the best authors, enriching
his understanding with their most weighty thoughts, and making the
wisdom of the wise his own. A retentive memory, a vivid imagination,
strong reasoning powers, and energetic application to study, soon won
for him the foremost rank among his associates.
The fear of the Lord dwelt in the heart of Luther,
enabling him to maintain his steadfastness of purpose, and leading him
to deep humility before God. He had an abiding sense of his dependence
upon divine aid, and he did not fail to begin each day with prayer,
while his heart was continually breathing a petition for guidance and
support. "To pray well," he often said, "is the better half of study."
While one day examining the books in the library of
the university, Luther discovered a Latin Bible. He had before heard
fragments of the Gospels and Epistles at public worship, and he thought
that they were the whole of God's word. Now, for the first (97)
time, he looked upon the whole Bible. With mingled awe and wonder he
turned the sacred pages; with quickened pulse and throbbing heart he
read for himself the words of life, pausing now and then to exclaim,
"Oh, if God would give me such a book for my own!" Angels of Heaven
were by his side, and rays of light from the throne of God revealed the
treasures of truth to his understanding. He had ever feared to offend
God, but now the deep conviction of his condition as a sinner took hold
upon him as never before.
An earnest desire to be free from sin and to find
peace with God, led him at last to enter a cloister, and devote himself
to a monastic life. Here he was required to perform the lowest
drudgery, and to beg from house to house. He was at an age when respect
and appreciation are most eagerly craved, and these menial offices were
deeply mortifying to his natural feelings; but he patiently endured
this humiliation, believing that it was necessary because of his sins.
Every moment that could be spared from his daily
duties, he employed in study, robbing himself of sleep, and grudging
even the moments spent at his humble meals. Above everything else he
delighted in the study of God's word. He had found a Bible chained to
the convent wall, and to this he often repaired. As his convictions of
sin deepened, he sought by his own works to obtain pardon and peace. He
led a most rigorous life, endeavoring to crucify the flesh by fastings,
watchings, and scourgings. He shrank from no sacrifice to become holy
and gain Heaven. As the result of this painful discipline, he (98) lost
strength, and suffered from fainting spasms, from the effects of which
he never fully recovered. But with all his efforts, his burdened soul
found no relief. He was at last driven to the verge of despair.
When it appeared to Luther that all was lost, God
raised up a friend and helper for him. The pious Staupitz opened the
word of God to Luther's mind, and bade him look away from himself,
cease the contemplation of infinite punishment for the violation of
God's law, and look to Jesus, his sin-pardoning Saviour. "Instead of
torturing yourself on account of your sins, cast yourself into the arms
of your Redeemer. Trust in him,--in the righteousness of his life,--in
the atonement of his death. Listen to the Son of God. He became man to
give you the assurance of divine favor. Love him who has first loved
you." Thus spoke this messenger of mercy. His words made a deep
impression upon Luther's mind. After many a struggle with
long-cherished errors, he was enabled to grasp the truth, and peace
came to his troubled soul.
Luther was ordained a priest, and was called from the
cloister to a professorship in the University of Wittemberg. Here he
applied himself to the study of the Scriptures in the original tongues.
He began to lecture upon the Bible; and the book of Psalms, the
Gospels, and the Epistles were opened to the understanding of crowds of
delighted listeners. Staupitz, his friend and superior, urged him to
ascend the pulpit, and preach the word of God. Luther hesitated,
feeling himself unworthy to speak to the people in Christ's stead. It
was only after a long struggle that he yielded to the solicitations of
his (99) friends. Already he was mighty in the Scriptures, and
the grace of God rested upon him. His eloquence captivated his hearers,
the clearness and power with which he presented the truth convinced
their understanding, and his deep fervor touched their hearts.
Luther was still a true son of the papal church, and
had no thought that he would ever be anything else. In the providence
of God he decided to visit Rome. He pursued his journey on foot,
lodging at the monasteries on the way. At a convent in Italy he was
filled with wonder as he saw the splendor of the apartments, the
richness of the dresses, the luxury of the table, the extravagance
everywhere. With painful misgivings he contrasted this scene with the
self-denial and hardship of his own life. His mind was becoming
perplexed.
At last he beheld in the distance the seven-hilled
city. With deep emotion he prostrated himself upon the earth,
exclaiming, "Holy Rome, I salute thee!" He entered the city, visited
the churches, listened to the marvelous tales repeated by priests and
monks, and performed all the ceremonies required. Everywhere he looked
upon scenes that filled him with astonishment and horror. He saw that
iniquity existed among all classes of the clergy. He heard indecent
jokes from prelates, and was filled with horror at their awful
profanity, even during mass. As he mingled with the monks and citizens,
he met dissipation, debauchery. Turn where he would, in the place of
sanctity he found profanation. "It is incredible," he wrote, "what sins
and atrocities are committed in Rome." " If there be a hell, Rome is
built above it. It is an abyss whence all sins proceed."
(100)
An indulgence had been promised by the pope to all who should ascend on
their knees what was known as Pilate's staircase. Luther was one day
performing this act, when suddenly a voice like thunder seemed to say
to him, "The just shall live by faith!" He sprung upon his feet in
shame and horror, and fled from the scene of his folly. That text never
lost its power upon his soul. From that time he saw more clearly than
ever before the fallacy of trusting to human works for salvation, and
the necessity of constant faith in the merits of Christ. His eyes had
been opened, and were never again to be closed, to the Satanic
delusions of the papacy. When he turned his face from Rome, he had
turned away also in heart, and from that time the separation grew
wider, until he severed all connection with the papal church.
After his return from Rome, Luther received at the
University of Wittemberg the degree of doctor of divinity. Now he was
at liberty to devote himself, as never before, to the Scriptures that
he loved. He had taken a solemn vow to study carefully and to preach
with fidelity the word of God, not the sayings and doctrines of the
popes, all the days of his life. He was no longer the mere monk or
professor but the authorized herald of the Bible. He had been called as
a shepherd to feed the flock of God, that were hungering and thirsting
for the truth. He firmly declared that Christians should receive no
other doctrines than those which rest on the authority of the Sacred
Scriptures. These words struck at the very foundation of papal
supremacy. They contained the vital principle of the Reformation.
Luther saw the danger of exalting human theories (101)
above the word of God. He fearlessly attacked the speculative
infidelity of the schoolmen, and opposed the philosophy and theology
which had so long held a controlling influence upon the people. He
denounced such studies as not only worthless but pernicious, and sought
to turn the minds of his hearers from the sophistries of philosophers
and theologians to the eternal truths set forth by prophets and
apostles.
Precious was the message which he bore to the eager
crowds that hung upon his words. Never before had such teachings fallen
upon their ears. The glad tidings of a Saviour's Love, the assurance of
pardon and peace through his atoning blood, rejoiced their hearts, and
inspired within them an immortal hope. At Wittemberg a light was
kindled whose rays should extend to the uttermost parts of the earth,
and which was to increase in brightness to the close of time.
But light and darkness cannot harmonize. Between
truth and error there is an irrepressible conflict. To uphold and
defend the one is to attack and overthrow the other. Our Saviour
himself declared, "I came not to send peace, but a sword." Matt. 10:34.
Said Luther, a few years after the opening of the Reformation, "God
does not conduct, but drives me forward. I am not master of my own
actions. I would gladly live in repose, but I am thrown into the midst
of tumults and revolutions." He was now about to be urged into the
contest.
The Roman Church had made merchandise of the grace of
God. The tables of the money-changers were set up beside her altars,
and the air (102) resounded with the shouts of buyers and
sellers. Under the plea of raising funds for the erection of St.
Peter's church at Rome, indulgences for sins were publicly offered for
sale by the authority of the pope. By the price of crime a temple was
to be built up for God's worship,--the corner-stone laid with the wages
of iniquity. But the very means of Rome's aggrandizement provoked the
deadliest blow to her power and greatness. It was this that aroused the
most determined and successful of the enemies of popery, and led to the
battle which shook the papal throne to its foundation, and jostled the
triple crown upon the pontiff's head.
The official appointed to conduct the sale of
indulgences in Germany--Tetzel by name--had been convicted of the
basest offenses against society and against the law of God; but having
escaped the punishment due to his crimes, he was employed to further
the mercenary and unscrupulous projects of the Romish Church. With
great effrontery he repeated the most glaring falsehoods, and related
marvelous tales to deceive an ignorant, credulous, and superstitious
people. Had they possessed the word of God, they would not have been
thus deceived. It was to keep them under the control of the papacy,
that they might swell the power and wealth of her ambitious leaders,
that the Bible had been withheld from them.
As Tetzel entered a town, a messenger went before
him, announcing, "The grace of God and of the holy father is at your
gates." And the people welcomed the blasphemous pretender as if he were
God himself come down from Heaven to them. The (103) infamous
traffic was set up in the church, and Tetzel, ascending the pulpit,
extolled indulgences as the most precious gift of God. He declared that
by virtue of his certificates of pardon, all the sins which the
purchaser should afterward desire to commit would be forgiven him, and
that even repentance was not indispensable. More than this, he assured
his hearers that the indulgences had power to save not only the living
but the dead; that the very moment the money should clink against the
bottom of his chest, the soul in whose behalf it had been paid would
escape from purgatory and make its way to Heaven.
When Simon Magus offered to purchase of the apostles
the power to work miracles, Peter answered him, "Thy money perish with
thee, because thou hast thought that the gift of God may be purchased
with money." Acts 8:20. But Tetzel's offer was grasped by eager
thousands. Gold and silver flowed into his treasury. A salvation that
could be bought with money was more easily obtained than that which
requires repentance, faith, and diligent effort to resist and overcome
sin.
The doctrine of indulgences had been opposed by men
of learning and piety in the Romish Church, and there were many who had
no faith in pretensions so contrary to both reason and revelation. Yet
no bishop dared lift his voice against the fraud and corruption of this
iniquitous traffic. The minds of men were becoming disturbed and
uneasy, and many eagerly inquired if God would not work through some
instrumentality for the purification of his church.
(104)
Luther, though still a papist of the straitest sort, was filled with
horror at the blasphemous assumptions of the indulgence-mongers. Many
of his own congregation had purchased certificates of pardon, and they
soon began to come to their pastor, confessing their various sins, and
expecting absolution, not because they were penitent and wished to
reform, but on the ground of the indulgence. Luther refused them
absolution, and warned them that unless they should repent, and reform
their lives, they must perish in their sins. In great perplexity they
sought out Tetzel, and informed him that an Augustine monk had treated
his letters with contempt. The friar was filled with rage. He uttered
the most terrible curses, caused fires to be lighted in the public
square, and declared that he had orders from the pope to burn the
heretics who dared oppose his most holy indulgences.
Luther now entered boldly upon his work as a champion
of the truth. His voice was heard from the pulpit in earnest, solemn
warning. He set before the people the offensive character of sin, and
taught them that it is impossible for man, by his own works, to lessen
its guilt or evade its punishment. Nothing but repentance toward God
and faith in Christ can save the sinner. The grace of Christ cannot be
purchased; it is a free gift. He counseled the people not to buy the
indulgences, but to look in faith to a crucified Redeemer. He related
his own painful experience in vainly seeking by humiliation and penance
to secure salvation, and assured his hearers that it was by looking
away from himself and believing in Christ that he found peace and joy.
(105)
As Tetzel continued his traffic and his impious pretensions, Luther
determined upon a more effectual protest against these crying abuses.
The festival of All-Saints was an important day for Wittemberg. The
costly relics of the church were then displayed, and remission of sin
was granted to all who visited the church and made confession.
Accordingly on this day the people in great numbers resorted thither.
On the day preceding the festival, Luther went boldly to the church, to
which crowds of worshipers were already repairing, and affixed to the
door ninety-five propositions against the doctrine of indulgences.
These theses he declared himself ready to defend against all opposers.
His propositions attracted universal attention. They
were read and re-read and repeated in every direction. Great excitement
was created in the university and in the whole city. By these theses it
was shown that the power to grant the pardon of sin, and to remit its
penalty, had never been committed to the pope or to any other man. The
whole scheme was a farce,--an artifice to extort money by playing upon
the superstitions of the people,--a device of Satan to destroy the
souls of all who should trust to its lying pretensions. It was also
clearly shown that the gospel of Christ is the most valuable treasure
of the church, and that the grace of God, therein revealed, is freely
bestowed upon all who seek it by repentance and faith.
Luther's theses challenged discussion; but no one
dared accept the challenge. The questions which he proposed had in a
few days spread through all Germany, and in a few weeks they had
sounded (106) throughout Christendom. Many devoted Romanists,
who had seen and lamented the terrible iniquity prevailing in the
church, but had not known how to arrest its progress, read the
propositions with great joy, recognizing in them the voice of God. They
felt that the Lord had graciously set his hand to arrest the rapidly
swelling tide of corruption that was issuing from the see of Rome.
Princes and magistrates secretly rejoiced that a check was to be put
upon the arrogant power from which there was no appeal.
But the sin-loving and superstitious multitudes were
terrified as the sophistries that had soothed their fears were swept
away. Crafty ecclesiastics, interrupted in their work of sanctioning
crime, and seeing their gains endangered, were enraged, and rallied to
uphold their pretensions. The Reformer had bitter accusers to meet.
Some charged him with acting hastily and from impulse. Others accused
him of presumption, declaring that he was not directed of God, but was
acting from pride and forwardness. "Who does not know," he responded,
"that one can seldom advance a new idea without having some appearance
of pride, and without being accused of exciting quarrels? Why were
Christ and all the martyrs put to death?--Because they appeared proud
despisers of the wisdom of the times in which they lived, and because
they brought forward new truths without having first consulted the
oracles of the old opinions."
Again He declared: "What I am doing will not be
effected by the prudence of man, but by the counsel of God. If the work
be of God, who shall stop it? (107) If it be not, who shall forward it? Not my will, not theirs, not ours, but thy will, holy Father who art in Heaven!"
Though Luther had been moved by the Spirit of God to
begin his work, he was not to carry it forward without severe
conflicts. The reproaches of his enemies, their mis- representation of
his purposes, and their unjust and malicious reflections upon his
character and motives, came in upon him like an overwhelming flood; and
they were not without effect. He had felt confident that the leaders in
the church and the philosophers of the nation would gladly unite with
him in efforts for reform. Words of encouragement from those in high
position had inspired him with joy and hope. Already in anticipation he
had seen a brighter day dawning for the church. But encourage-ment had
changed to reproach and condemnation. Many dignitaries, both of Church
and State, were convicted of the truthfulness of his theses; but they
soon saw that the acceptance of these truths would involve great
changes. To enlighten and reform the people would be virtually to
undermine the papal authority, to stop thousands of streams now flowing
into her treasury, and thus greatly to curtail the extravagance and
luxury of the Romish leaders. Furthermore, to teach the people to think
and act as responsible beings, looking to Christ alone for salvation,
would overthrow the pontiff's throne, and eventually destroy their own
authority. For this reason they refused the knowledge tendered them of
God, and arrayed themselves against Christ and the truth by their
opposition to the man whom he had sent to enlighten them.
(108)
Luther trembled as he looked upon himself,--one man opposed to the
mightiest powers of earth. He sometimes doubted whether he had indeed
been led of God to set himself against the authority of the church.
"Who was I," he writes, "to oppose the majesty of the pope, before whom
the kings of the earth and the whole world trembled?" "No one can know
what I suffered in those first two years, and into what dejection and
even despair I was sunk." But he was not left to become utterly
disheartened. When human support failed, he looked to God alone, and
learned that he could lean in perfect safety upon that all-powerful
arm.
To a friend of the Reformation Luther wrote: "We
cannot attain to the understanding of Scripture either by study or
strength of intellect. Therefore your first duty must be to begin with
prayer. Entreat the Lord to deign to grant you, in his rich mercy,
rightly to understand his word. There is no other interpreter of the
word but the Author of that word himself. Even as he has said, 'They
shall be all taught of God.' Hope nothing from your study and strength
of intellect; but simply put your trust in God, and in the guidance of
his Spirit. Believe one who has made trial of this matter." Here is a
lesson of vital importance to those who feel that God has called them
to present to others the solemn truths for this time. These truths will
stir the enmity of Satan, and of men who love the fables that he has
devised. In the conflict with the powers of evil, there is need of
something more than intellect and human wisdom.
When enemies appealed to custom and tradition, (109)
or to the assertions and authority of the pope, Luther met them with
the Bible and the Bible alone. Here were arguments which they could not
answer; therefore the slaves of formalism and superstition clamored for
his blood, as the Jews had clamored for the blood of Christ. "He is a
heretic," cried the Roman zealots; "it is a sin to allow him to live an
hour longer! Away with him at once to the scaffold!" But Luther did not
fall a prey to their fury. God had a work for him to do, and angels of
Heaven were sent to protect him. Many, however, who had received from
Luther the precious light, were made the objects of Satan's wrath, and
for the truth's sake fearlessly suffered torture and death.
Luther's teachings attracted the attention of
thoughtful minds throughout all Germany. From his sermons and writings
issued beams of light which awakened and illuminated thousands. A
living faith was taking the place of the dead formalism in which the
church had so long been held. The people were daily losing confidence
in the superstitions of Romanism. The barriers of prejudice were giving
way. The word of God, by which Luther tested every doctrine and every
claim, was like a two-edged sword, cutting its way to the hearts of the
people. Everywhere there was awakening a desire for spiritual progress.
Everywhere was such a hungering and thirsting after righteousness as
had not been known for ages. The eyes of the people, so long directed
to human rites and human mediators, were now turning, in penitence and
faith, to Christ and him crucified.
(110)
This wide-spread interest aroused still further the fears of the papal
authorities. Luther received a summons to appear at Rome to answer to
the charge of heresy. The command filled his friends with terror. They
knew full well the danger that threatened him in that corrupt city,
already drunk with the blood of the martyrs of Jesus. They protested
against his going to Rome, and requested that he receive his
examination in Germany.
This arrangement was finally effected, and the pope's
legate was appointed to hear the case. In the instructions communicated
by the pontiff to this official, it was stated that Luther had already
been declared a heretic. The legate was therefore charged to prosecute
and reduce him to submission without delay. If he should remain
steadfast, and the legate should fail to gain possession of his person,
he was empowered to proscribe him in all places in Germany, to put
away, curse, and excommunicate all who were attached to him. And
further, the pope called upon his legate, in order entirely to root out
the pestilent heresy, to excommunicate all, of whatever dignity in
Church or State, except the emperor, who should neglect to seize Luther
and his adherents, and deliver them up to suffer the vengeance of Rome.
Here is displayed the true spirit of popery. Not a
trace of Christian principle, or even of common justice, is to be seen
in the whole document. Luther was at a great distance from Rome; he had
had no opportunity to explain or defend his position; yet before his
case had been investigated, he was summarily pronounced a heretic, and
in the same day, exhorted, accused, judged, and condemned; and all this
by the (111) self-styled holy father, the only supreme, infallible authority in Church or State!
Augsburg had been fixed upon as the place of trial,
and the Reformer set out on foot to perform the journey thither.
Serious fears were entertained in his behalf. Threats had been made
openly that he would be waylaid and murdered on the way, and his
friends begged him not to venture. They even entreated him to leave
Wittemberg for a time, and find safety with those who would gladly
protect him. But he would not leave the position where God had placed
him. He must continue faithfully to maintain the truth, notwithstanding
the storms that were beating upon him. His language was: "I am like
Jeremiah, a man of strife and contention; but the more they increase
their threatenings, the more they multiply my joy....They have already
torn to pieces my honor and my good name. All I have left is my
wretched body; let them have it; they will then shorten my life by a
few hours. But as to my soul, they shall not have that. He who resolves
to bear the word of Christ to the world, must expect death at every
hour."
The tidings of Luther's arrival at Augsburg gave
great satisfaction to the papal legate. The troublesome heretic who was
exciting the attention of the whole world seemed now in the power of
Rome, and the legate determined that he should not leave the city as he
had entered. The Reformer had failed to provide himself with a
safe-conduct. His friends urged him not to appear before the legate
without one, and they themselves undertook to procure it from the
emperor. The legate intended to (112) force Luther, if
possible, to retract, or, failing in this, to cause him to be conveyed
to Rome, to share the fate of Huss and Jerome. Therefore through his
agents he endeavored to induce Luther to appear without a safe-conduct,
trusting himself to his mercy. This the Reformer firmly declined to do.
Not until he had received the document pledging him the emperor's
protection, did he appear in the presence of the papal ambassador.
As a matter of policy, the Romanists had decided to
attempt to win Luther by an appearance of gentleness. The legate, in
his interviews with him, professed great friendliness; but he demanded
that Luther submit implicitly to the authority of the church, and yield
every point without argument or question. He had not rightly estimated
the character of the man with whom he had to deal. Luther, in reply,
expressed his regard for the church, his desire for the truth, his
readiness to answer all objections to what he had taught, and to submit
his doctrines to the decision of certain leading universities. But at
the same time he protested against the cardinal's course in requiring
him to retract without having proved him in error.
The only response was, "Recant, recant." The Reformer
showed that his position was sustained by the Scriptures, and firmly
declared that he could not renounce the truth.
When the prelate saw that Luther's reasoning was
unanswerable, he lost all self-control, and in a rage cried out:
"Retract, or I will send you to Rome, there to appear before the judges
commissioned to take cognizance of your case. I will excommunicate you (113)
and all your partisans, and all who shall at any time countenance you,
and will cast them out of the church." And he finally declared, in a
haughty and angry tone, "Retract, or return no more."
The Reformer retired with his friends, leaving the
cardinal and his supporters to look at one another in utter confusion
at the unexpected result of the conference.
Luther's efforts on this occasion were not without
good results. The large assembly present had opportunity to compare the
two men, and to judge for themselves of the spirit manifested by them,
as well as of the strength and truthfulness of their positions. How
marked the contrast! The Reformer, simple, humble, firm, stood up in
the strength of God, having truth on his side; the pope's
representative, self-important, overbearing, haughty, and unreasonable,
was without a single argument from the Scriptures yet vehemently
crying, "Retract, or be sent to Rome for punishment."
Notwithstanding Luther had secured a safe-conduct,
the Romanists were plotting to seize and imprison him. His friends
urged that as it was useless for him to prolong his stay, he should
return to Wittemberg without delay, and that the utmost caution should
be observed in order to conceal his intentions. He accordingly left
Augsburg before daybreak, on horseback, accompanied only by a guide
furnished him by the magistrate. With many forebodings he secretly made
his way through the dark and silent streets of the city. Enemies,
vigilant and cruel, were plotting his destruction. Would he escape the
snares prepared for him? Those were moments of (114) anxiety
and earnest prayer. He reached a small gate in the wall of the city. It
was opened for him, and with his guide he passed through without
hindrance. Once beyond the limits, he soon left the city far behind.
Satan and his emissaries were defeated. The man whom they had thought
in their power was gone, escaped as a bird from the snare of the
fowler.
At the news of Luther's departure, the legate was
overwhelmed with surprise and anger. He had expected to receive great
honor for his wisdom and firmness in dealing with this disturber of the
church; but his hope was disappointed. He gave expression to his wrath
in a letter to Frederick, the elector of Saxony, bitterly denouncing
Luther, and demanding that Frederick send the Reformer to Rome or
banish him from Saxony.
In defense, Luther urged that the legate or the pope
show him his errors from the Scriptures, and pledged himself in the
most solemn manner to renounce his doctrines if they could be shown to
contradict the word of God. And he expressed his gratitude to God that
he had been counted worthy to suffer in so holy a cause. These words
made a deep impression upon the elector, and he resolved to stand as
Luther's protector. He refused to send him to Rome, or to expel him
from his territories.
The elector saw that there was a general breaking
down of the moral restraints of society. A great work of reform was
needed. The complicated and expensive arrangements to restrain and
punish crime would be unnecessary if men but acknowledged and obeyed
the requirements of God and the dictates of (115) an
enlightened conscience. He saw that Luther was laboring to secure this
object, and he secretly rejoiced that a better influence was making
itself felt in the church.
He saw also that as a professor in the university,
Luther was eminently successful. From all parts of Germany, students
crowded to Wittemberg to listen to his teachings. Young men, coming in
sight of the city for the first time, would raise their hands toward
heaven, and thank God that he had caused the light of his truth to
shine forth from that place as in former ages from Jerusalem.
Luther was as yet but partially converted from the
errors of Romanism. But as he compared the holy oracles with the papal
decrees and constitutions, he was filled with wonder. "I am reading,"
he wrote, "the decretals of the popes, and...I know not whether the
pope is antichrist himself, or whether he is his apostle, so
misrepresented and even crucified does Christ appear in them." Yet at
this time Luther was still a supporter of the Roman Church, and had no
thought that he would ever separate from her communion.
The Reformer's writings and his doctrine were
extending to every nation in Christendom. The work spread to
Switzerland and Holland. Copies of his writings found their way to
France and Spain. In England his teachings were received as the word of
life. To Belgium and Italy also the truth had extended. Thousands were
awakening from their deathlike stupor to the joy and hope of a life of
faith.
Rome became more and more exasperated by the attacks of Luther, and it was secretly declared (116)
by some of his fanatical opponents, that he who should take his life
would be without sin. One day a stranger, with a pistol concealed under
his cloak, approached the Reformer, and inquired why he went thus
alone. "I am in the hands of God," answered Luther. "He is my help and
my shield. What can men do unto me?" Upon hearing these words, the
stranger turned pale, and fled away, as from the presence of the angels
of Heaven.
Rome was bent upon the destruction of Luther; but God
was his defense. His doctrines were heard everywhere,--in convents, in
cottages, in the castles of the nobles, in the universities, in the
palaces of kings; and noble men were rising on every hand to sustain
his efforts.
In an appeal to the emperor and nobility of Germany
in behalf of the Reformation of Christianity, Luther wrote concerning
the pope: "It is monstrous to see him who is called the vicar of
Christ, displaying a magnificence unrivaled by that of any emperor. Is
this to represent the poor and lowly Jesus or the humble St. Peter? The
pope, say they, is the lord of the world! But Christ, whose vicar he
boasts of being, said, 'My kingdom is not of this world.' Can the
dominions of a vicar extend beyond those of his superior?"
He wrote thus of the universities: "I fear much that
the universities will be found to be great gates leading down to hell,
unless they take diligent care to explain the Holy Scriptures, and to
engrave them in the hearts of youth. I advise no one to place his child
where the Holy Scriptures are not regarded as the rule of life. Every
institution where the word of God is not diligently studied, must
become corrupt."
(117)
This appeal was rapidly circulated throughout Germany, and exerted a
powerful influence upon the people. The whole nation was roused to
rally around the standard of reform. Luther's opponents, burning with a
desire for revenge, urged the pope to take decisive measures against
him. It was decreed that his doctrines should be condemned immediately.
Sixty days were granted the Reformer and his adherents, after which, if
they did not recant, they were all to be excommunicated.
That was a terrible crisis for the Reformation. For
centuries Rome's sentence of excommunication had been swiftly followed
by the stroke of death. Luther was not blind to the tempest about to
burst upon him; but he stood firm, trusting in Christ to be his support
and shield. With a martyr's faith and courage he wrote: "What is about
to happen I know not, and I care not to know" "Wherever the blow may
reach me, I fear not. Not so much as a leaf falls without the will of
our Father; how much rather will he care for us! It is a little matter
to die for the Word, since this Word, that was made flesh for us, hath
himself died. If we die with him, we shall live with him; and, passing
through that which he has passed through before us, we shall be where
he is, and dwell with him forever."
When the papal bull reached Luther, he said: "I
despise it, and resist it, as impious and false. It is Christ himself
who is condemned therein." "I glory in the prospect of suffering for
the best of causes. Already I feel greater liberty; for I know now that
the pope is antichrist, and that his throne is that of Satan himself."
(118)
Yet the word of the pontiff of Rome still had power. Prison, torture,
and sword were weapons potent to enforce submission. Everything seemed
to indicate that the Reformer's work was about to close. The weak and
superstitious trembled before the decree of the pope, and while there
was general sympathy for Luther, many felt that life was too dear to be
risked in the cause of reform.
But Luther proceeded to publicly burn the pope's
bull, with the canon laws, the decretals, and certain writings
sustaining the papal power. By this action he boldly declared his final
separation from the Roman Church. He accepted his excommunication, and
proclaimed to the world that between himself and the pope there must
hereafter be war. The great contest was now fully entered upon. Soon
after, a new bull appeared, and the excommunication which had before
been threatened, was finally pronounced against the Reformer and all
who should receive his doctrines.
Opposition is the lot of all whom God employs to
present truths specially applicable to their time. There was a present
truth,--a truth at that time of special importance,--in the days of
Luther; there is a present truth for the church to-day. But truth is no
more desired by the majority to-day than it was by the papists who
opposed Luther. There is the same disposition to accept the theories
and traditions of men for the word of God as in former ages. Those who
present the truth for this time should not expect to be received with
greater favor than were earlier reformers. The great controversy
between truth and error, between Christ and Satan, is to increase in
intensity to the close of this world's history.
CHAPTER 7
LUTHER BEFORE THE DIET
(119)
A new emperor, Charles the Fifth, had ascended the throne of Germany,
and the emissaries of Rome hastened to present their congratulations,
and induce the monarch to employ his power against the Reformation. On
the other hand, the Elector of Saxony, to whom Charles was in great
degree indebted for his crown, entreated him to take no step against
Luther until he should have granted him a hearing. The emperor was thus
placed in a position of great perplexity and embarrassment. The papists
would be satisfied with nothing short of an imperial edict sentencing
Luther to death. The elector had declared firmly that neither his
imperial majesty nor any one else had yet made it appear to him that
the Reformer's writings had been refuted; therefore he requested that
Doctor Luther be furnished with a safe-conduct, so that he might answer
for himself before a tribunal of learned, pious, and impartial judges.
The attention of all parties was now directed to the
assembly of the German States which convened at Worms soon after the
accession of Charles to the empire. There were important political
questions and interests to be considered by this national council; (120) but these appeared of little moment when contrasted with the cause of the monk of Wittemberg.
Charles had previously directed the elector to bring
Luther with him to the Diet, assuring him that the Reformer should be
protected from all violence, and should be allowed a free conference
with one competent to discuss the disputed points. Luther was anxious
to appear before the emperor. His health was at this time much
impaired; yet he wrote to the elector: "If I cannot perform the journey
to Worms in good health, I will be carried there, sick as I am. For,
since the emperor has summoned me, I cannot doubt that it is the call
of God himself. If they intend to use violence against me, as they
probably do, for assuredly it is with no view of gaining information
that they require me to appear before them, I place the matter in the
Lord's hands. He still lives and reigns who preserved the three
Israelites in the fiery furnace. If it be not his will to save me, my
life is of little consequence. Let us only take care that the gospel be
not exposed to the scorn of the ungodly, and let us shed our blood in
its defense rather than allow them to triumph. Who shall say whether my
life or my death would contribute most to the salvation of my
brethren?" "Expect anything from me but flight or recantation. Fly I
cannot; still less can I recant." As the news was circulated at Worms
that Luther was to appear before the Diet, a general excitement was
created. Aleander, the papal legate to whom his case had been specially
intrusted, was alarmed and enraged. He saw that the result would be
disastrous to the papal cause. To institute inquiry into (121)
a case in which the pope had already pronounced sentence of
condemnation, would be to cast contempt upon the authority of the
sovereign pontiff. Furthermore, he was apprehensive that the eloquent
and powerful arguments of this man might turn away many of the princes
from the cause of the pope. He therefore, in the most urgent manner,
remonstrated with Charles against Luther's appearance at Worms. He
warned, entreated, and threatened, until the emperor yielded, and wrote
to the elector that if Luther would not retract, he must remain at
Wittemberg.
Not content with this victory, Aleander labored with
all the power and cunning at his command to secure Luther's
condemnation. With a persistence worthy of a better cause, he urged the
matter upon the attention of princes, prelates, and other members of
the assembly, accusing the Reformer of sedition, rebellion, impiety,
and blasphemy. But the vehemence and passion manifested by the legate
plainly revealed that he was actuated by hatred and revenge rather than
by zeal for religion. It was the prevailing sentiment of the assembly
that Luther was innocent.
With redoubled zeal, Aleander urged upon the emperor
the duty of executing the papal edicts. Overcome at last by this
importunity, Charles bade the legate present his case to the Diet. Rome
had few advocates better fitted, by nature and education, to defend her
cause. The friends of the Reformer looked forward with some anxiety to
the result of Aleander's speech.
There was no little excitement when the legate, (122)
with great dignity and pomp, appeared before the national assembly.
Many called to mind the scene of our Saviour's trial, when Annas and
Caiaphas, before the judgment-seat of Pilate, demanded the death of him
"that perverted the people."
With all the power of learning and eloquence,
Aleander set himself to overthrow the truth. Charge after charge he
hurled against Luther as an enemy of the Church and the State, the
living and the dead, clergy and laity, councils and private Christians.
"There is enough in the errors of Luther," he declared, "to warrant the
burning of a hundred thousand heretics."
In conclusion, he endeavored to cast contempt upon
the adherents of the reformed faith: "What are all these Lutherans?--A
motley rabble of insolent grammarians, corrupt priests, dissolute
monks, ignorant lawyers, and degraded nobles, with the common people
whom they have misled and perverted. How greatly superior is the
Catholic party in numbers, intelligence, and power! A unanimous decree
from this illustrious assembly will open the eyes of the simple, show
the unwary their danger, determine the wavering, and strengthen the
weak-hearted."
With such weapons have the advocates of truth in
every age been attacked. The same arguments are still urged against all
who dare to present, in opposition to established errors, the plain and
direct teachings of God's word. "Who are these preachers of new
doctrines?" exclaim those who desire a popular religion. "They are
unlearned, few in numbers, and of the poorer class. Yet they claim to
have the truth, and to be the chosen people of God. They are (123)
ignorant and deceived. How greatly superior in numbers and influence
are our denominations! How many great and learned men are in our
churches! How much more power is on our side!" These are the arguments
that have a telling influence upon the world; but they are no more
conclusive now than in the days of the Reformer.
The Reformation did not, as many suppose, end with
Luther. It is to be continued to the close of this world's history.
Luther had a great work to do in reflecting to others the light which
God had permitted to shine upon him; yet he did not receive all the
light which was to be given to the world. From that time to this, new
light has been continually shining upon the Scriptures, and new truths
have been constantly unfolding.
The legate's address made a deep impression upon the
Diet. There was no Luther present, with the clear and convincing truths
of God's word, to vanquish the papal champion. No attempt was made to
defend the Reformer. There was manifest a general impulse to root out
the Lutheran heresy from the empire. Rome had enjoyed the most
favorable opportunity to defend her cause. The greatest of her orators
had spoken. All that she could say in her own vindication had been
said. But the apparent victory was the signal of defeat. Henceforth the
contrast between truth and error would be more clearly seen, as they
should take the field in open warfare. Never from that day would Rome
stand as secure as she had stood.
The majority of the assembly were ready to sacrifice Luther to the demands of the pope; but many (124)
of them saw and deplored the existing depravity in the church, and
desired a suppression of the abuses suffered by the German people in
consequence of Rome's corruption and greed of gain. The legate had
presented the papal rule in the most favorable light. Now the Lord
moved upon a member of the Diet to give a true delineation of the
effects of papal tyranny. With noble firmness, Duke George of Saxony
stood up in that princely assembly, and specified with terrible
exactness the deceptions and abominations of popery, and their dire
result. In closing he said:--
"These are but a few of the abuses which cry out
against Rome for redress. All shame is laid aside, and one object alone
incessantly pursued: money! evermore money! so that the very men whose
duty it is to teach the truth, utter nothing but falsehoods, and are
not only tolerated but rewarded; because the greater their lies, the
greater are their gains. This is the foul source from which so many
corrupt streams flow out on every side. Profligacy and avarice go hand
in hand. Alas! it is the scandal caused by the clergy that plunges so
many poor souls into everlasting perdition. A thorough reform must be
effected."
A more able and forcible denunciation of the papal
abuses could not have been made by Luther himself; and the fact that
the speaker was a determined enemy of the Reformer, gave greater
influence to his words.
Had the eyes of the assembly been opened, they would
have beheld angels of God in the midst of them, shedding beams of light
athwart the darkness of error, and opening minds and hearts to the
reception (125) of truth. It was the power of the God of truth
and wisdom that controlled even the adversaries of the reformation, and
thus prepared the way for the great work about to be accomplished.
Martin Luther was not present; but the voice of one greater than Luther
had been heard in that assembly.
The council now demanded the Reformer's appearance
before them. Notwithstanding the entreaties, protests, and threats of
Aleander, the emperor at last consented, and Luther was summoned to
appear before the diet. With the summons was issued a safe-conduct,
insuring his return to a place of security. These were borne to
Wittemberg by a herald, who was commissioned to conduct him to Worms.
The friends of Luther were terrified and distressed.
Knowing the prejudice and enmity against him, they feared that even his
safe-conduct would not be respected, and they entreated him not to
imperil his life. He replied: "The papists have little desire to see me
at Worms, but they long for my condemnation and death. It matters not.
Pray not for me, but for the word of God....Christ will give me his
Spirit to overcome these ministers of Satan. I despise them while I
live; I will triumph over them by my death. They are busy at Worms
about compelling me to recant. My recantation shall be this: I said
formerly that the pope was Christ's vicar; now I say that he is the
adversary of the Lord, and the apostle of the devil."
Luther was not to make his perilous journey alone.
Besides the imperial messenger, three of his firmest friends determined
to accompany him. A multitude of students and citizens, to whom the
gospel was (126) precious, bade him farewell with weeping, as he departed. Thus the Reformer and his companions set out from Wittemberg.
On the journey they saw that the minds of the people
were oppressed by gloomy forebodings. At some towns no honors were
proffered them. As they stopped for the night, a friendly priest
expressed his fears by holding up before Luther the portrait of an
Italian reformer who had suffered martyrdom for the truth's sake. The
next day they learned that Luther's writings had been condemned at
Worms. Imperial messengers were proclaiming the emperor's decree, and
urging all men to bring the proscribed works to the magistrates. The
herald, in alarm, asked the Reformer if he still wished to go forward.
He answered, "I will go on, though I should be put under interdict in
every town."
At Erfurth, Luther was received with honor.
Surrounded by admiring crowds, he entered the city where, in his
earlier years, he had often begged a morsel of bread. He was urged to
preach. This he had been forbidden to do; but the herald gave his
consent, and the monk whose duty it once was to unclose the gates and
sweep the aisles, now ascended the pulpit, while the people listened to
his words as if spell-bound. The bread of life was broken to those
starving souls. Christ was lifted up before them as above popes,
legates, emperors, and kings. Luther made no reference to his own
perilous position. He did not seek to make himself the object of
thought or sympathy. In the contemplation of Christ, he had lost sight
of self. He hid behind the Man of Calvary, seeking only to present
Jesus as the sinner's Redeemer.
(127)
As the Reformer proceeded on his journey, he was everywhere regarded
with great interest. An eager multitude thronged about him; and
friendly voices warned him of the purpose of the Romanists. "You will
be burned alive," said they, "and your body reduced to ashes, as was
that of John Huss." Luther answered, "Though they should kindle a fire
all the way from Worms to Wittemberg, whose flames should rise up to
heaven, I would go through it in the name of the Lord, and stand before
them; I would enter the jaws of this behemoth, and break his teeth,
confessing the Lord Jesus Christ."
The news of his approach to Worms created great
commotion. His friends trembled for his safety; his enemies feared for
the success of their cause. Strenuous efforts were made to dissuade him
from entering the city. The papists urged him to repair to the castle
of a friendly knight, where, they declared, all difficulties could be
amicably adjusted. The advocates of truth endeavored to excite his
fears by describing the dangers that threatened him. All their efforts
failed. Luther, still unshaken, declared, "Though there should be as
many devils at Worms as there are tiles on its roofs, I would enter."
Upon his arrival at Worms, the crowd that flocked to
the gates to welcome him was even greater than at the public entry of
the emperor himself. The excitement was intense, and from the midst of
the throng a shrill and plaintive voice chanted a funeral dirge, as a
warning to Luther of the fate that awaited him. "God will be my
defense," said he, as he alighted from his carriage.
The emperor immediately convoked his council to (128)
consider what course should be pursued toward Luther. One of the
bishops, a rigid papist, declared: "We have long consulted on this
matter. Let your majesty get rid of this man at once. Did not Sigismund
bring John Huss to the stake? We are under no obligation either to give
or to observe the safe conduct of a heretic." "Not so," said the
emperor; "we must keep our promise." It was therefore decided that the
Reformer should be heard.
All the city were eager to see this remarkable man,
and he had enjoyed but a few hours' rest when noblemen, knights,
priests, and citizens gathered about him. Even his enemies marked his
firm, courageous bearing, the kindly and joyous expression upon his
countenance, and the solemn elevation and deep earnestness that gave to
his words an irresistible power. Some were convinced that a divine
influence attended him; others declared, as had the Pharisees
concerning Christ, "He hath a devil."
On the following day, Luther was summoned to attend
the diet. An imperial officer was appointed to conduct him to the hall
of audience; yet it was with difficulty that he reached the place.
Every avenue was crowded with spectators, eager to look upon the monk
who had dared resist the authority of the pope.
As he was about to enter the presence of his judges,
an old general, the hero of many battles, said to him kindly, "Poor
monk! poor monk! thou are now going to make a nobler stand than I, or
any other captains, have ever made in our most bloody battles. But if
thy cause is just, and thou art sure of it, go forward in God's name,
and fear nothing! He will not forsake thee."
(129)
At length Luther stood before the council. The emperor occupied the
throne. He was surrounded by the most illustrious personages in the
empire. Never had any man appeared in the presence of a more imposing
assembly than that before which Martin Luther was to answer for his
faith.
The very fact of that appearance was a signal victory
for the truth. That a man whom the pope had condemned should be judged
by another tribunal, was virtually a denial of the pontiff's supreme
authority. The Reformer, placed under ban, and denounced from human
fellowship by the pope, had been assured protection, and was granted a
hearing, by the highest dignitaries of the nation. Rome had commanded
him to be silent; but he was about to speak in the presence of
thousands from all parts of Christendom.
In the presence of that powerful and titled assembly,
the lowly-born Reformer seemed awed and embarrassed. Several of the
princes, observing his emotion, approached him, and one of them
whispered, "Fear not them which kill the body, but are not able to kill
the soul." Another said, "When ye shall be brought before governors and
kings for my sake, it shall be given you, by the Spirit of your Father,
what ye shall say." Thus the words of Christ were brought by the
world's great men to strengthen his servant in the hour of trial.
Luther was conducted to a position directly in front
of the emperor's throne. A deep silence fell upon the crowded assembly.
Then an imperil officer arose, and pointing to a collection of Luther's
writings, demanded that the Reformer answer two questions,--whether he
acknowledged them as his, and (130) whether he proposed to
retract the opinions which he had therein advanced. Luther replied that
as to the first question, he acknowledged the books to be his. "As to
the second," he said, "seeing it is a question which concerns faith,
the salvation of souls, and the word of God, which is the greatest and
most precious treasure either in Heaven or earth, it would be rash and
perilous for me to reply without reflection. I might affirm less than
the circumstances demand, or more than truth requires; in either case I
should fall under the sentence of Christ: 'Whosoever shall deny me
before men, him will I also deny before my Father which is in Heaven.'
For this reason I entreat your imperial majesty, with all humility, to
allow me time, that I may answer without offending against the word of
God."
In making this request, Luther moved wisely. His
course convinced the assembly that he did not act from passion or
impulse. Such calmness and self-command, unexpected in one who had
shown himself bold and uncompromising, added to his power, and enabled
him afterward to answer with a prudence, decision, wisdom, and dignity,
that surprised and disappointed his adversaries, and rebuked their
insolence and pride.
The next day he was to appear to render his second
answer. For a time his heart sunk within him as he contemplated the
forces that were combined against the truth. His faith faltered as his
enemies seemed to multiply before him and the powers of darkness to
prevail. Clouds gathered about him, and seemed to separate him from
God. He longed for the assurance that the Lord of hosts would be with
him. In (131) anguish of spirit he threw himself with his face
upon the earth, and poured out those broken, heart-rending cries which
none but God can fully understand. In his helplessness, his soul
fastened upon Christ, the mighty deliverer. It was not for his own
safety, but for the success of the truth, that he wrestled with God;
and he prevailed. He was strengthened with the assurance that he would
not appear alone before the council. Peace returned to his soul, an he
rejoiced that he was permitted to uphold and defend the word of God
before the rulers of the nation. An all-wise providence had permitted
Luther to realize his peril, that he might not trust to his own
strength and wisdom, and rush presumptuously into danger. God was
preparing his servant for the great work before him.
As
the time for his appearance drew near, Luther approached a table on
which lay the Holy Scriptures, placed his left hand upon the sacred
volume, and, raising his right hand to Heaven, he vowed to adhere
constantly to the gospel, and to confess his faith freely, even though
he should be called to seal his testimony with his blood.
When he was again ushered into the presence of the
Diet, his countenance bore no trace of fear or embarrassment. Calm and
peaceful, yet grandly brave and noble, he stood as God's witness among
the great ones of the earth. The imperial officer now demanded his
decision as to whether he desired to retract his doctrines. Luther made
his answer in a subdued and humble tone, without violence or passion.
His demeanor was diffident and respectful; yet he manifested a
confidence and joy that surprised the assembly.
(132)
He stated that his published works were not all of the same character.
In some he had treated of faith and good works, and even his enemies
declared them not only harmless but profitable. To retract these would
be to condemn truths which all parties confessed. The second class
consisted of writings exposing the corruptions and abuses of the
papacy. To revoke these works would strengthen the tyranny of Rome, and
open a wider door to many and great impieties. In the third class of
his books he had attacked individuals who had defended existing evils.
Concerning these he freely confessed that he had been more violent than
was becoming. He did not claim to be free from fault; but even these
books he could not revoke, for such a course would embolden the enemies
of truth, and they would then take occasion to crush God's people with
still greater cruelty.
"But as I am a mere man, and not God," he continued,
"I will defend myself as did Christ, who said, 'If I have spoken evil,
bear witness of the evil.' By the mercy of God, I implore your imperial
majesty, or any one else who can, whoever he may be, to prove to me
from the writings of the prophets that I am in error. As soon as I
shall be convinced, I will instantly retract all my errors, and will be
the first to cast my books into the fire. What I have just said, will
show that I have considered and weighed the dangers to which I am
exposing myself; but far from being dismayed by them, I rejoice
exceedingly to see the gospel this day, as of old, a cause of trouble
and dissension. This is the character, the destiny, of God's word. Said
Christ, 'I came not to send peace, but a sword.' God is wonderful and
terrible to his (133) counsels. Let us have a care lest in our
endeavors to arrest discords we be found to fight against the holy word
of God, and bring down upon our heads a frightful deluge of
inextricable dangers, present disaster, and everlasting desolation....I
might cite examples drawn from the oracles of God. I might speak of
Pharaohs, of kings of Babylon or of Israel, who were never more
contributing to their own ruin than when, by measures in appearance
most prudent, they thought to establish their authority. God 'removeth
the mountains, and they know not.'"
Luther had spoken in German; he was now requested to
repeat the same words on Latin. Though exhausted by the precious
effort, he complied, and again delivered his speech, with the same
clearness and energy as at the first. God's providence directed in this
matter. The minds of many of the princes were so blinded by error and
superstition that at the first delivery they did not see the force of
Luther's reasoning; but the repetition enabled them clearly to perceive
the points presented.
Those who stubbornly closed their eyes to the light,
and determined not to be convinced of the truth, were enraged at the
power of Luther's words. As he ceased speaking, the spokesman of the
Diet said angrily, "You have not answered the question. A clear and
express reply is demanded. Will you or will you not retract?"
The Reformer answered: "Since your most serene
majesty and the princes require a simple answer, I will give it thus:
Unless I shall be convinced by proofs from Scripture or by evident
reason (for I (134) believe neither in popes nor in councils,
since they have frequently erred and contradicted themselves), I cannot
choose but adhere to the word of God, which has possession of my
conscience. Nor can I possibly nor will I ever make any recantation,
since it is neither safe nor honest to act contrary to conscience. Here
I take my stand; I cannot do otherwise. God be my help! Amen."
Thus stood this righteous man, upon the sure
foundation of the word of God. The light of Heaven illuminated his
countenance. His greatness and purity of character, his peace and joy
of heart, were manifest to all as he testified against the power of
error, and witnessed to the superiority of that faith that overcomes
the world.
The whole assembly were for a time speechless with
amazement. The emperor himself and many of the princes were struck with
admiration. The partisans of Rome had been worsted; their cause
appeared in a most unfavorable light. They sought to maintain their
power, not by appealing to the Scriptures, but by a resort to threats,
Rome's unfailing argument. Said the spokes-man of the Diet, "If you do
not retract, the emperor and the States of the empire will proceed to
consider how to deal with an obstinate heretic."
Luther's friends, who had with great joy listened to
his noble defense, trembled at these words; but the doctor himself said
calmly, "May God by my helper! for I can retract nothing."
Firm as a rock he stood, while the fiercest billows
of worldly power beat harmlessly against him. The simple energy of his
words, his fearless bearing, his (135) calm, speaking eye, and
the unalterable determination expressed in every word and act, made a
deep impression upon the assembly. It was evident that he could not be
induced, either by promises or threats, to yield to the mandate of
Rome.
The papist leaders were chagrined that their power,
which had caused kings and nobles to tremble, should be thus despised
by a humble monk; they longed to make him feel their wrath by torturing
his life away. But Luther, understanding his danger, had spoken to all
with Christian dignity and calmness. His words had been free from
pride, passion, and misrepresentation. He lost sight of himself, and of
the great men surrounding him, and felt only that he was in the
presence of One infinitely superior to popes, prelates, kings, and
emperors. Christ had spoken through Luther's testimony with a power and
grandeur that for the time inspired both friends and foes with awe and
wonder. The Spirit of God had been present in that council, impressing
the hearts of the chiefs of the empire. Several of the princes openly
acknowledged the justice of Luther's cause. Many were convinced of the
truth; but with some the impressions received were not lasting. There
was another class who did not at the time express their convictions,
but who, having searched the Scriptures for themselves, at a future
time declared with great boldness for the Reformation.
The elector Frederick had looked forward with anxiety
to Luther's appearance before the Diet, and with deep emotion he
listened to his speech. He rejoiced at the doctor's courage, firmness,
and self-possession, and was proud of being his protector. (136)
He contrasted the parties in contest, and saw that the wisdom of popes,
kings, and prelates had been brought to naught by the power of truth.
The papacy had sustained a defeat which would be felt among all nations
and in all ages.
As the legate perceived the effect produced by
Luther's speech, he feared, as never before, for the security of the
Romish power, and resolved to employ every means at his command to
effect the Reformer's overthrow. With all the eloquence and diplomatic
skill for which he was so eminently distinguished, he represented to
the youthful emperor the folly and danger of sacrificing, in the cause
of an insignificant monk, the friendship and support of the powerful
see of Rome.
His words were not without effect. On the day
following Luther's answer, Charles Fifth caused a message to be
presented to the Diet, announcing his determination to carry out the
policy of his predecessors to maintain and protect the Catholic
religion. Since Luther had refused to renounce his errors, the most
vigorous measures should be employed against him and the heresies he
taught. Nevertheless, the safe-conduct granted him must be respected,
and before proceedings against him could be instituted, he must be
allowed to reach his home in safety.
"I am firmly resolved to tread in the footsteps of my
ancestors," wrote the monarch. He decided that he would not step out of
the path of custom, even to walk in the ways of truth and
righteousness. Because his fathers did, he would uphold the papacy,
with all its cruelty and corruption. Thus he took his position,
refusing to accept any light in advance (137) of what his fathers had received, or to perform any duty that they had not performed.
He seemed to feel that a change of religious views
would be inconsistent with the dignity of a king. There are many at the
present day thus clinging to the customs and traditions of their
fathers. When the Lord sends them additional light, they refuse to
accept it, because , not having been granted to their fathers, it was
not received by them. We are not placed where our fathers were;
consequently our duties and responsibilities are not the same as
theirs. We shall not be approved of God in looking to the example of
our fathers to determine our duty instead of searching the word of
truth for ourselves. Our responsibility is greater than was that of our
ancestors. We are accountable for the light which they received, and
which was handed down as an inheritance for us, and we are accountable
also for the additional light which is now shining upon us from the
word of God.
Said Christ of the unbelieving Jews, "If I had not
come and spoken unto them, they had not had sin; but now they have no
cloak for their sin." John 15:22. The same divine power had spoken
through Luther to the emperor and princes of Germany. And as the light
shone forth from God's word, his Spirit pleaded for the last time with
many in that assembly. As Pilate, centuries before, permitted pride and
popularity to close his heart against the world's Redeemer; as the
trembling Felix bade the messenger of truth, "Go they way for this
time; when I have a convenient season I will call for thee;" as the
proud Agrippa (138) confessed, "Almost thou persuadest me to be
a Christian," yet turned away from the Heaven-sent message,--so had
Charles Fifth, yielding to the dictates of worldly pride and policy,
decided to reject the light of truth.
Several of the pope's adherents demanded that
Luther's safe-conduct should not be respected. "The Rhine," they said,
"should receive his ashes, as it received those of John Huss a century
ago." Rumors of the designs against Luther were widely circulated,
causing great excitement throughout the city. The Reformer had made
many friends, who, knowing the treacherous cruelty of Rome toward all
that dared expose her corruptions, resolved that he should not be
sacrificed. Hundreds of nobles pledged themselves to protect him. Not a
few openly denounced the royal message as evincing a weak submission to
the con-trolling power of Rome. On the gates of houses and in public
places, placards were posted, some condemning and others sustaining
Luther. On one of them were written merely the significant words of the
wise man, "Woe to thee, O land, when thy king is a child." The popular
enthusiasm in Luther's favor throughout all Germany convinced both the
emperor and the Diet that any injustice shown him would endanger the
peace of the empire, and even the stability of the throne.
Frederick of Saxony maintained a studied reserve,
carefully concealing his real feelings toward the Reformer, while at
the same time he guarded him with tireless vigilance, watching all his
movements and all those of his enemies. But there were many who made no
attempt to conceal their (139) sympathy. Princes, knights,
gentlemen, ecclesiastics, and common people surrounded Luther's
lodgings, entering and gazing upon him as though he were more than
human. Even those who believed him to be in error could not but admire
that nobility of soul which led him to imperil his life rather than
violate his conscience.
Earnest efforts were made to obtain Luther's consent
to a compromise with Rome. Nobles and princes represented to him that
if he persisted in setting up his own judgment against that of the
church and the councils, he would soon be banished from the empire, and
then would have no defense. To this appeal Luther answered: "It is
impossible to preach the gospel of Christ without offense. Why, then,
should the fear of danger separate me from the Lord and that divine
word which alone is truth? No; I would rather give up my body, my
blood, and my life."
Again he was urged to submit to the judgment of the
emperor, and then he would have nothing to fear. "I consent," said he
in reply, "with all my heart, that the emperor, the princes, and even
the humblest Christian, should examine and judge my writings; but on
one condition, that they take God's word for their guide. Men have
nothing to do but render obedience to that. My conscience is in
dependence upon that word, and I am the subject of its authority."
To another appeal he said, "I consent to forego my
safe-conduct, and resign my person and my life to the emperor's
disposal; but as to the word of God--never!" He stated his willingness
to submit to the decision of a general council, but only on (140)
condition that the council be required to decide according to the
Scriptures. Both friends and foes were at last convinced that further
effort for reconciliation would be useless.
Had the Reformer yielded a single point, Satan and
his hosts would have gained the victory. But his unwavering firmness
was the means of emancipating the church, and beginning a new and
better era. The influence of this one man, who dared to think and act
for himself in religious matters, was to affect the church and the
world, not only in his own time, but in all future generations. His
firmness and fidelity would strengthen all, to the close of time, who
should pass through a similar experience. The power and majesty of God
stood forth above the counsel of men, above the mighty power of Satan.
Luther was soon commanded by the authority of the
emperor to return home, and he knew that this notice would be speedily
followed by his condemnation. Threatening clouds overhung his path; but
as he departed from Worms, his heart was filled with joy and praise.
"Satan himself," said he, "kept the pope's citadel; but Christ has made
a wide breach in it, and the devil has been compelled to confess that
Christ is mightier than he." On this journey the Reformer received the
most flattering attentions from all classes. Dignitaries of the church
welcomed the monk upon whom the pope's curse rested, and secular
officers honored the man who was under the ban of the empire.
He had not been long absent from Worms, when the
papists prevailed upon the emperor to issue an edict against him. In
this decree Luther was de-denounced as "Satan himself under the
semblance of (141) a man in a monk's hood." It was commanded
that as soon as his safe-conduct should expire, measures be taken to
stop his work. All persons were forbidden to harbor him, to give him
food or drink, or by word or act, in public or private, to aid or abet
him. He was to be seized wherever he might be, and delivered to the
authorities. His adherents also were to be imprisoned, and their
property confiscated. His writings were to be destroyed, and finally,
all who should dare to act contrary to this decree were included in its
condemnation. The emperor had spoken, and the Diet had given its
sanction to the decree. The Romanists were jubilant. Now they
considered the fate of the Reformation sealed.
God had provided a way of escape for his servant in
his hour of peril. A vigilant eye had followed Luther's movements, and
a true and noble heart had resolved upon his rescue. It was plain that
Rome would be satisfied with nothing short of his death; only by
concealment could he be preserved from the jaws of the lion. God gave
wisdom to Frederick of Saxony to devise a plan for the Reformer's
preservation. With the co-operation of true friends, the elector's
purpose was carried out, and Luther was effectually hidden from friends
and foes. Upon his homeward journey, he was seized, separated from his
attendants, and hurriedly conveyed through the forests to the castle of
Wartburg, an isolated mountain fortress. Both his seizure and his
concealment were so involved in mystery that even Frederick himself for
a long time knew not whither he had been conducted. This ignorance was
not without design: so long as the elector knew nothing of Luther's
whereabouts, he could reveal nothing. He satisfied (142) himself that the Reformer was safe, and with this knowledge he was content.
Spring, summer, and autumn passed, and winter came,
and Luther still remained a prisoner. Aleander and his partisans
rejoiced that the light of the gospel seemed about to be extinguished.
But instead of this, the Reformer was filling his lamp from the
store-house of truth, to shine forth in due time with brighter
radiance.
In the friendly security of the Wartburg, Luther for
a time rejoiced in his release from the heat and turmoil of battle. But
he could not long find satisfaction in quiet and repose.
Accustomed to a life of activity and stern conflict,
he could ill endure to remain inactive. In those solitary days, the
condition of the church rose up before him, and he cried in despair,
"Alas! there is no one in this latter day of His anger to stand like a
wall before the Lord, and save Israel!" Again, his thoughts returned to
himself, and he feared being charged with cowardice in withdrawing from
the contest. Then he reproached himself for his indolence and
self-indulgence. Yet at the same time he was daily accomplishing more
than it seemed possible for one man to do. His pen was never idle.
While his enemies flattered themselves that he was silenced, they were
astonished and confused by tangible proof that he was still active. A
host of tracts, issuing from his pen, circulated throughout Germany. He
also performed a most important service for his countrymen by
translating the New Testament into the German tongue. From his rocky
Patmos he continued for nearly a whole year to proclaim the gospel, and
rebuke the sins and errors of the times.
(143)
But it was not merely to preserve Luther from the wrath of his enemies,
nor even to afford him a season of quiet for these important labors,
that God had withdrawn his servant from the stage of public life. There
were results more precious than these to be secured. In the solitude
and obscurity of his mountain retreat, Luther was removed from earthy
supports, and shut out from human praise. He was thus saved from the
pride and self-confidence that are so often caused by success. By
suffering and humiliation he was prepared again to walk safely upon the
dizzy heights to which he had been so suddenly exalted.
As men rejoice in the freedom which the truth brings
them, they are inclined to extol those whom God has employed to break
the chains of error and superstition. Satan seeks to divert men's
thoughts and affections from God, and fix them upon human agencies; to
honor the mere instrument, and to ignore the Hand that directs all the
events of providence. Too often, religious leaders who are thus praised
and reverenced lose sight of their dependence upon God, and are led to
trust in themselves. As a result, they seek to control the minds and
consciences of the people, who are disposed to look to them for
guidance instead of looking to the word of God. The work of reform is
often retarded because of this spirit indulged by its supporters. From
this danger, God would guard the cause of the Reformation. He desired
that work to receive, not the impress of man, but of God. The eyes of
men had been turned to Luther as the expounder of the truth; he was
removed that all eyes might be directed to the eternal Author of truth.
CHAPTER 8
PROGRESS OF THE REFORMATION
(144)
Luther's mysterious disappearance excited consternation throughout all
Germany. Inquiries concerning him were heard everywhere. Even his
enemies were more agitated by his absence than they could have been by
his presence. The wildest rumors were circulated, and many believed
that he had been murdered. There was great lamentation, not only by his
avowed friends, but by thousands who had not openly taken their stand
with the Reformation. Many bound themselves by a solemn oath to avenge
his death.
The Romanists saw with terror to what a pitch had
risen the feeling against them. Though at first exultant at the
supposed death of Luther, they now desired to hide from the wrath of
the people. Those who were enraged against him when he was at large,
were filled with fear now that he was in captivity. "The only way of
extricating ourselves," said one, "is to light our torches, and go
searching through the earth for Luther, till we can restore him to a
nation that will have him." The edict of the emperor seemed to fall
powerless. The papal legates were filled with indignation as they saw
that it commanded far less attention than did the fate of Luther.
(145)
The tidings that he was safe, though a prisoner, calmed the fears of
the people, while it still further aroused their enthusiasm in his
favor. His writings were read with greater eagerness than ever before.
Increasing numbers joined the cause of the heroic man who had, at such
fearful odds, defended the word of God. The Reformation was constantly
gaining in strength. The seed which Luther had sown sprung up
everywhere. His absence accomplished a work which his presence would
have failed to do. Other laborers felt a new responsibility, now that
their great leader was removed. With new faith and earnestness they
pressed forward to do all in their power, that the work so nobly begun
might not be hindered.
But Satan was not idle. He now attempted what he has
attempted in every other reformatory movement,--to deceive and destroy
the people by palming off upon them a counterfeit in place of the true
work. As there were false christs in the first century of the Christian
church, so there arose false prophets in the sixteenth century.
A few men, deeply affected by the excitement in the
religious world, imagined themselves to have received special
revelations from Heaven, and claimed to have been divinely commissioned
to carry forward to its completion the Reformation but feebly begun by
Luther. In truth, they were undoing the very work which he had
accomplished. They rejected the fundamental principle of the
Reformation,--the word of God as the all-sufficient rule of faith and
practice; and for that unerring guide they substituted the changeable,
uncertain standard of their own feelings (146) and impressions.
By this act of setting aside the great detector of error and falsehood,
the way was opened for Satan to control minds as best pleased himself.
One of these prophets claimed to have been instructed
by the angel Gabriel. A student who united with him abandoned his
studies, declaring that he had received from God himself the ability to
explain the Scriptures. Others who were naturally inclined to
fanaticism united with them. The proceedings of these enthusiasts
created no little excitement. The preaching of Luther had aroused the
people everywhere to feel the necessity of reform, and now some really
honest persons were misled by the pretensions of the new prophets.
The leaders of the movement repaired to Wittemberg,
and urged their claims upon Melancthon and his co-laborers. Said they:
"We are sent by God to teach the people. We have received special
revelations from God himself, and therefore know what is coming to
pass. We are apostles and prophets, and appeal to Doctor Luther as to
the truth of what we say."
The Reformers were astonished and perplexed. This was
such an element as they had never before encountered, and they knew not
what course to pursue. Said Melancthon: "There are indeed spirits of no
ordinary kind in these men; but what spirits?" "On the one hand, let us
beware of quenching the Spirit of God, and on the other, of being
seduced by the spirit of Satan."
The fruit of the new teaching soon became apparent. The minds of the people were diverted from (147)
the word of God, or decidedly prejudiced against it. The schools were
thrown into confusion. Students, spurning all restraint, abandoned
their studies. The men who thought themselves competent to revive and
control the work of the Reformation, succeeded only in bringing it to
the very brink of ruin. The Romanists now regained their confidence,
and exclaimed exultingly, "One more effort, and all will be ours."
Luther at the Wartburg, hearing of what had occurred,
said with deep concern, "I always expected that Satan would send us
this plague." He perceived the true character of those pretended
prophets, and saw the danger that threatened the cause of truth. The
opposition of the pope and the emperor had not caused him so great
perplexity and distress as he now experienced. From the professed
friends of the Reformation had risen its worst enemies. The very truths
which had brought peace to his troubled heart had been made the cause
of dissension in the church.
In the work of reform, Luther had been urged forward
by the Spirit of God, and had been carried beyond himself. He had not
purposed to take such positions as he did, or to make so radical
changes. He had been but the instrument in the hands of infinite power.
Yet he often trembled for the result of his work. He had once said, "If
I knew that my doctrine had injured one human being, however poor and
unknown,--which it could not, for it is the very gospel,--I would
rather face death ten times over than not retract it."
And now a whole city, and that city Wittemberg (148) itself,
was fast sinking into confusion. The doctrines taught by Luther had not
caused this evil; but throughout Germany his enemies were charging it
upon him. In bitterness of soul he sometimes asked, "Can such be the
end of this great work of the Reformation?" Again, as he wrestled with
God in prayer, peace flowed into his heart. "The work is not mine, but
thine own," he said; "thou wilt not suffer it to be corrupted by
superstition or fanaticism." But the thought of remaining longer from
the conflict in such a crisis, became insupportable. He determined to
return to Wittemberg.
Without delay he set out on his perilous journey. He
was under the ban of the empire. Enemies were at liberty to take his
life; friends were forbidden to aid or shelter him. The imperial
government was adopting the most stringent measures against his
adherents. But he saw that the work of the gospel was imperiled, and in
the name of the Lord he went forth once more to battle for the truth.
With great caution and humility, yet with decision
and firmness, he entered upon his work. "By the word," said he, "we
must refute and expel what has gained a place and influence by
violence. I would not resort to force against the superstitious and
unbelieving." "Let there be no compulsion. I have been laboring for
liberty of conscience. Liberty is the very essence of faith." Ascending
the pulpit, he with great wisdom and gentleness instructed, exhorted,
and reproved, and by the power of the gospel brought back the misguided
people into the way of truth.
Luther had no desire to encounter the fanatics (149)
whose course had been productive of so great evil. He knew them to be
men of hasty and violent temper, who, while claiming to be especially
illuminated from Heaven, would not endure the slightest contradiction,
or even the kindest admonition. Arrogating to themselves supreme
authority, they required every one, without a question, to acknowledge
their claims. But as they demanded an interview with him, he consented
to meet them; and so successfully did he expose their pretensions, that
the impostors at once departed from Wittemberg.
The fanaticism was checked for a time; but several
years later it broke out with greater violence and more terrible
results. Said Luther, concerning the leaders in this movement: "To them
the Holy Scriptures were but a dead letter, and they all began to cry,
'The Spirit! the Spirit' But most assuredly I will not follow where
their spirit leads them. May God in his mercy preserve me from a church
in which there are none but saints. I wish to be in fellowship with the
humble, the feeble, the sick, who know and feel their sins, and who
sigh and cry continually to God from the bottom of their hearts to
obtain his consolation and support."
Thomas Munzer, the most active of the fanatics, was a
man of considerable ability, which, rightly directed, would have
enabled him to do good; but he had not learned the first principles of
true religion. He imagined himself ordained of God to reform the world,
forgetting, like many other enthusiasts, that the reform should begin
with himself. He was ambitious to obtain position and influence, and
unwilling to be second, even to Luther. He charged the (150)
Reformers with establishing, by their adherence to the Bible alone, a
species of popery. He considered himself called of God to remedy the
evil, and held that manifestations of the Spirit were the means by
which this was to be accomplished, and that he who had the Spirit
possessed the true faith, though he might never see the written word.
The fanatical teachers gave themselves up to be
governed by impressions, calling every thought of the mind the voice of
God; consequently they went to great extremes. Some even burned their
Bibles, exclaiming, "The letter killeth, but the Spirit giveth life."
Men naturally love the marvelous, and whatever flatters their pride,
and many were ready to accept Munzer's teachings. He soon denounced all
order in public worship, and declared that to obey princes was to
attempt to serve both God and Belial.
The minds of the people, already beginning to throw
off the yoke of the papacy, were also becoming impatient under the
restraints of civil authority. Munzer's revolutionary teachings,
claiming divine sanction, led them to break away from all control, and
give the rein to their prejudices and passions. The most terrible
scenes of sedition and strife followed and the fields of Germany were
drenched with blood.
The agony of soul which Luther had so long before
experienced in his cell at Erfurth, now pressed upon him the redoubled
power as he saw the results of fanaticism charged upon the Reformation.
The papist princes declared, and many believed, that Luther's doctrine
had been the cause to the rebellion. Although this charge was without
the slightest foundation, it could not but cause the Reformer great (151)
distress. That the work of Heaven should be thus degraded by being
classed with the basest fanaticism, seemed more than he could endure.
On the other hand, the leaders in the revolt hated Luther because he
had not only opposed their doctrines and denied their claims to divine
inspiration, but had pronounced them rebels against the civil
authority. In retaliation they denounced him as a base pretender. He
seemed to have brought upon himself the enmity of both princes and
people.
The Romanists exulted, expecting to witness the
speedy downfall of the Reformation; and they blamed Luther, even for
the errors which he had been most earnestly endeavoring to correct. The
fanatical party, by falsely claiming to have been treated with great
injustice, succeeded in gaining the sympathies of a large class of the
people, and, as is usually the case with those who take the wrong side,
they came to be regarded as martyrs. Thus the ones who were exerting
every energy in opposition to the Reformation were pitied and lauded as
the victims of cruelty and oppression. This was the work of Satan,
prompted by the same spirit of rebellion which was first manifested in
Heaven.
Satan is constantly seeking to deceive men, and lead
them to call sin righteousness, and righteousness sin. How successful
has been his work! How often are censure and reproach cast upon God's
faithful servants because they will stand fearlessly in defense of the
truth! Men who are but agents of Satan are praised and flattered, and
even looked upon as martyrs, while those who should be respected and
sustained for their fidelity to God, are left to stand alone, under
suspicion and distrust.
(152)
Counterfeit holiness, spurious sanctification, is still doing its work
of deception. Under various forms it exhibits the same spirit as in the
days of Luther, diverting minds from the Scriptures, and leading men to
follow their own feelings and impressions rather than to yield
obedience to the law of God. This is one of Satan's most successful
devices to cast reproach upon purity and truth.
Fearlessly did Luther defend the gospel from the
attacks which came from every quarter. The word of God proved itself a
weapon mighty in every conflict. With that word he warred against the
usurped authority of the pope, and the rationalistic philosophy of the
schoolmen, while he stood firm as a rock against the fanaticism that
sought to ally itself with the Reformation.
Each of these opposing elements was in its own way
setting aside the Holy Scriptures, and exalting human wisdom as the
source of religious truth and knowledge. Rationalism idolizes reason,
and makes this the criterion for religion. Romanism, claiming for her
sovereign pontiff an inspiration descended in unbroken line from the
apostles, and unchangeable through all time, gives ample opportunity
for every species of extravagance and corruption to be concealed under
the sanctity of the apostolic commission. The inspiration claimed by
Munzer and his associates proceeded from no higher source than the
vagaries of the imagination, and its influence was subversive of all
authority, human or divine. True Christianity receives the word of God
as the great treasure-house of inspired truth, and the test of all
inspiration.
Upon his return from the Wartburg, Luther (153)
completed his translation of the New Testament, and the gospel was soon
after given to the people of Germany in their own language. This
translation was received with great joy by all who loved the truth; but
it was scornfully rejected by those who chose human traditions and the
commandments of men.
The priests were alarmed at the thought that the
common people would now be able to discuss with them the precepts of
God's word, and that their own ignorance would thus be exposed. The
weapons of their carnal reasoning were powerless against the sword of
the Spirit. Rome summoned all her authority to prevent the circulation
of the Scriptures; but decrees, anathemas, and tortures were alike in
vain. The more she condemned and prohibited the Bible, the greater was
the anxiety of the people to know what it really taught. All who could
read were eager to study the word of God for themselves. They carried
it about with them, and read and re-read, and could not be satisfied
until they had committed large portions to memory. Seeing the favor
with which the New Testament was received, Luther immediately began the
translation of the Old, and published it in parts as fast as completed.
Luther's writings were welcomed alike in city and in
hamlet. At night the teachers of the village schools read them aloud to
little groups gathered at the fireside. With every effort, some souls
would be convicted of the truth, and, receiving the word with gladness,
would in their turn tell the good news to others.
The words of inspiration were verified: "The entrance
of thy words giveth light; it giveth understanding (154) unto
the simple." Ps. 119:130. The study of the Scriptures was working a
mighty change in the minds and hearts of the people. The papal rule had
placed upon its subjects an iron yoke which held them in ignorance and
degradation. A superstitious observance of forms had been scrupulously
maintained; but in all their service the heart and intellect had had
little part. The preaching of Luther, setting forth the plain truths of
God's word, and then the word itself, placed in the hands of the common
people, had aroused their dormant powers, not only purifying and
ennobling the spiritual nature, but imparting new strength and vigor to
the intellect.
Persons of all ranks were to be seen with the Bible
in their hands, defending the doctrines of the Reformation. The papists
who had left the study of the Scriptures to the priests and monks, now
called upon them to come forward and refute the new teachings. But,
ignorant alike of the Scriptures and of the power of God, priests and
friars were totally defeated by those whom they had denounced as
unlearned and heretical. "Unhappily:," said a Catholic writer, "Luther
had persuaded his followers that their faith ought only to be founded
on the oracles of Holy Writ." Crowds would gather to hear the truth
advocated by men of little education, and even discussed by them with
learned and eloquent theologians. The shameful ignorance of these great
men was made apparent as their arguments were met by the simple
teachings of God's word. Women and children, artisans and soldiers, had
a better knowledge of the Scriptures than had learned doctors or
surpliced priests.
(155)
As the Romish clergy saw their congregations diminishing, they invoked
the aid of the magistrates, and by every means in their power
endeavored to bring back their hearers. But the people had found in the
new teachings that which supplied the wants of their souls, and they
turned away from those who had so long fed them with the worthless
husks of superstitious rites and human traditions.
When persecution was kindled against the teachers of
the truth, they gave heed to the words of Christ, "When they persecute
you in this city flee ye into another." Matt. 10:23. The light
penetrated everywhere. The fugitives would find somewhere a hospitable
door opened to them, and there abiding, they would preach Christ,
sometimes in the church, or, if denied that privilege, in private
houses or in the open air. Wherever they could obtain a hearing was a
consecrated temple. The truth, proclaimed with such energy and
assurance, spread with irresistible power.
In vain were both ecclesiastical and civil
authorities invoked to crush the heresy. In vain they resorted to
imprisonment, torture, fire, and sword. Thousands of believers sealed
their faith with their blood, and yet the work went on. Persecution
served only to extend the truth; and the fanaticism which Satan
endeavored to unite with it, resulted in making more clear the contrast
between the work of Satan and the work of God.
CHAPTER 9
PROTEST OF THE PRINCES
(156)
One of the noblest testimonies ever uttered for the Reformation was the
Protest offered by the Christian princes of Germany at the Diet of
Spires. The courage, faith, and firmness of these men of God, gained
for succeeding ages liberty of thought and of conscience. Their Protest
gave to the reformed church the name of Protestant; its principles are
the very essence of Protestantism.
A dark and threatening day had come for the
Reformation. For a season religious toleration had prevailed in the
empire; God's providence had held opposing elements in check, that the
gospel might obtain a firmer foothold; but Rome had now summoned her
forces to crush out the truth. At Spires the papists openly manifested
their hostility toward the Reformers and all who favored them. Said
Melancthon, "We are the execration and the sweepings of the earth; but
Christ will look down on his poor people, and will preserve them." The
evangelical princes in attendance at the Diet were forbidden even to
have the gospel preached in their dwellings. But the people of Spires
thirsted for the word of God, and, notwithstanding the prohibition,
thousands flocked to the morning and evening worship still held in the
chapel of the Elector of Saxony.
(157)
This hastened the crisis. An imperial message announced to the Diet
that as the resolution granting liberty of conscience had given rise to
great disorders, the emperor declared it to be annulled. This arbitrary
act excited the indignation and alarm of the evangelical Christians.
Said one, "Christ has again fallen into the hands of Caiaphas and
Pilate." The Romanist became more violent. A bigoted papist declared,
"The Turks are better than the Lutherans; for the Turks observe
fast-days, and the Lutherans violate them. If we must choose between
the Holy Scriptures of God and the old errors of the church, we should
reject the former." Said Melancthon, "Every day, in full assembly,
Faber casts some new stone against the Gospellers."
Religious toleration had been legally established,
and the evangelical States were resolved to oppose the infringement of
their rights. Luther, being still under the ban imposed by the edict of
Worms, was not permitted to be present at Spires; but his place was
supplied by his co-laborers and the princes whom God had raised up to
defend his cause in this emergency. The noble Frederick of Saxony,
Luther's former protector, had been removed by death; but Duke John his
brother, who succeeded to the throne, had joyfully welcomed the
Reformation, and while a friend of peace, he displayed great energy and
courage in all matters relating to the interests of the faith.
The priests demanded that the States which had
accepted the Reformation submit implicitly to Romish jurisdiction. The
Reformers, on the other hand, claimed the liberty which had previously
been (158) granted. They could not consent that Rome should
again bring under her control those nations that had with so great joy
received the word of God. The Diet finally decreed, that where the
Reformation had not become established, the edict of Worms should be
rigorously enforced; and that in the evangelical States, where there
would be danger of revolt, no new reform should be introduced, there
should be no preaching upon disputed points, the celebration of the
mass should not be opposed, and no Roman Catholic should be permitted
to embrace Lutheranism.
If this decree became a law, the Reformation could
neither be extended where as yet it had not reached, nor be established
on a firm foundation where it already existed. Liberty of speech would
be prohibited. No conversions would be allowed. And to these
restrictions and prohibitions the friends of the Reformation were
required at once to submit. The hopes of the world seemed about to be
extinguished. The re-establishment of the papal hierarchy would
inevitably cause a revival of the ancient abuses; and an occasion would
readily be found for completing the destruction of a work that had
already been shaken by fanaticism and dissension.
As the evangelical party met for consultation, one
looked to another in blank dismay. From one to another passed the
inquiry, "What is to be done?" Mighty issues for the world were at
stake. Had these men been controlled by ambition or selfishness, they
might have accepted the decree. They themselves were apparently left
free to maintain their faith. Ought they not to be satisfied with this?
Should (159) they throw themselves into the conflict to wrestle
for liberty of conscience in all the world? Should they expose
themselves to the vengeance of Rome?
Never were these men placed in a more trying
position; but they came forth from the test with principles unsullied.
As the mist that had hovered over their minds cleared away, they saw
what would be the result of this decree. Should they lend their
influence to restore the stake and the torture? Should they oppose the
advancement of truth,--oppose the Spirit of God in its work of calling
men to Christ? Could they refuse obedience to the Saviour's command,
"Go ye into all the world, and preach the gospel to every creature"?
Mark 16:15. Ought they to consent that those who might desire to
renounce error should be denied the privilege? Having entered the
kingdom of Heaven themselves, should they bar the way so that others
could not enter? Rather would they sacrifice their dominions, their
titles, and their own lives.
"Let us reject this decree, " said the princes. "In
matters of conscience the majority has no power." The deputies declared
that Germany was indebted to the decree of toleration for the peace
which she enjoyed, and that its abolition would fill the empire with
troubles and divisions. "The Diet is incompetent," said they, "to do
more than preserve religious liberty until a council meets." To protect
liberty of conscience is the duty of the State, and this is the limit
of its authority in matters of religion. Every secular government that
attempts to regulate or enforce religious observances by civil
authority is sacrificing (160) the very principle for which the evangelical Christians so nobly struggled.
The papists determined to put down what they termed
daring obstinacy. They began by endeavoring to cause divisions among
the supporters of the Reformation, and to intimidate all who had not
openly declared in its favor. The princes were at last summoned before
the Diet. They pleaded for delay, but in vain. Those who still refused
to sacrifice liberty of conscience and the right of individual judgment
well knew that their position marked them for future criticism,
condemnation, and persecution. Said one of the Reformers, "We must
either deny the word of God or--be burned."
King Ferdinand, the emperor's representative at the
Diet, saw that the decree would cause serious divisions unless the
princes could be induced to accept and sustain it. He therefore tried
the art of persuasion, well knowing that to employ force with such men
would only render them more determined. He begged them to accept the
decree, assuring them that such an act would be highly gratifying to
the emperor. But these faithful men acknowledged an authority above
that of earthly rulers, and they answered calmly, "We will obey the
emperor in everything that may contribute to maintain peace and the
honor of God."
In the presence of the Diet, the king at last
announced to the elector and his friends that their only remaining
course was to submit to the majority. Having thus spoken, he withdrew
from the assembly, giving the Reformers no opportunity for deliberation
or reply. In vain they sent messengers entreating (161) him to return. To their remonstrances he answered only, "It is a settled affair; submission is all that remains."
The imperial party were convinced that the Christian
princes would adhere to the Holy Scriptures as superior to human
doctrines and requirements; and they knew that an acceptance of this
principle would eventually overthrow the papacy. But they flattered
themselves that weakness was on the side of the Reformation, while
strength was with the emperor and the pope. Had the Reformers made
flesh their arm, they would have been as powerless as the papists
supposed. But though weak in numbers, and at variance with Rome, they
had their strength. They appealed from the decision of the Diet to the
word of God, and from the emperor of Germany to the King of kings and
Lord of lords.
As Ferdinand had refused to regard their
conscientious convictions, the princes decided not to heed his absence,
but to bring their Protest before the national council without delay. A
solemn declaration was therefore drawn up, and presented to the Diet:--
"We protest by these presents, before God, our only
Creator, Preserver, Redeemer, and Saviour, and who will one day be our
Judge, as well as before all men and all creatures, that we, for us and
our people, neither consent nor adhere in any manner whatever to the
proposed decree in anything that is contrary to God, to his word, to
our right conscience, or to the salvation of our souls....We cannot
assert that when Almighty God calls a man to his knowledge, he dare not
embrace that divine knowledge....There is no true doctrine but that
which (162) conforms to the word of God. The Lord forbids the
teaching of any other faith. The Holy Scriptures, with one text
explained by other and plainer texts, are, in all things necessary for
the Christian, easy to be understood, and adapted to enlighten. We are
therefore resolved by divine grace to maintain the pure preaching of
God's only word, as it is contained in the Scriptures of the Old and
New Testaments, without anything added thereto. This word is the only
truth. It is the sure rule of all doctrine and life, and can never fail
or deceive us. He who builds on this foundation shall stand against all
the powers of hell, whilst all the vanities that are set up against it
shall fall before the face of God." "We therefore reject the yoke that
is imposed upon us."
A deep impression was made upon the Diet. The
majority were filled with amazement and alarm at the boldness of the
protesters. The future appeared to them stormy and uncertain.
Dissension, strife, and bloodshed seemed inevitable. But the Reformers,
assured of the justice of their cause, and relying upon the arm of
Omnipotence, were full of courage and firmness.
The Protest denied the right of civil rulers to
legislate in matters between the soul and God, and declared with
prophets and apostles, "We ought to obey God rather than men." It
rejected also the arbitrary power of the church, and set forth the
unerring principle that all human teaching should be in subjection to
the oracles of God. The protesters had thrown off the yoke of man's
supremacy, and had exalted Christ as supreme in the church, and his
word in the pulpit. The power of conscience was (163) set above
the State, and the authority of the Holy Scriptures above the visible
church. The crown of Christ was uplifted above the pope's tiara and the
emperor's diadem. The protesters had moreover affirmed their right to
freely utter their convictions of truth. They would not only believe
and obey, but teach what the word of God presents, and they denied the
right of priest or magistrate to interfere. The Protest of Spires was a
solemn witness against religious intolerance, and an assertion of the
right of all men to worship according to the dictates of their own
consciences.
The declaration had been made. It was written in the
memory of thousands, and registered in the books of Heaven, where no
effort of man could erase it. All evangelical Germany adopted the
Protest as the expression of its faith. Everywhere men beheld in this
declaration the promise of a new and better era. Said one of the
princes to the Protestants of Spires, "May the Almighty, who has given
you grace to confess energetically, freely, and fearlessly, preserve
you in that Christian firmness until the day of eternity."
Had the Reformation, after attaining a degree of
success, consented to temporize to secure favor with the world, it
would have been untrue to God and to itself, and would thus have
insured its own destruction. The experience of those early reformers
contains a lesson for all succeeding ages. Satan's manner of working
against God and his word has not changed; he is still as much opposed
to the Scriptures being made the guide of life as in the sixteenth
century. In our time there is a wide departure from its doctrines and
precepts, and there is need of a (164) return to the great
Protestant principle,--the Bible and the Bible only as the rule of
faith and duty. Satan is still working through every means which he can
control to destroy religious liberty. The anti-christian power which
the protesters of Spires repudiated, is now with renewed vigor seeking
to re-establish its lost supremacy. The same unswerving adherence to
the word of God manifested at that crisis of the Reformation, is the
only hope of reform to-day.
There appeared tokens of danger to the Protestants.
There were tokens, also, that the divine hand was stretched out to
protect the faithful. It was about this time that Melancthon hurried
his friend Grynaeus through the streets of Spires to the Rhine, and
urged him to cross the river without delay. Grynaeus, in astonishment,
desired to know the reason for this sudden flight. Said Melancthon, "An
old man of grave and solemn aspect, but who is unknown to me, appeared
before me, and said, 'In a minute the officers of justice will be sent
by Ferdinand to arrest Grynaeus.'" On the banks of the Rhine,
Melancthon waited until the waters of that stream interposed between
his beloved friend and those who sought his life. When he saw him on
the other side at last, he said, "He is torn from the cruel jaws of
those who thirst for innocent blood."
Grynaeus had been on intimate terms with a leading
papist doctor; but, having been shocked at one of his sermons, he went
to him, and entreated that he would no longer war against the truth.
The papist concealed his anger, but immediately repaired to the king,
and obtained from him authority to arrest the (165) protester.
When Melancthon returned to his house, he was informed that after his
departure officers in pursuit of Grynaeus had searched it from top to
bottom. He ever believed that the Lord had saved his friend by sending
a holy angel to give him warning.
The Reformation was to be brought into greater
prominence before the mighty ones of the earth. The evangelical princes
had been denied a hearing by King Ferdinand; but they were to be
granted an opportunity to present their cause in the presence of the
emperor and the assembled dignitaries of Church and State. To quiet the
dissensions which disturbed the empire, Charles Fifth convoked a Diet
at Augsburg, over which he announced his intention to preside in
person. Thither the Protestant leaders were summoned.
Great dangers threatened the Reformation; but its
advocates still trusted their cause with God, and pledged themselves to
be firm to the gospel. They determined to prepare a statement of their
views in systematic form, with the evidence from the Scriptures, to
present before the Diet; and the task was committed to Luther,
Melancthon, and their associates. The Confession thus prepared was
accepted by the Protestants as an exposition of their faith, and they
assembled to affix their names to the important document. It was a
solemn and trying time. The Reformers were solicitous that their cause
should not be confounded with political questions; they felt that the
Reformation should exercise no other influence than that which proceeds
from the word of God. As the Christian princes advanced to sign the
Confession, Melancthon interposed, saying, "It is for the (166)
theologians and ministers to propose these things, while the authority
of the mighty ones of earth is to be reserved for other matters." "God
forbid," replied John of Saxony, "that you should exclude me. I am
resolved to do my duty without being troubled about my crown. I desire
to confess the Lord. My electoral hat and robes are not so precious to
me as the cross of Jesus Christ." Having thus spoken, he wrote down his
name. Said another of the princes as he took the pen, "If the honor of
my Lord Jesus Christ requires it, I am ready to leave my goods and life
behind me." "Rather would I renounce my subjects and my States, rather
would I quit the country of my fathers, staff in hand," he continued,
"than to receive any other doctrine than is contained in this
Confession." Such was the faith and daring of those men of God.
The appointed time came to appear before the emperor.
Charles Fifth, seated upon his throne, surrounded by the electors and
the princes, gave audience to the Protestant Reformers. The confession
of their faith was read. In that august assemble the truths of the
gospel were clearly set forth, and the errors of the papal church were
pointed out. Well has that day been pronounced "the greatest day of the
Reformation, and one of the most glorious in the history of
Christianity and of the world."
But a few years had passed since the monk of
Wittemberg stood alone at Worms before the national council. Now in his
stead were the noblest and most powerful princes of the empire. Luther
had been forbidden to appear at Augsburg, but he had been present by
his words and prayers. "I am overjoyed," (167) he wrote, "that
I have lived until this hour, in which Christ has been publicly exalted
by such illustrious confessors, and in so glorious an assembly. Herein
is fulfilled what the Scripture saith, 'I will declare thy testimony in
the presence of kings.'"
In the days of Paul, the gospel for which he was
imprisoned was thus brought before the princes and nobles of the
imperial city. So on this occasion, that which the emperor had
forbidden to be preached from the pulpit, was proclaimed in the palace;
what many had regarded as unfit even for servants to listen to, was
heard with wonder by the masters and lords of the empire. "Kings and
great men were the auditory, crowned princes were the preachers, and
the sermon was the royal truth of God." "Since the apostolic age," say
a writer, "there has never been a greater work, or a more magnificent
confession of Jesus Christ."
"All that the Lutherans have said is true, and we
cannot deny it," declared a papist bishop. "Can you by sound reasons
refute the Confession made by the elector and his allies?" asked
another, of Doctor Eck. "Not with the writings of the apostles and
prophets," was the reply; "but with the Fathers and councils I can." "I
understand, then," responded the questioner, "that the Lutherans are
entrenched in the Scriptures, and we are only outside." Some of the
princes of Germany were won to the reformed faith. The emperor himself
declared that the Protestant articles were but the truth. The
Confession was translated into many languages, and circulated through
all Europe, and it has been accepted by millions in succeeding
generations as the expression of their faith.
(168)
God's faithful builders were not toiling alone. While "principalities
and powers and wicked spirits in high places" were leagued against
them, the Lord did not forsake his people. Could their eyes have been
opened, they would have seen as marked evidence of divine presence and
aid as was granted to a prophet of old. When Elisha's servant pointed
his master to the hostile army surrounding them, and cutting off all
opportunity for escape, the prophet prayed, "Lord, I pray thee, open
his eyes, that he may see." 2 Kings 6:17. And, lo, the mountain was
filled with chariots and horses of fire, the army of Heaven stationed
to protect the man of God. Thus did angels guard the workers in the
cause of the Reformation. God had commanded his servants to build, and
no opposing force could drive them from the walls.
From the secret place of prayer came the power that
shook the world in the Great Reformation. There, with holy calmness,
the servants of the Lord set their feet upon the rock of his promises.
During the struggle at Augsburg, Luther did not fail to devote three
hours each day to prayer; and these were taken from that portion of the
day most favorable to study. In the privacy of his chamber he was heard
to pour out his soul before God in words full of adoration, fear, and
hope, as if speaking to a friend. "I know that thou art our Father and
our God," he said, "and that thou wilt scatter the persecutors of thy
children; for thou art thyself endangered with us. All this matter is
thine, and it is only by thy constraint that we have put our hands to
it. Defend us then, O Father!" To Melancthon, who was crushed (168)
under the burden of anxiety and fear, he wrote: "Grace and peace in
Christ! In Christ, I say, and not in the world, Amen! I hate with
exceeding hatred those extreme cares which consume you. If the cause is
unjust, abandon it; if the cause is just, why should we belie the
promises of Him who commands us to sleep without fear?" "Christ will
not be wanting to the work of justice and truth. He lives, he reigns;
what fear, then, can we have?"
God did listen to the cries of his servants. He gave
to princes and ministers grace and courage to maintain the truth
against the rulers of the darkness of this world. Saith the Lord,
"Behold, I lay in Zion a chief corner-stone, elect, precious, and he
that believeth on him shall not be confounded." 1 Peter 2:6. The
Protestant Reformers had built on Christ, and the gates of hell could
not prevail against them.
CHAPTER 10
LATER REFORMERS
(170)
While Luther was opening a closed Bible to the people of Germany,
Tyndale was impelled by the Spirit of God to do the same for England.
He was a diligent student of the Scriptures, and fearlessly preached
his convictions of truth, urging that all doctrines be brought to the
test of God's word. His zeal could not but excite opposition from the
papists. A learned Catholic doctor who engaged in controversy with him
exclaimed, "It were better for us to be without God's law than without
the pope's." Tyndale replied, "I defy the pope and all his laws; and if
God spare my life, ere many years I will cause a boy who driveth the
plow to know more of the Scriptures than you do.
The purpose which he had begun to cherish, of giving
to the people the New Testament Scriptures in their own language, was
now confirmed, and he immediately applied himself to the work. Driven
from his home by persecution, he went to London, and there for a time
pursued his labors undisturbed. But again the violence of the papists
forced him to flee. All England seemed closed against him, and he
resolved to seek shelter in Germany. Here he began the printing of the
English New Testament. (171) Twice the work was stopped; but
when forbidden to print in one city, he went to another. At last he
made his way to Worms, where, a few years before, Luther had defended
the gospel before the Diet. In that ancient city were many friends of
the Reformation, and Tyndale there prosecuted his work without further
hindrance. Three thousand copies of the New Testament were soon
finished, and another edition followed in the same year.
With great earnestness and perseverance he continued
his labors. Notwithstanding the English authorities had guarded their
ports with the strictest vigilance, the word of God was in various ways
secretly conveyed to London, and thence circulated throughout the
country. The papist attempted to suppress the truth, but in vain. The
bishop of Durham at one time bought of a bookseller who was a friend of
Tyndale, his whole stock of Bibles, for the purpose of destroying them,
supposing that this would greatly hinder the work. But, on the
contrary, the money thus furnished, purchased material for a new and
better edition, which, but for this, could not have been published.
When Tyndale was afterward made a prisoner, his liberty was offered him
on condition that he would reveal the names of those who had helped him
meet the expense of printing his Bibles. He replied that the bishop of
Durham had done more than any other person; for by paying a large price
for the books left on hand, he had enabled him to go on with good
courage.
Tyndale was betrayed into the hands of his enemies,
and at one time suffered imprisonment for many months. He finally
witnessed for his faith by (172) a martyr's death; but the
weapons which he prepared have enabled other soldiers to do battle
through all the centuries even to our time.
In Scotland the gospel found a champion in the person
of John Knox. This true-hearted reformer feared not the face of man.
The fires of martyrdom, blazing around him, served only to quicken his
zeal to greater intensity. With the tyrant's ax held menacingly over
his head, he stood his ground, striking sturdy blows on the right hand
and on the left, to demolish idolatry. Thus he kept to his purpose,
praying and fighting the battles of the Lord, until Scotland was free.
In England, Latimer maintained from the pulpit that
the Bible ought to be read in the language of the people. "The Author
of Holy Scriptures," said he, "is God himself, and this Scripture
partakes of the might and eternity of its Author. There is neither king
nor emperor that is not bound to obey it. Let us beware of those
by-paths of human tradition, full of stones, brambles, and uprooted
trees. Let us follow the straight road of the word. It does not concern
us what the Fathers have done, but rather what they ought to have
done."
Barnes and Frith, the faithful friends of Tyndale,
arose to defend the truth. The Ridleys and Cranmer followed. These
leaders in the English Reformation were men of learning, and most of
them had been highly esteemed for zeal or piety in the Romish
communion. Their opposition to the papacy was the result of their
knowledge of the errors of the holy see. Their acquaintance with the
mysteries of Babylon, gave greater power to their testimonies against
her.
(173)
"Do you know," said Latimer, "who is the most diligent bishop in
England? I see you listening and harkening that I should name him. I
will tell you. It is the devil. He is never out of his diocese; you
shall never find him idle. Call for him when you will, he is ever at
home, he is ever at the plow. You shall never find him remiss, I
warrant you. Where the devil is resident, there away with books, and up
with candles; away with Bibles, and up with beads; away with the light
of the gospel, and up with the light of wax tapers, yea, at noonday;
down with Christ's cross, up with the purgatory pick-purse; away with
clothing the naked, the poor, the impotent; up with the decking of
images and the gay garnishing of stones and stocks; down with God and
his most holy word; up with traditions, human councils, and a blinded
pope. Oh that our prelates would be as diligent to sow the corn of good
doctrine as Satan is to sow cockle and darnel!"
The grand principle maintained by Tyndale, Frith,
Latimer, and the Ridleys, was the divine authority and sufficiency of
the Sacred Scriptures. They rejected the assumed authority of popes,
councils, Fathers, and kings to rule the conscience in matters of
religious faith. The Bible was their standard, and to this they brought
all doctrines and all claims.
Faith in God and his word sustained these holy men as
they yielded up their lives at the stake. "Be of good comfort,"
exclaimed Latimer to his fellow martyr as the flames were about to
silence their voices, "we shall this day light such a candle in England
as, I trust, by God's grace shall never be put out."
(174)
The Church of England, following in the steps of Rome, persecuted
dissenters from the established faith. In the seventeenth century
thousands of godly pastors were expelled from their positions. The
people were forbidden, on pain of heavy fines, imprisonment, and
banishment, to attend any religious meetings except such as were
sanctioned by the church. Those faithful souls who could not refrain
from gathering to worship God, were compelled to met in dark alleys, in
obscure garrets, and at some seasons in the woods at midnight. In the
sheltering depths of the forest, a temple of God's own building, those
scattered and persecuted children of the Lord assembled to pour out
their souls in prayer and praise. But despite all their precautions,
many suffered for their faith. The jails were crowded. Families were
broken up. Many were banished to foreign lands. Yet God was with his
people, and persecution could not prevail to silence their testimony.
Many were driven across the ocean to America, and here laid the
foundations of civil and religious liberty which have been the bulwark
and glory of our country.
As in apostolic days, the persecution turned out
rather to the furtherance of the gospel. In a loathsome dungeon crowded
with profligates and felons, John Bunyan breathed the very atmosphere
of Heaven, and there he wrote his wonderful allegory of the pilgrims's
journey from the land of destruction to the celestial city. For two
hundred years that voice form Bedford jail has spoken with thrilling
power to the hearts of men. Bunyan's "Pilgrim's Progress" and "Grace
Abounding to the Chief of Sinners," have guided many feet into the path
of life.
(175)
Baxter, Flavel, Alleine, and other men of talent, education, and deep
Christian experience, stood up in valiant defense of "the faith once
delivered to the saints." The work accomplished by these men,
proscribed and outlawed by the rulers of this world, can never perish.
Flavel's "Fountain of Life" and "Method of Grace" have taught thousands
how to commit the keeping of their souls to Christ. Baxter's "Reformed
Pastor" has proved a blessing to many who desire a revival of the work
of God, and his "Saints' Everlasting Rest" has done its work in leading
souls to the "rest that remaineth for the people of God."
A hundred years later, in a day of great spiritual
darkness, Whitefield and the Wesleys appeared as light-bearers for God.
Under the rule of the established church, the people of England had
lapsed into a state of religious declension hardly to be distinguished
from heathenism. Natural religion was the favorite study of the clergy,
and included most of their theology. The higher classes sneered at
piety, and prided themselves on being above what they called its
fanaticism. The lower classes were grossly ignorant, and abandoned to
vice, while the church had no courage or faith to any longer support
the downfallen cause of truth.
Whitefield and the Wesleys were prepared for their
work by long and sharp personal convictions of their own lost
condition; and that they might be able to endure hardness as good
soldiers of Christ, they were subjected to the fiery ordeal of scorn,
derision, and persecution, both in the university and as they were
entering the ministry. They and a few others (176) who
sympathized with them were contemptuously called Methodist by their
ungodly fellow-students,--a name which is at the present time regarded
as honorable by one of the largest denominations in England and
America.
They were members of the Church of England, and were
strongly attached to her forms of worship; but the Lord had presented
before them in his word a higher standard. The Holy Spirit urged them
to preach Christ and him crucified. The power of the Highest attended
their labors. Thousands were convicted and truly converted. It was
necessary that these sheep be protected from ravening wolves. Wesley
had no thought of forming a new denomination, but he organized them
under what was called the Methodist Connection.
Mysterious and trying was the opposition which these
preachers encountered from the established church; yet God, in his
wisdom, had overruled events to cause the reform to begin where it did.
Had it come wholly from without, it would not have penetrated where it
was so much needed. As the revival preachers were churchmen, and
labored within the pale of the church wherever they could find
opportunity, the truth had an entrance where the doors would otherwise
have remained closed. Some of the clergy were roused from their moral
stupor, and became zealous preachers in their own parishes. The
churches that had been petrified by formalism were quickened into life.
Men of different gifts performed their appointed
work. They did not harmonize upon every point of doctrine, but all were
moved by the Spirit of God, (177) and united in the absorbing
aim to win souls to Christ. The differences between Whitefield and the
Wesleys threatened at one time to create alienation; but as they
learned meekness in the school of Christ, mutual forbearance and
charity reconciled them. They had no time to dispute, while error and
iniquity were teeming everywhere, and sinners were going down to ruin.
They labored and prayed together, and their friendship was strengthened
as they sowed the gospel seed in the same fields.
The servants of God trod a rugged path. Men of
influence and learning employed their powers against them. After a time
many of the clergy manifested determined hostility, and the doors of
the churches were closed against a pure faith and those who proclaimed
it. The course of the clergy in denouncing them from the pulpit,
aroused the elements of darkness, ignorance, and iniquity. Again and
again did John Wesley escape death by a miracle of God's mercy. When
the rage of the mob was excited against him, and there seemed no way of
escape, an angel in human form came to his side, the mob fell back, and
the servant of Christ passed in safety from the place of danger.
The Methodists of those early days--people as well as
preachers--endured ridicule and persecution, alike from church-members
and from the openly irreligious who were inflamed by their
misrepresentations. They were arraigned before courts of justice--such
only in name, for justice had no place in the courts of that time.
Often they suffered violence from their persecutors. Mobs went from
house to house, destroying furniture and goods, plundering whatever (178)
they chose, and brutally abusing men, women, and children. In some
instances, public notices were posted, calling upon those who desired
to assist in breaking the windows and robbing the houses of the
Methodists to assemble at a given time and place. These open violations
of all law, human and divine, were allowed to pass without a reprimand.
A systematic persecution was carried on against a people whose only
fault was that of seeking to turn the feet of sinners from the path of
destruction to the path of holiness.
Said John Wesley, referring to the charges against
himself and his associates: "Some allege that the doctrines of these
men are false, erroneous, and enthusiastic; that they are new and
unheard-of till of late; that they are Quakerism, fanaticism, popery.
This whole pretense has been already cut up by the roots, it having
been shown at large that every branch of this doctrine is the plain
doctrine of Scripture interpreted by our own church. Therefore it
cannot be false or erroneous, provided the Scripture be true." "Others
allege that their doctrines are too strict; they make the way to Heaven
too narrow; and this is in truth the original objection, as it was
almost the only one for some time, and is secretly at the bottom of a
thousand more which appear in various forms. But do they make the way
to Heaven any narrower than our Lord and his apostles made it? Is their
doctrine stricter than that of the Bible? Consider only a few plain
texts: 'Thou shalt love the Lord thy God with all thy heart, and with
all thy soul, and with all thy strength, and with all thy mind; and thy
neighbor as thyself.' Luke 10:27. 'Every idle (179) word that
men shall speak, they shall give account thereof in the day of
Judgment.' Matt. 12:36 'Whether therefore ye eat, or drink, or
whatsoever ye do, do all to the glory of God.' 1 Cor. 10:31.
"If their doctrine is stricter than this, they are to
blame; but you know in your conscience it is not. And who can be one
jot less strict without corrupting the word of God? Can any steward of
the mysteries of God be found faithful if he change any part of that
sacred deposition?--No; he can abate nothing; he can soften nothing; he
is constrained to declare to all men, I may not bring down the
Scriptures to your taste. You must come up to it, or perish forever.
The popular cry is, The uncharitableness of these men! Uncharitable,
are they? In what respect? Do they not feed the hungry and clothe the
naked? No; that is not the thing; they are not wanting in this, but
they are so uncharitable in judging; they think none can be saved but
those who are of their own way."
How similar are the arguments urged against those who
present the truths of God's word applicable to this time.
Among the reformers of the church an honorable place
should be given to those who stood in vindication of a truth generally
ignored, even by Protestants,--those who maintained the validity of the
fourth commandment, and the obligation of the Bible Sabbath. When the
Reformation swept back the darkness that had rested down on all
Christendom, Sabbath-keepers were brought to light in many lands. No
class of Christians have been treated with (180) greater
injustice by popular historians than have those who honored the
Sabbath. They have been stigmatized as semi-Judaizers, or denounced as
superstitious and fanatical. The arguments which they presented from
the Scriptures in support of their faith were met as such arguments are
still met, with the cry, The Fathers, the Fathers! ancient tradition,
the authority of the church!
Luther and his co-laborers accomplished a noble work
for God; but, coming as they did from the Roman Church, having
themselves believed and advocated her doctrines, it was not to be
expected that they would discern all these errors. It was their work to
break the fetters of Rome, and to give the Bible to the world; yet
there were important truths which they failed to discover, and grave
errors which they did not renounce. Most of them continued to observe
the Sunday with other papal festivals. They did not, indeed, regard it
as possessing divine authority, but believed that it should be observed
as a generally accepted day of worship.
There were some among them, however, who honored the
Sabbath of the fourth commandment. Such was the belief and practice of
Carlstadt, and there were others who united with him. John Frith, who
aided Tyndale in the translation of the Scriptures, and who was
martyred for his faith, thus states his views respecting the Sabbath:
"The Jews have the word of God for their Saturday, since it is the
seventh day, and they were commanded to keep the seventh day solemn.
And we have not the word of God for us, but rather against us; for we
keep not the seventh day, as the Jews do, but the first, which is not
commanded by God's law."
(181)
A hundred years later, John Trask acknowledged the obligation of the
true Sabbath, and employed voice and pen in its defense. He was soon
called to account by the persecuting power of the Church of England. He
declared the sufficiency of the Scriptures as a guide for religious
faith, and maintained that civil authorities should not control the
conscience in matters which concern salvation. He was brought for trial
before the infamous tribunal of the Star Chamber, where a long
discussion was held respecting the Sabbath. Trask would not depart from
the injunctions and commandments of God to obey the commandments of
men. He was therefore condemned, and sentenced to be set upon the
pillory, and thence to be publicly whipped to the fleet, there to
remain a prisoner. This cruel sentence was executed, and after a time
his spirit was broken. He endured his sufferings in the prison for one
year, and then recanted. Oh that he had suffered on, and won a martyr's
crown!
The wife of Trask was also a Sabbath-keeper. She was
declared, even by her enemies, to be a woman endowed with many virtues
worthy the imitation of all Christians. She was a school-teacher of
acknowledged excellence, and was noted for her carefulness in dealing
with the poor. "This ," said her enemies, "she professed to do out of
conscience, as believing she must one day come to be judged for all
things done in the flesh. Therefore she resolved to go by the safest
rule, rather against than for her private interest." Yet it was
declared that she possessed a spirit of strange, unparalleled obstinacy
in adhering to her own opinions, which spoiled her. In truth, she (182)
chose to obey the word of God in preference to the traditions of men.
At last this noble woman was seized and thrust into prison. The charge
brought against her was that she taught only five days in the week, and
rested on Saturday, it being known that she did it in obedience to the
fourth commandment. She was accused of no crime; the motive of her act
was the sole ground of complaint.
She was often visited by her persecutors, who
employed their most wily arguments to induce her to renounce her faith.
In reply, she begged them to show from the Scriptures that she was in
error, and urged that if Sunday were really a holy day, the fact must
be stated in the word of God. But in vain she asked for Bible
testimony. She was exhorted to smother her convictions, and believe
what the church declared to be right.
She refused to purchase liberty by renouncing the
truth. The promises of God sustained her faith: "Fear none of those
things which thou shalt suffer. Behold, the devil shall cast some of
you into prison that ye may be tried." "Be thou faithful unto death,
and I will give thee a crown of life." Rev. 2:10. For nearly sixteen
years this feeble woman remained a prisoner, in privation and great
suffering. The book of God alone can testify what she endured during
those weary years. Faithfully she witnessed for the truth; her patience
and fortitude failed not until she was released by death.
Her name was cast out as evil on earth, but it is
honored in the heavenly records. She was registered among the number
who have been hunted, maligned, (183) cast out, imprisoned,
martyred; "of whom the world was not worthy." "And they shall be mine,
saith the Lord of hosts, in that day when I make up my jewels." Mal.
3:17.
God has, in his providence, preserved the history of
a few of those who suffered for their obedience to the fourth
commandment; but there were many, of whom the world knows nothing, who
for the same truth endured persecution and martyrdom. Those who
oppressed these followers of Christ called themselves Protestants; but
they abjured the fundamental principle of Protestantism,--the Bible and
the Bible only as the rule of faith and practice. The testimony of the
Scriptures they thrust from them with disdain. This spirit still lives,
and it will increase more and more as we near the close of time. Those
who honor the Bible Sabbath are even now pronounced willful and
stubborn by a large share of the Christian world, and the time is not
far distant when the spirit of persecution will be manifested against
them.
In the seventeenth century there were several
Sabbatarian churches in England, while there were hundreds of
Sabbath-keepers scattered throughout the country. Through their labors
this truth was planted in America at an early date. Less than half a
century after the landing of the pilgrims at Plymouth, the
Sabbath-keepers of London sent one of their number to raise the
standard of Sabbath reform in the new world. This missionary held that
the ten commandments as they were delivered from Mount Sinai are moral
and immutable, and that it (184) was the antichristian power
which thought to change times and laws, that had changed the Sabbath
from the seventh to the first day. In Newport, R.I., several
church-members embraced these views, yet continued for some years in
the church with which they had previously been connected. Finally there
arose difficulty between the Sabbatarians and the Sunday observers, and
the former were compelled to withdraw from the church, that they might
peaceably keep God's holy day. Soon after, they entered into an
organization, thus forming the first Sabbath-keeping church in America.
These Sabbath-keepers had flattered themselves that they could obey the
fourth commandment and yet remain connected with sunday observers. It
was a blessing to them and to after-generations that such a union could
not exist; for had it continued, it would eventually have caused the
light of God's holy Sabbath to go out in darkness.
Some years later, a church was formed in New Jersey.
A zealous observer of Sunday, having reproved a person for laboring on
that day, was asked for his authority from the Scriptures. On searching
for this he found, instead, the divine command for keeping the seventh
day, and he began at once to observe it. Through his labors a
Sabbatarian church was raised up.
From that time the work gradually extended, until
thousands began the observance of the Sabbath. Among the Seventh-day
Baptists of this country have been men eminent for talent, learning,
and piety. They have accomplished a great and good work as they have
stood for two hundred years in defense of the ancient Sabbath.
(185)
In the present century few have taken a nobler stand for this truth
than was taken by Eld. J.W.Morton, whose labors and writings in favor
of the Sabbath have led many to its observance. He was sent as a
missionary to Hayti by the Reformed Presbyterians. Sabbatarian
publications fell into his hands, and after giving the subject a
careful examination, he became satisfied that the fourth commandment
requires the observance of the seventh-day Sabbath. Without waiting to
consider his own interests, he immediately determined to obey God. He
returned home, made known his faith, was tried for heresy, and expelled
from the Reformed Presbyterian Church without being allowed to present
the reasons for his position.
The course of the Presbyterian synod in condemning
Eld. Morton without granting him a hearing, is an evidence of the
spirit of intolerance which still exists, even among those claiming to
be Protestant reformers. The infinite God, whose throne is in the
heavens, condescends to address his people, "Come now, and let us
reason together;" Isa. 1:18. but frail, erring men proudly refuse to
reason with their brethren. They stand ready to censure one who accepts
any light which they have not received--as though God had pledged
himself to give no more light to any one than he had given to them.
This is the course pursued by opposers of the truth in every age. They
forget the declaration of the Scriptures, "Light is sown for the
righteous." Ps 97:11. "The path of the just is as the shining light,
that shineth more and more unto the perfect day." Prov. 4:18. It is a
sad thing when a people claiming to be reformers cease to reform.
(186)
If professed Christians would but carefully and prayerfully compare
their views with the Scriptures, laying aside all pride of opinion and
desire for the supremacy, a flood of light would be shed upon the
churches now wandering in the darkness of error. As fast as his people
can bear it, the Lord reveals to them their errors in doctrine and
their defects of character. From age to age he has raised up men and
qualified them to do a special work needed in their time. But to none
of these did he commit all the light which was to be given to the
world. Wisdom does not die with them. It was not the will of God that
the work of reform should cease with the going out of Luther's life; it
was not his will that at the death of the Wesleys the Christian faith
should become stereotyped. The work of reform is progressive. Go
forward, is the command of our great Leader,--forward unto victory.
We shall not be accepted and honored of God in doing
the same work that our fathers did. We do not occupy the position which
they occupied in the unfolding of truth. In order to be accepted and
honored as they were, we must improve the light which shines upon us,
as they improved that which shone upon them; we must do as they would
have done, had they lived in our day. Luther and the Wesleys were
reformers in their time. It is our duty to continue the work of reform.
If we neglect to heed the light, it will become darkness; and the
degree of darkness will be proportionate to the light rejected.
The prophet of God declares that in the last days
knowledge shall be increased. There are new truths to be revealed to
the humble seeker. The teachings (187) of God's word are to be
freed from the errors and superstition with which they have been
encumbered. Doctrines that are not sanctioned by the Scriptures have
been widely taught, and many have honestly accepted them; but when the
truth is revealed, it becomes the duty of every one to accept it. Those
who allow worldly interests, desire for popularity, or pride of
opinion, to separate them from the truth, must render an account to God
for their neglect.
CHAPTER 11
THE TWO WITNESSES
(188)
The suppression of the Scriptures under the dominion of Rome, the
terrible results of that suppression, and the final exaltation of the
word of God, are vividly portrayed by the prophetic pencil. To John the
exile on lonely Patmos was given a view of the 1260 years during which
the papal power was permitted to trample upon God's word and oppress
his people. Said the angel of the Lord: "The holy city [the true
church] shall they tread under foot forty and two months. And I will
give power unto my two witnesses, and they shall prophesy a thousand
two hundred and threescore days, clothed in sackcloth." Rev. 11:2,3.
The periods here mentioned are the same, alike representing the time in
which God's faithful witnesses remained in a state of obscurity.
The two witnesses represent the Old and New Testament
Scriptures. Both are important testimonies to the origin and perpetuity
of the law of God. Both are witnesses also to the plan of salvation.
The types, sacrifices, and prophecies of the Old Testament point
forward to a Saviour to come. The Gospels and Epistles of the New
Testament tell of a Saviour who has come in the exact manner foretold
by type and prophecy.
(189)
"These are the two olive trees, and the two candlesticks standing
before the God of the earth." Rev. 11:4. Said the psalmist, "Thy word
is a lamp unto my feet, and a light unto my path." Ps. 119:105.
The papal power sought to hide from the people the
word of truth, and set before them false witnesses to contradict its
testimony. When the Bible was proscribed by religious and secular
authority; when its testimony was perverted, and every effort made that
men and demons could invent to turn the minds of the people from it;
when those who dared proclaim its sacred truths were hunted, betrayed,
tortured, buried in dungeon cells, martyred for their faith, or
compelled to flee to mountain fastnesses and to dens and caves of the
earth,--then indeed did the faithful witnesses prophesy in sackcloth.
But men cannot with impunity trample upon the word of
God. The Lord had declared concerning his two witnesses, "If any man
will hurt them, fire proceedeth out of their mouth, and devoureth their
enemies; and if any man will hurt them, he must in this manner be
killed." Rev. 11:5. The meaning of this fearful denunciation is set
forth in the closing chapter of the book of Revelation: "I testify unto
every man that heareth the words of the prophecy of this book, If any
man shall add unto these things, God shall add unto him the plagues
that are written in this book. And if any man shall take away from the
words of the book of this prophecy, God shall take away his part out of
the book of life, and out of the holy city, and from the things which
are written in this book." Rev. 22:18,19.
(190) Such
are the warnings which God has given to guard men against changing in
any manner that which he has revealed or commanded. These solemn
denunciations apply to all who by their influence lead men to lightly
regard the law of God. They should cause those to fear and tremble who
flippantly declare it a matter of little consequence whether we obey
God's law or not. All who exalt their own opinions above the written
word, all who would change the plain meaning of Scripture to suit their
own convenience, or for the sake of conformity to the world, are taking
upon themselves a fearful responsibility. The written word, the law of
God, will measure the character of every man, and condemn all whom this
unerring test shall declare wanting.
Notwithstanding the Lord's witnesses were clothed in
sackcloth, they continued to prophesy throughout the entire period of
1260 years. In the darkest times there were faithful men who loved
God's word, and were jealous for his honor. To these loyal servants
were given wisdom, power, and authority to declare his truth during the
whole of this time.
"And when they shall have finished their testimony,
the beast that ascendeth out of the bottomless pit shall make war
against them, and shall overcome them, and kill them. And their dead
bodies shall lie in the street of the great city, which spiritually is
called Sodom and Egypt, where also our Lord was crucified." Rev.
11:7,8.
These events were to take place near the close of the
period in which the witnesses testified in sackcloth. Through the
medium of the papacy, Satan (191) had long controlled the
powers that ruled in Church and State. The fearful results were
especially apparent in those countries that rejected the light of the
Reformation. There was a state of moral debasement and corruption
similar to the condition of Sodom just prior to its destruction, and to
the idolatry and spiritual darkness that prevailed in Egypt in the days
of Moses.
In no land had the spirit of enmity against Christ
and the truth been more strikingly displayed than in giddy and godless
France. No where had the gospel encountered more bitter and cruel
opposition. In the streets of Paris, Christ had indeed been crucified
in the person of his saints. The world still recalls with shuddering
horror the scenes of that most cowardly and cruel onslaught, the
Massacre of St. Bartholomew. The king of France, urged on by Romish
priests and prelates, lent his sanction to the dreadful work. The
palace bell, tolling at midnight, gave the signal for the slaughter to
begin. Protestants by thousands, sleeping quietly in their homes,
trusting to the plighted honor of their king, were dragged forth
without a warning, and murdered in cold blood.
Satan, in the person of the Roman zealots, led the
van. As Christ was the invisible leader of his people from Egyptian
bondage, so was Satan the unseen leader of his subjects in this
horrible work of multiplying martyrs. For three days the butchery went
on; more than thirty thousand perished. The result caused great joy to
the hosts of darkness. The Roman pontiff, sharing in the diabolical
rejoicing, proclaimed a jubilee to be observed throughout his
dominions, to celebrate the event.
(192)
The same master-spirit that urged on the Massacre of St. Bartholomew,
led also in the scenes of the French Revolution. Satan seemed to
triumph. Notwithstanding the labors of the Reformers, he had succeeded
in holding vast multitudes in ignorance concerning God and his word.
Now he appeared in a new guise. In France arose an atheistical power
that openly declared war against the authority of Heaven. Men threw off
all restraint. The law of God was trampled under foot. Those who could
engage in the most Heaven-daring blasphemy and the most abominable
wickedness were most highly exalted. Fornication was sanctioned by law.
Profanity and corruption seemed deluging the earth. In all this,
supreme homage was paid to Satan, while Christ, in his characteristics
of truth, purity, and unselfish love, was crucified. The Bible was
publicly burned. The Sabbath was blotted out. Romanism had enjoined
image worship; now divine honors were paid to the vilest objects. The
work which the papacy had begun, atheism completed. The one withheld
from the people the truths of the Bible; the other taught them to
reject both the Bible and its Author. The seed sown by priests and
prelates was yielding its evil fruit.
Terrible indeed was the condition of infidel France.
The word of truth lay dead in her streets, and those who hated the
restrictions and requirements of God's law were jubilant. But
transgression and rebellion were followed by the sure result. Unhappy
France reaped in blood the harvest she had sown. The war against the
Bible and the law of God banished peace and happiness from the hearts
and homes of men. (193) No one was secure: he who triumphed
to-day was suspected, condemned, to-morrow. Violence and terror reigned
supreme. The land was filled with crimes too horrible for pen to trace.
God's faithful witnesses were not long to remain
silent. "The Spirit of life from God entered into them, and they stood
upon their feet, and great fear fell upon them which saw them." Rev.
11:11. The world stood aghast at the enormity of guilt which had
resulted from a rejection of the Sacred Oracles, and men were glad to
return once more to faith in God and his word.
Concerning the two witnesses the prophet declares
further, "And they heard a great voice from Heaven saying unto them,
Come up hither. And they ascended up to heaven in a cloud; and their
enemies beheld them." Rev. 11:12. Since the French Revolution the word
of God has been honored as never before. The Bible has been translated
into nearly every language spoken by men, and scattered over every part
of the globe. After being, as it were, thrust down to hell, it has, in
truth, been exalted to heaven.
CHAPTER 12
GOD HONORS THE HUMBLE
(194)
Those who received the great blessings of the Reformation did not go
forward in the path so nobly entered upon by Luther. A few faithful men
arose from time to time, to proclaim new truth, and expose
long-cherished error; but the majority, like the Jews in Christ's day,
or the papists in the time of Luther, were content to believe as their
fathers believed, and to live as they lived. Therefore religion again
degenerated into formalism; and errors and superstitions which would
have been cast aside had the church continued to walk in the light of
God's word, were retained and cherished. Thus the spirit inspired by
the Reformation gradually died out, until there was almost as great
need of reform in the Protestant churches as in the Roman Church in the
time of Luther. There was the same spiritual stupor, the same respect
for the opinions of men, the same spirit of worldliness, the same
substitution of human theories for the teachings of God's word. Pride
and extravagance were fostered under the guise of religion. The
churches became corrupted by allying themselves with the world. Thus
were degraded the great principles for which Luther and his
fellow-laborers had done and suffer so much.
(195)
As Satan saw that he had failed to crush out the truth by persecution,
he again resorted to he same plan of compromise which had led to the
great apostasy and the formation of the church of Rome. He induced
Christians to ally themselves, not now with pagans, but with those who,
by their worship of the god of this world, as truly proved themselves
idolaters. Satan could no longer keep the Bible from the people; it had
been placed within the reach of all. But he led thousands to accept
false interpretations and unsound theories, without searching the
Scriptures to learn the truth for themselves. He had corrupted the
doctrines of the Bible, and traditions which were to ruin millions were
taking deep root. The church was upholding and defending these
traditions, instead of contending for the faith once delivered to the
saints.
And while wholly unconscious of their conditions and
their peril, the church and the world were rapidly approaching the most
solemn and momentous period of earth's history,--the period of the
revelation of the Son of man. Already had the signs which Christ
himself had promised,--the sun clothed in darkness by day and the moon
by night,--declared his coming near. When Jesus pointed his followers
to these signs, he foretold also the existing state of worldliness and
backsliding, and gave warning of the results to those who refused to
arouse from their careless security: "Thou hast a name that thou
livest, and art dead." "If therefore thou shalt not watch, I will come
on thee as a thief, and thou shalt not know what hour I will come upon
thee." Rev. 3:1-3.
(196)
He who knows the end from the beginning, and who inspired prophets and
apostles to write the future history of churches and of nations, was
about to accomplish another reform similar to that of the days of
Luther. The Lord raised up men to investigate his word, to examine the
foundation upon which the Christian world were building, and to raise
the solemn inquiry, What is truth? Are we building upon the rock, or
upon shifting sand?
God saw that many of his professed people were not
building for eternity; and in his care and love he was about to send a
message of warning to arouse them from their stupor, and prepare them
for the coming of their Lord. The warning was not to be intrusted to
learned doctors of divinity or popular ministers of the gospel. Had
these been faithful watchmen, diligently and prayerfully searching the
Scriptures, they would have known the time of night; the prophecies of
Daniel and John would have revealed to them the great events about to
take place. If they had faithfully followed the light already given,
some star of heavenly radiance would have been sent to guide them into
all truth.
At the time of Christ's first advent, the priests and
scribes of the holy city, to whom were intrusted the oracles of God,
should have discerned the signs of the times, and proclaimed the coming
of the Promised One. The prophecy of Micah designated his birthplace;
Micah 5:2. Daniel specified the time of his advent. Dan. 9:25. God had
committed these prophecies to the Jewish leaders; therefore they were
without excuse if they did not know and declare to the people that (197) the Messiah's coming was at hand. Their ignorance was the result of sinful neglect.
God did not send his messengers to the palaces of
kings, to the assemblies of philosophers, or to the schools of the
rabbis, to make known the wonderful fact that the Redeemer of men was
about to appear upon the earth. The Jews were building monuments for
the slain prophets of God, while by their deference to the great men of
the earth they were paying homage to the servants of Satan. Absorbed in
their ambitious strife for place and power among men, they lost sight
of the divine honors proffered them by the King of Heaven.
With what profound and reverent interest should the
elders of Israel have been studying the place, the time, the
circumstances, of the greatest event in the world's history,--the
coming of the Son of God to accomplish the redemption of man! Oh, why
were not the people watching and waiting that they might be among the
first to welcome the world's Redeemer! But lo, at Bethlehem two weary
travelers from the hills of Nazareth traverse the whole length of the
narrow street to the eastern extremity of the town, vainly seeking a
place of rest and shelter for the night. No doors are open to receive
them. In a wretched hovel prepared for cattle, they at last find
refuge, and there the Saviour of the world is born.
Heavenly angels had seen the glory which the Son of
God shared with the Father before the world was, and they had looked
forward with intense interest to his appearance on earth as an event
fraught with the greatest joy to all people. Angels were appointed to
carry the glad tidings to those who were prepared (198) to
receive it, and who would joyfully make it known to the inhabitants of
the earth. Christ has stooped to take upon himself man's nature; he is
to bear an infinite weight of woe as he shall make his soul an offering
for sin; yet angels desire that even in his humiliation, the Son of the
Highest may appear before men with a dignity and glory befitting his
character. Will the great men of earth assemble at Israel's capital to
greet his coming? Will legions of angels present him to the expectant
company?
An angel visits the earth to see who are prepared to
welcome Jesus. But he can discern no tokens of expectancy. He hears no
voice of praise and triumph that the period of the Messiah's coming is
at hand. The angel hovers for a time over the chosen city and the
temple where the divine presence was manifested for ages; but even here
is the same indifference. The priests, in their pomp and pride, are
offering polluted sacrifices in the temple. The Pharisees are with loud
voices addressing the people, or making boastful prayers at the corners
of the streets. There is no evidence that Christ is expected, and no
preparation for the Prince of life.
In amazement the celestial messenger is about to
return to Heaven with the shameful tidings, when he discovers a group
of shepherds who are watching their flocks by night, and, as they gaze
into starry heavens, are contemplating the prophecy of a Messiah to
come to earth, and longing for the advent of the world's Redeemer. Here
is a company that can be trusted with the heavenly message. And
suddenly the angel of the Lord appeared, declaring the good tidings of
great joy. Celestial (199) glory flooded all the plain, an
innumerable company of angels were revealed, and as if the joy were too
great for one messenger to bring from Heaven, a multitude of voices
broke forth in the anthem which all the nations of the saved shall one
day sing, "Glory to God in the highest, and on earth peace, good will
toward men."
Oh, what a lesson is this wonderful story of
Bethlehem! How it rebukes our unbelief, our pride and self-sufficiency.
How it warns us to beware, lest by our criminal indifference we also
fail to discern the signs of the times, and therefore know not the day
of our visitation. It is "unto them that look for him" that Christ is
to "appear the second time without sin unto salvation." Heb. 9:28.
Jesus sends his people a message of warning to
prepare them for his coming. To the prophet John was made known the
closing work in the great plan of man's redemption. He beheld an angel
flying "in the midst of heaven, having the everlasting gospel to preach
unto them that dwell on the earth, and to every nation, and kindred,
and tongue, and people, saying with a loud voice, Fear God, and give
glory to him; for the hour of his Judgment is come; and worship him
that made heaven, and earth, and the sea, and the fountains of waters."
Rev. 14:6,7.
The angel represented in prophecy as delivering this
message, symbolizes a class of faithful men, who, obedient to the
promptings of God's Spirit and the teachings of his word, proclaim this
warning to the inhabitants of earth. This message was not to be
committed to the religious leaders of the people. (200) They
had failed to preserve their connection with God, and had refused the
light from Heaven; therefore they were not of the number described by
the apostle Paul: "But ye, brethren, are not in darkness, that that day
should overtake you as a thief. Ye are all the children of light, and
the children of the day; we are not of the night nor of darkness." 1
Thess. 5:4,5.
The watchmen upon the walls of Zion should be the
first to catch the tidings of the Saviour's advent, the first to lift
their voices to proclaim him near, the first to warn the people to
prepare for his coming. But they were at ease, dreaming of peace and
safety, while the people were asleep in their sins. Jesus saw his
church, like the barren fig-tree, covered with pretentious leaves, yet
destitute of precious fruit. There was a boastful observance of the
forms of religion, while the spirit of true humility, penitence and
faith--which alone could render the service acceptable to God--was
lacking. Instead of the graces of the Spirit, there were manifested
pride, formalism, vainglory, selfishness, oppression. A backsliding
church closed their eyes to the signs of the times. God did not forsake
them, or suffer his faithfulness to fail; but they departed from him,
and separated themselves from his love. As they refused to comply with
the conditions, his promises were not fulfilled to them.
Love for Christ and faith in his coming waxed cold.
Such is the sure result of neglect to appreciate and improve the light
and privileges which God bestows. Unless the church will follow on in
his opening providence, accepting every ray of light, performing every (201)
duty which may be revealed, religion will inevitably degenerate into
the observance of forms, and the spirit of vital godliness will
disappear. This truth has been repeatedly illustrated in the history of
the church. God requires of his people works of faith and obedience
corresponding to the blessings and privileges bestowed. Obedience
requires a sacrifice and involves a cross; and this is why so many of
the professed followers of Christ refused to receive the light from
Heaven, and, like the Jews of old, knew not the time of their
visitation. Luke 19:44. Because of their pride and unbelief, the Lord
passed them by, and revealed his truth to men in humble life, who had
given heed to all the light they had received.
CHAPTER 13
WILLIAM MILLER
(202)
An upright, honest-hearted farmer, who had been led to doubt the divine
authority of the Scriptures, yet who sincerely desired to know the
truth, was the man chosen of God to proclaim the nearness of Christ's
second coming. Like many other reformers, William Miller had in early
life battled with poverty, and had thus learned the great lessons of
energy and self-denial. His mind was active and well-developed, and he
had a keen thirst for knowledge. Though he had not enjoyed the
advantages of a collegiate education, his love of study and a habit of
careful thought and close criticism rendered him a man of sound
judgment and comprehensive views.
He possessed an irreproachable moral character and an
enviable reputation, being generally esteemed for his integrity,
thrift, and benevolence. In childhood he had been subject to religious
impressions; but in early manhood, being thrown almost exclusively into
the society of deists, he was led to adopt their sentiments which he
continued to hold for about twelve years. At the age of thirty-four,
however, the Holy Spirit impressed his heart with a sense of his
condition as a sinner. He found in his former belief no assurance of
happiness beyond the grave. (203) The future was dark and gloomy. Referring afterward to his feelings at this time, he said:--
"Annihilation was a cold and chilling thought, and
accountability was sure destruction to all. The heavens were as brass
over my head, and the earth as iron under my feet. Eternity--what was
it? And death--why was it? The more I reasoned, the further I was from
demonstration. The more I thought, the more scattered were my
conclusions. I tried to stop thinking; but my thoughts would not be
controlled. I was truly wretched, but did not understand the cause. I
murmured and complained, but knew not of whom. I knew that there was a
wrong, but knew not where or how to find the right. I mourned, but
without hope."
In this state he continued for some months.
"Suddenly," he says, "the character of a Saviour was vividly impressed
upon my mind. It seemed that there might be a being so good and
compassionate as to himself atone for our transgressions, and thereby
save us from suffering the penalty of sin. I immediately felt how
lovely such a being must be, and imagined that I could cast myself into
the arms of and trust in the mercy of, such a one. But the question
arose, How can it be proved that such a being does exist? Aside from
the Bible, I found that I could get no evidence of the existence of
such a Saviour, or even of a future state."
"I saw that the Bible did bring to view just such a
Saviour as I needed; and I was perplexed to find how an uninspired book
should develop principles so perfectly adapted to the wants of a fallen
world. I was constrained to admit that the Scriptures must be (204)
a revelation from God. They became my delight; and in Jesus I found a
friend. The Saviour became to me the chiefest among ten thousand; and
the Scriptures, which before were dark and contradictory, now became a
lamp to my feet and a light to my path. My mind became settled and
satisfied. I found the Lord God to be a Rock in the midst of the ocean
of life. The Bible now became my chief study, and I can truly say, I
searched it with great delight. I found the half was never told me. I
wondered why I had not seen its beauty and glory before, and marveled
that I could ever have rejected it. I found everything revealed that my
heart could desire, and a remedy for every disease of the soul. I lost
all taste for other reading, and applied my heart to get wisdom from
God."
He now publicly professed his faith in the religion
which he had despised. But his infidel associates were not slow to
bring forward all those arguments which he himself had often urged
against the divine authority of the Scriptures. He was not then
prepared to answer them; but he reasoned, that if the Bible is a
revelation from God, it must be consistent with itself; and that as it
was given for man's instruction, it must be adapted to his
understanding. He determined to study the Scriptures for himself, and
ascertain if every apparent contradiction could not be harmonized.
Endeavoring to lay aside all preconceived opinions,
and dispensing with commentaries, he compared scripture with scripture
by the aid of the marginal references and the concordance. He pursued
his study in a regular and methodical manner; beginning (205)
with Genesis, and reading verse by verse, he proceeded no faster than
the meaning of the several passages so unfolded as to leave him free
from all embarrassment. When he found anything obscure, it was his
custom to compare it with every other text which seemed to have any
reference to the matter under consideration. Every word was permitted
to have its proper bearing upon the subject of the text, and if his
view of it harmonized with every collateral passage, it ceased to be a
difficulty. Thus whenever he met with a passage hard to be understood,
he found an explanation in some other portion of the Scriptures. As he
studied with earnest prayer for divine enlightenment, that which had
before appeared dark to his understanding was made clear. He experience
the truth of the psalmist's words, "The entrance of thy words giveth
light; it giveth understanding unto the simple." Ps. 119:130.
After two years of careful investigation, he was
fully satisfied, that the Bible is its own interpreter; that it is a
system of revealed truths so clearly and simply given that the
wayfaring man, though a fool, need not err therein; that "all Scripture
is given by inspiration of God, and is profitable for doctrine, for
reproof, for correction, for instruction in righteousness;" 2 Tim.
3:16. that "prophecy came not in old time by the will of man; but holy
men of God spake as they were moved by the Holy Ghost;" 2 Peter 1:21.
that it was written "for our learning, that we through patience and
comfort of the Scriptures might have hope." Rom. 15:4.
With intense interest he studied the books of Daniel (206)
and the Revelation, employing the same principles of interpretations as
in the other Scriptures, and found, to his great joy, that the
prophetic symbols could be understood. Angels of Heaven were guiding
his mind, and opening to his understanding prophecies which had ever
been dark to God's people. Like after link of the chain of truth
rewarded his efforts; step by step he traced down the great lines of
prophecy, until he reached the solemn conclusion that in a few years
the Son of God would come the second time, in power and glory, and that
the events connected with that coming and the close of human probation
would take place about the year 1843.
Deeply impressed by these momentous truths, he felt
that it was his duty to give the warning to the world. He expected to
encounter opposition from the ungodly, but was confident that all
Christians would rejoice in the hope of meeting the Saviour whom they
professed to love. His only fear was, that in their great joy at the
prospect of glorious deliverance, so soon to be consummated, many would
receive the doctrine without sufficiently examining the Scriptures in
demonstration of its truth. He therefore hesitated to present it, lest
he should be in error, and be the means of misleading others. He was
thus led to review the evidences in support of the conclusions at which
he had arrived, and to consider carefully every difficulty which
presented itself to his mind. He found that objections vanished before
the light of God's word, as mist before the rays of the sun. Five years
spent thus, left him fully convinced of the correctness of his
position.
(207)
And now the duty of making known to others what he believed to be so
clearly taught in the Scriptures, urged itself with new force upon him.
"When I was about my business," he said, "it was continually ringing in
my ears, Go and tell the world of their danger. This text was
constantly occurring to me: 'When I say unto the wicked, O wicked man,
thou shalt surely die; if thou dost not speak to warn the wicked from
his way, that wicked man shall die in his iniquity; but his blood will
I require at thine hand. Nevertheless, if thou warn the wicked of his
way to turn from it; if he do not turn from his way, he shall die in
his iniquity; but thou hast delivered thy soul.' Ez. 33:8,9. I felt
that if the wicked could be effectually warned, multitudes of them
would repent; and that if they were not warned, their blood might be
required at my hand."
He began to present his views in private as he had
opportunity, praying that some minister might feel their force and
devote himself to their promulgation. But he could not banish the
conviction that he had a personal duty to perform in giving the
warning. The words were ever recurring to his mind, "Go and tell it to
the world; their blood will I require at thy hand." For nine years he
waited, the burden still pressing upon his soul, until in 1831 he for
the first time publicly gave the reasons of his faith.
As Elisha was called from following his oxen in the
field, to receive the mantle of consecration to the prophetic office,
so was Wm. Miller called to leave his plow, and open to the people the
mysteries of the (208) kingdom of God. With trembling he
entered upon his work, leading his hearers down, step by step, through
the prophetic periods to the second appearing of Christ. With every
effort he gained strength and courage as he saw the wide-spread
interest excited by his words.
Though he had little of the learning of the schools,
he became wise because he connected himself with the Source of wisdom.
He possessed strong mental powers, united with true kindness of heart,
Christian humility, calmness, and self-control. He was a man of
sterling worth, who could not but command respect and esteem wherever
integrity of character and moral excellence were valued. He was
attentive and affable to all, ready to listen to the opinions of
others, and to weigh their arguments. Without passion or excitement he
tested all theories and doctrines by the word of God; and his sound
reasoning, and intimate knowledge of the Scriptures, enabled him to
refute error and expose falsehood.
The Lord, in his great mercy, does not bring
judgments upon the earth without giving warning to its inhabitants by
the mouth of his servants. Says the prophet Amos, "Surely the Lord God
will do nothing, but he revealeth his secret unto his servants the
prophets." Amos 3:7. When the iniquity of the antediluvians moved him
to bring a flood of waters upon the earth, he first made known to them
his purpose, that they might have opportunity to turn from their evil
ways. For a hundred and twenty years was sounded in their ears the
warning to repent, lest the wrath of God be manifested in their
destruction. But the (209) message seemed to them an idle tale,
and they believed it not. From unbelief they proceeded to scorn and
contempt, ridiculing the warning as a highly improbably, and unworthy
of their notice. Emboldened in their wickedness, they mocked the
messenger of God, made light of his entreaties, and even accused him of
presumption. How dare one man stand up against all the great men of the
earth? If Noah's message were true, why did not all the world see it
and believe it? One man's assertion against the wisdom of thousands!
They would not credit the warning, nor would they seek shelter in the
ark.
Scoffers pointed to the things of nature,--to the
unvarying succession of the seasons, to the blue skies that had never
poured out rain, to the green fields refreshed by the soft dews of
night,--and they cried out, "Doth he not speak parables?" In contempt
they declared the preacher of righteousness to be a wild enthusiast;
and they went on, more eager in their pursuit of pleasure, more intent
upon their evil ways, than ever before. But their unbelief did not
hinder the predicted event. God bore long with their wickedness, giving
them ample opportunity for repentance; but at the appointed time his
judgments were visited upon the rejecters of his mercy.
Christ declares that there will exist similar
unbelief concerning his second coming. As the people of Noah's day
"knew not until the flood came and took them all away, so," in the
words of our Saviour, "shall also the coming of the Son of man be."
Matt. 24:39. When the professed people of God are uniting with the
world, living as they live, and joining with them (210) in
forbidden pleasure; when the luxury of the world becomes the luxury of
the church; when the marriage bells are chiming, and all are looking
forward to many years of worldly prosperity,--then, suddenly as the
lightning flashes from the heavens, will come the end of their bright
visions and delusive hopes.
As God sent his servant to warn the world of the
coming flood, so he sent chosen messengers to make known the nearness
of the day of final judgment. But as Noah's contemporaries laughed to
scorn the predictions of the solitary preacher of righteousness, so did
many in Miller's day treat his words of warning.
In their labors for the Protestant churches, Wm.
Miller and his companions encountered a spirit of hatred and opposition
little less bitter than that which Luther experienced from Rome. By
Romanists in Luther's time, and by Protestants in the time of Miller,
fables, false theories, human forms and customs, were received and
honored in place of the teachings of the word of truth. In the
sixteenth century the Roman Church withheld the Scriptures from the
people; in the nineteenth century, when Bibles are scattered everywhere
like leaves of autumn, the Protestant churches teach that an important
part of the sacred word--and that portion which brings to view truths
especially applicable to our time--is sealed, and cannot be understood.
Ministers and people have declared the prophecies of
Daniel and John to be a collection of mysteries which no one could
understand or explain. But the very title of the book of Revelation
contradicts these assertions: "The Revelation of Jesus Christ, which (211)
God gave unto him, to show unto his servants things which must shortly
come to pass; and he sent and signified it by his angel unto his
servant John, who bare record of the word of God, and of the testimony
of Jesus Christ, and of all things that he saw. Blessed is he that
readeth, and they that hear the words of this prophecy, and keep those
things which are written therein; for the time is at hand." Rev. 1:1-3.
Says the prophet, "Blessed is he that readeth"--there
are some who will not read; the blessing is not for them. "And they
that hear"--there are some, also, who refuse to hear anything
concerning the prophecies; the blessing is not for this class. "And
keep those things that are written therein"--many refuse to heed the
warnings and instructions contained in the Revelation. None of these
can claim the blessing promised. All who ridicule the subjects of the
prophecy, and mock at the symbols here solemnly given, all who refuse
to reform their lives, and prepare for the coming of the son of man,
will be unblest.
In view of the testimony of Inspiration, how dare
ministers teach that the Revelation is a mystery beyond the reach of
human understanding? It is a mystery revealed, a book opened. The study
of the Revelation directs the mind to the prophecies of Daniel, and
both present most important instruction, given of God to men,
concerning events to take place at the close of this world's history.
To John were opened scenes of deep and thrilling
interest in the experience of the church. He saw the position, dangers,
conflicts, and final deliverance (212) of the people of God. He
records the closing messages which are to ripen the harvest of the
earth, either as sheaves for the heavenly garner or as fagots for the
fires of the last day. Subjects of vast importance were revealed to him
especially for the last church, that those who should turn from error
to truth might be instructed concerning the perils and conflicts before
them. None need be in darkness in regard to what is coming upon the
earth.
Why, then, this wide-spread ignorance concerning an
important part of Holy Writ? Why this general reluctance to investigate
its teachings? It is the result of a studied effort of the prince of
darkness to conceal from men that which reveals his deceptions. For
this reason, Christ the Revelator, foreseeing the warfare that would be
waged against the study of the Revelation, pronounced a blessing upon
all who should read, hear, and observe the words of the prophecy.
Those who believed that the Advent movement was of
God, went forth as did Luther and his co-laborers, with their Bibles in
their hands, and with fearless firmness met the opposition of the
world's great teachers. Many to whom the people had looked for
instruction in divine things were proved to be ignorant both of the
Scriptures and of the power of God. Yet their very ignorance rendered
them more determined; they could not maintain their position by the
Scriptures, and they were driven to resort to the sayings and doctrines
of men, to the traditions of the Fathers.
But the word of God was the only testimony accepted by the advocates of truth. "The Bible and (213)
the Bible only," was their watchword. The weakness of all arguments
brought against them, revealed to Adventists the strength of the
foundation upon which they stood. At the same time it angered their
opponents, who, for want of stronger weapons, resorted to personal
abuse. Grave doctors of divinity sneered at Wm. Miller as an unlearned
and feeble adversary. Because he explained the visions of Daniel and
John, he was denounced as a man of fanciful ideas, who made visions and
dreams his hobby. The plainest statements of Bible facts, which could
not be controverted, were met with the cry of heresy, ignorance,
stupidity, insolence.
Many churches were thrown open to the enemies of the
Advent faith, while they were closed against is friends. The sentiments
expressed by Doctor Eck concerning Luther were the same that inspired
ministers and people to refuse Adventists a hearing. Said the papal
champion: "I am surprised at the humility and modesty with which the
reverent doctor [Luther] undertakes to oppose, alone, so many
illustrious Fathers, thus affirming that he knows more of these things
than the sovereign pontiffs, the councils, the doctors, and the
universities." "It would be surprising, no doubt, if God had hidden the
truth from so many saints and martyrs until the advent of the reverend
father.." Thus thought great and wise men in the days of Noah, thus
argued the opponents of Wm. Miller, and thus still argue those who
oppose the proclamation of the Advent faith and the commandments of
God.
When Luther was accused of preaching novelties, he declared: "These are not novelties that I preach. (214)
But I affirm that the doctrines of Christianity have been lost sight of
by those whose special duty it was to preserve them; by the learned, by
the bishops. I doubt not indeed that the truth has still found an abode
in some few hearts." "Poor husbandmen and simple children in these days
understand more of Jesus Christ than the pope, the bishops, or the
doctors." When Wm. Miller was charged with showing contempt for the
doctors of divinity, he pointed to the word of God as the standard by
which all doctrines and theories must be tested; and, knowing that he
had truth on his side, he went forward in his work undismayed.
In every age, God has called his servants to lift up
their voices against the prevailing errors and sins of the multitude.
Noah was called to stand alone to warn the antediluvian world. Moses
and Aaron were alone against king and princes, magicians and wise men,
and the multitudes of Egypt. Elijah was alone when he testified against
an apostate king and a backsliding people. Daniel and his fellows stood
alone against the decrees of mighty monarchs. The majority are usually
to be found on the side of error and falsehood. The fact that doctors
of divinity have the world on their side does not prove them to be on
the side of truth and of God. The wide gate and the broad road attract
the multitudes, while the strait gate and the narrow way are sought
only by the few.
If ministers and people had really desired to know
the truth, and had given to the Advent doctrine the earnest, prayerful
attention which its importance demands, they would have seen that it
was in harmony (215) with the Scriptures. Had they united with
its advocates in their labors, there would have resulted such a revival
of the work of God as the world has never witnessed. As Whitefield and
the Wesleys were urged by the Holy Spirit to arouse the formal and
world-loving churches of their time, so was Wm. Miller moved to
proclaim the coming of Christ and the necessity of a work of
preparation. His only offense was that of opening to the world the
"sure word of prophecy, whereunto," says the apostle Peter, "ye do well
that ye take heed, as unto a light that shineth in a dark place." 2
Peter 1:19. He urged its truths upon the people, not with harshness,
but in a more mild and persuasive manner than was employed by other
reformers.
The opposition which he encountered was very similar
to that which had been experience by Wesley and his fellow-laborers.
Let the popular churches of to-day remember that the men whose memory
they cherish with reverence endured the same hatred, scorn, and abuse
from the press and the pulpit that were heaped upon Wm. Miller.
Why were the doctrine and preaching of Christ's
second coming so offensive to the churches? When Jesus made known to
his disciples that he must be separated from them, he said, "I go to
prepare a place for you; and if I go and prepare a place for you, I
will come again, and receive you unto myself, that where I am, there ye
may be also." John 14:2,3. When he ascended from Olivet, the
compassionate Saviour, anticipating the loneliness and sorrow of his
followers, commissioned angels to comfort them with the (216)
assurance that he would come again in person, even as he went into
heaven. As the disciples stood gazing intently upward to catch the last
glimpse of him whom they loved, their attention was arrested by the
words, "Ye men of Galilee, why stand ye gazing up into heaven? This
same Jesus which is taken up from you into heaven, shall so come in
like manner as ye have seen him go into heaven." Acts 1:11. Hope was
kindled afresh by the angels' message. The disciples "returned to
Jerusalem with great joy, and were continually in the temple, praising
and blessing God." Luke 24:52,53. They were not rejoicing because Jesus
had been separated from them and they were left to struggle with the
trials and temptations of the world, but because of the angels'
assurance that he would come again.
Those who really love the Saviour cannot but hail
with joy a message founded upon the word of God, that He in whom their
hopes of eternal life are centered is coming again, not to be insulted,
despised, and rejected, as at his first advent, but in power and glory,
to redeem his people. The proclamation of Christ's coming should now
be, as when made by the angels to the shepherds of Bethlehem, good
tidings of great joy. There can be no more conclusive evidence that the
churches have departed from God than the irritation and animosity
excited by this Heaven-sent message.
It is those who do not love the Saviour that desire
him to remain away, and such eagerly receive the testimony borne by
unfaithful servants, "My Lord delayeth his coming." Matt 24:48. While
they refuse to (217) search the Scriptures to learn if these
things are so, they grasp every fable which will put off the coming of
Christ into the distant future, or make it spiritual, fulfilled at the
destruction of Jerusalem, or taking place at death. Again and again did
Wm. Miller urge that if his doctrine were false, he should be shown his
error from the Scriptures. In an address to Christians of all
denominations he wrote: "What have we believed that we have not been
commanded to believe by the word of God, which you yourselves allow is
the rule and the only rule of our faith and practice? What have we done
that should call down such virulent denunciations against us from
pulpit and press, and give you just cause to exclude us (Adventists)
from your churches and fellowship?" "If we are wrong, pray show us
wherein consists our wrong. Show us from the word of God that we are in
error; we have had ridicule enough; that can never convince us that we
are in the wrong; the word of God alone can change our views. Our
conclusions have been formed deliberately and prayerfully, as we have
seen the evidence in the Scriptures."
At a later date he stated; "I have candidly weighed
the objections advanced against these views; but I have seen no
arguments that were sustained by the Scriptures that, in my opinion,
invalidated my position. I cannot, therefore, conscientiously refrain
from looking for my Lord, or from exhorting my fellow-men, as I have
opportunity, to be in readiness for that event."
In a letter to a friend and fellow-laborer, he spoke thus: "I could not see that I should harm my (218)
fellow-men, even supposing the event should not take place at the time
specified; for it is a command of our Saviour to look for it, watch,
expect it, and be ready. Then, if I could by any means, in accordance
with God's word, persuade men to believe in a crucified, risen, and
coming Saviour, I felt it would have a bearing on the everlasting
welfare and happiness of such. I had not a distant thought of
disturbing our churches, ministers, religious editors, or departing
from the best biblical commentaries or rules which had been recommended
for the study of the Scriptures. And even to this day, my opposers have
not been able to show where I have departed from any rule laid down by
our old standard writers of the Protestant faith. I have only
interpreted Scripture in accordance with their rules."
Instead of arguments from the Scriptures, the
opponents of the Advent faith chose to employ ridicule and scoffing.
The careless and ungodly, emboldened by the position of religious
teachers, resorted to opprobrious epithets, to base and blasphemous
witticisms, in their efforts to heap contumely upon Wm. Miller and his
work. The gray-headed man who had left a comfortable home to travel at
his own expense from city to city, from town to village, toiling
unceasingly to bear to the world the solemn warning of the Judgment
near, was sneeringly denounced as a fanatic, a liar, a speculating
knave.
Time, means, and talents were employed in
misrepresenting and maligning Adventists, in exciting prejudice against
them, and holding them up to public contempt. Ministers occupied
themselves in gathering up damaging reports, absurd and malicious (219)
fabrications, and dealing them out from the pulpit. Earnest were the
efforts put forth to draw away the minds of the people from the subject
of the second advent. But in seeking to crush out Adventism, the
popular ministry undermined faith in the word of God. It was made to
appear a sin, something of which men should be ashamed, to study the
prophecies which relate to the coming of Christ and the end of the
world. This teaching made men infidels, and many took license to walk
after their own ungodly lusts. Then the authors of the evil charged it
all upon Adventists.
The Wesleys encountered similar accusations from the
ease-loving, godless ministers who were constantly intercepting their
labors, and seeking to destroy their influence. They were pronounced
uncharitable, and accused of pride and vanity, because they did not pay
homage to the popular teachers of their time. They were accused of
skepticism, of disorderly practices, and of contempt of authority. John
Wesley fearlessly threw back these charges upon those who framed them,
showing that they themselves were responsible for the very evils of
which they accused the Methodists. In a similar manner may the charges
against Adventism be refuted.
The great controversy between truth and error has
been carried forward from century to century since the fall of man. God
and angels, and those united with them, have been inviting, urging men
to repentance and holiness and Heaven; while Satan and his angels, and
men inspired by them, have been opposing every effort to benefit and
save the fallen (220) race. Wm. Miller was disturbing Satan's
kingdom, and the arch-enemy sought not only to counteract the effect of
the message, but to destroy the messenger himself. As Father Miller
made a practical application of Scripture truth to the hearts of his
hearers, the rage of professed Christians was kindled against him, even
as the anger of the Jews was excited against Christ and his apostle.
Church-members stirred up the baser classes, and upon several occasions
enemies plotted to take his life as he should leave the place of
meeting. But holy angels were in the throng, and one of these, in the
form of a man, took the arm of this servant of the Lord, and led him in
safety from the angry mob. His work was not yet done, and Satan and his
emissaries were disappointed in their purpose.
Comparing his own expectations as to the effect of
his preaching with the manner in which it had been received by the
religious world, Wm. Miller said: "It is true, but not wonderful, when
we become acquainted with the state and corruption of the present
age,...that I have met with great opposition from the pulpit and
professed religious press; and I have been instrumental, through the
preaching of the Advent doctrine, of making it quite manifest that not
a few of our theological teachers are infidels in disguise. I cannot
for a moment believe that denying the resurrection of the body, or the
return of Christ to this earth, or a judgment day yet future, is any
the less infidelity now that it was in the days of infidel France; and
yet who does not know that these things are as common as pulpits and
presses are? And which of these questions are not publicly denied (221) in our pulpits, and by the writers and editors of the public papers?
"Surely, we have fallen on strange times. I expected
of course the doctrine of Christ's speedy coming would be opposed by
infidels, blasphemers, drunkards, gamblers, and the like; but I did not
expect that ministers of the gospel and professors of religion would
unite with characters of the above description, at stores and public
places, in ridiculing the solemn doctrine of the second advent. Many
who were not professors of religion have affirmed to me these facts,
and say they have seen them and have felt their blood chilled at the
sight.
"These are some of the effects which are produced by
preaching this solemn and soul-stirring doctrine among our Pharisees of
the present day. Is it possible that such ministers and members are
obeying God, and watching and praying for his glorious appearing, while
they join these scoffers in their unholy and ungodly remarks? If Christ
does come, where must they appear? and what a dreadful account they
will meet in that tremendous hour!"
It is the lot of God's servants to suffer opposition
and reproach from their contemporaries. Now, as in the time of our
Saviour, men build sepulchers and sound the praises of the dead
prophets, while they persecute the living messengers of the Most High.
Wm. Miller was despised and hated by the ungodly and unbelieving; but
his influence and his labors were a blessing to the world. Under his
preaching, thousands of sinners were converted, backsliders were
reclaimed, and multitudes were led to study the Scriptures and to find
in them a beauty and glory before unknown.
CHAPTER 14
THE FIRST ANGEL'S MESSAGE
(222)
The prophecy of the first angel's message, brought to view in
Revelation 14, found its fulfillment in the Advent movement of
1840-1844. In both Europe and America, men of faith and prayer were
deeply moved as their attention was called to the prophecies, and,
tracing down the inspired record, they saw convincing evidence that the
end of all things was at hand. The Spirit of God urged his servants to
give the warning. Far and wide spread the message of the everlasting
gospel, "Fear God, and give glory to him; for the hour of his Judgment
is come." Rev. 14:7.
Wherever missionaries had penetrated, were sent the
glad tidings of Christ's speedy return. In different lands were found
isolated bodies of Christians, who, solely by the study of the
Scriptures, had arrived at the belief that the Saviour's advent was
near. In some portions of Europe, where the laws were so oppressive as
to forbid the preaching of the Advent doctrine, little children were
impelled to declare it, and many listened to the solemn warning.
To Wm. Miller and his co-laborers it was given to
preach the message in America, and the light kindled by their labors
shone out to distant lands. The testimony ((223) of the
Scriptures pointing to the coming of Christ in 1843, awakened
wide-spread interest. Many were convinced that the arguments from the
prophetic periods were correct, and, sacrificing their pride of
opinion, they joyfully received the truth. Some ministers laid aside
their sectarian views and feelings, left their salaries and their
churches, and united in proclaiming the coming of Jesus. There were but
few ministers, however, who would accept this message' therefore it was
largely committed to humble laymen. Farmers left their fields,
mechanics their tools, traders their merchandise, professional men
their positions; and yet the number of workers was small in comparison
with the work to be accomplished. The condition of an ungodly church
and a world lying in wickedness burdened the souls of the true
watchmen, and they willingly endured toil, privation, and suffering
that they might call men to repentance unto salvation. Though opposed
by Satan, the work went steadily forward, and the Advent truth was
accepted by many thousands.
Everywhere was heard the searching testimony warning
sinners, both worldlings and church-members, to flee from the wrath to
come. Like John the Baptist, the forerunner of Christ, the preachers
laid the ax at the root of the tree, and urged all to bring forth fruit
meet for repentance. Their stirring appeals were in marked contrast to
the assurances of peace and safety that were heard from popular
pulpits; and wherever the message was given, it moved the people. The
simple, direct testimony of the Scriptures, set home by the power of
the Holy Spirit, brought a weight of conviction which few were able (224)
wholly to resist. Professors of religion were roused from their false
security. They saw their backslidings, their worldliness and unbelief,
their pride and selfishness. Many sought the Lord with repentance and
humiliation. The affections that had so long clung to earthly things
they now fixed upon Heaven. The Spirit of God rested upon them, and
with hearts softened and subdued they joined to sound the cry, "Fear
God, and give glory to him; for the hour of his Judgment is come."
Sinners inquired with weeping, "What must I do to be
saved?" Those whose lives had been marked with dishonesty were anxious
to make restitution. All who found peace in Christ longed to see others
share the blessing. The hearts of parents were turned to their
children, and the hearts of children to their parents. The barriers of
pride and reserve were swept away. Heartfelt confessions were made, and
the members of the household labored for the salvation of those who
were nearest and dearest. Often was heard the sound of earnest
intercession. Everywhere were souls in deep anguish, pleading with God.
Many wrestled all night in prayer for the assurance that their own sins
were pardoned, or for the conversion of their relatives or neighbors.
That earnest, determined faith gained its object. Had the people of God
continued to be thus importunate in prayer, pressing their petitions at
the mercy-seat, they would be in possession of a far richer experience
than they now have. There is too little prayer, too little real
conviction of sin; and the lack of living faith leaves many destitute
of the grace so richly provided by our gracious Redeemer.
(225)
All classes flocked to the Adventist meetings. Rich and poor, high and
low, were, from various causes, anxious to hear for themselves the
doctrine of the second advent. The Lord held the spirit of opposition
in check while his servants explained the reasons of their faith.
Sometimes the instrument was feeble; but the Spirit of God gave power
to his truth. The presence of holy angels was felt in these assemblies,
and many were daily added to the believers. As the evidences of
Christ's soon coming were repeated, vast crowds listened in breathless
silence to the solemn words. Heaven and earth seemed to approach each
other. The power of God would be felt upon old and young and
middle-aged. Men sought their homes with praises upon their lips, and
the glad sound rang out upon the still night air. None who attended
those meetings can ever forget those scenes of deepest interest.
The proclamation of a definite time for Christ's
coming called forth great opposition from many of all classes, from the
minister in the pulpit down to the most reckless, Heaven-daring sinner.
"No man knoweth the day nor the hour!" was heard alike from the
hypocritical minister and the bold scoffer. They closed their ears to
the clear and harmonious explanation of the text by those who were
pointing to the close of the prophetic periods and to the signs which
Christ himself had foretold as tokens of his advent. Many who professed
to love the Saviour, declared that they had no opposition to the
preaching of his coming; they merely objected to the definite time.
God's all-seeing eye read their hearts. (226) They did not wish
to hear of Christ's coming to judge the world in righteousness. They
had been unfaithful servants, their works would not bear the inspection
of the heart-searching God, and they feared to meet their Lord. Like
the Jews at the time of Christ's first advent, they were not prepared
to welcome Jesus. Satan and his angels exulted and flung the taunt in
the face of Christ and holy angels, that his professed people had so
little love for him that they did not desire his appearing.
Unfaithful watchmen hindered the progress of the work
of God. As the people were roused, and began to inquire the way of
salvation, these leaders stepped in between them and the truth, seeking
to quiet their fears by falsely interpreting the word of God. In this
work, Satan and unconsecrated ministers united, crying, Peace, peace,
when God had not spoken peace. Like the Pharisees in Christ's day, many
refused to enter the kingdom of Heaven themselves, and those who were
entering in, they hindered. The blood of these souls will be required
at their hand.
Wherever the message of truth was proclaimed, the
most humble and devoted in the churches were the first to receive it.
Those who studied the Bible for themselves could not but see the
unscriptural character of the popular views of prophecy, and wherever
the people were not deceived by the efforts of the clergy to misstate
and pervert the faith, wherever they would search the word of God for
themselves, the Advent doctrine needed only to be compared with the
Scriptures to establish its divine authority.
(227)
Many were persecuted by their unbelieving brethren. In order to retain
their position in the church, some consented to be silent in regard to
their hope; but others felt that loyalty to God forbade them thus to
hide the truths which he had committed to their trust. Not a few were
cut off from the fellowship of the church for no other reason than
expressing their belief in the coming of Christ. Very precious to those
who bore the trial of their faith were the words of the prophet, "Your
brethren that hated you, that cast you out for my name's sake, said,
Let the Lord be glorified. But he shall appear to your joy, and they
shall be ashamed." Isa. 66:5.
Angels of God were watching with the deepest interest
the result of the warning. When the churches as a body rejected the
message, angels turned away from them in sadness. Yet there were in the
churches many who had not yet been tested in regard to the Advent
truth. Many were deceived by husbands, wives, parents, or children, and
were made to believe it a sin even to listen to such heresies as were
taught by the Adventists. Angels were bidden to keep faithful watch
over these souls; for another light was yet to shine upon them from the
throne of God.
With unspeakable desire those who had received the
message watched for the coming of their Saviour. The time when they
expected to meet him was at hand. They approached this hour with a calm
solemnity. They rested in sweet communion with God, an earnest of the
peace that was to be theirs in the bright hereafter. None who
experience this (228) hope and trust can forget those precious
hours of waiting. Worldly business was for the most part laid aside for
a few weeks. Believers carefully examined every thought and emotion of
their hearts as if upon their death-beds and in a few hours to close
their eyes upon earthly scenes. There was no making of "ascension
robes;" but all felt the need of internal evidence that they were
prepared to meet the Saviour; their white robes were purity of
soul,--characters cleansed from sin by the atoning blood of Christ.
God designed to prove his people. His hand covered a
mistake in the reckoning of the prophetic periods. Adventists did not
discover the error, nor was it discovered by the most learned of their
opponents. The latter said, "Your reckoning of the prophetic periods is
correct. Some great event is about to take place; but it is not what
Mr. Miller predicts; it is the conversion of the world, and not the
second advent of Christ."
The time of expectation passed, and Christ did not
appear for the deliverance of his people. Those who with sincere faith
and love had looked for their Saviour, experienced a bitter
disappointment. Yet the Lord had accomplished his purpose: he had
tested the hearts of those who professed to be waiting for his
appearing. There were among them many who had been actuated by no
higher motive than fear. Their profession of faith had not affected
their hearts or their lives. When the expected event failed to take
place, these persons declared that they were not disappointed; they had
never believed that Christ (229) would come. They were among the first to ridicule the sorrow of the true believers.
But Jesus and all the heavenly host looked with love
and sympathy upon the tried and faithful yet disappointed ones. Could
the vail separating the visible from the invisible world have been
swept back, angels would have been seen drawing near to these steadfast
souls, and shielding them from the shafts of Satan.
CHAPTER 15
THE SECOND ANGEL'S MESSAGE
(230)
The churches that refused to receive the first angel's message,
rejected light from Heaven. That message was sent in mercy to arouse
them to see their true condition of worldliness and backsliding, and to
seek a preparation to meet their Lord. God has ever required his people
to remain separate from the world, that they might not be allured from
their allegiance to him. He delivered the Israelites from bondage in
Egypt because he would not have them corrupted by the idolatry with
which they were there surrounded. The children of this world are the
children of darkness. Their attention is not directed to the Sun of
Righteousness, but is center upon themselves and the treasures of
earth. Blinded by the god of this world, they have no just perception
of the glory and majesty of the true God. While they enjoy his gifts,
they forget the claims of the Giver. Such have chosen to walk in
darkness, and they are led by the prince of the powers of darkness.
They do not love and enjoy divine things, because they do not discern
their value or loveliness. They have alienated themselves from the
light of God, and their under-standing becomes so confused in regard to
that which is right, true, and holy, that (231) the things of the Spirit of God are foolishness to them.
It was to separate the church of Christ from the
corrupting influence of the world that the first angel's message was
given. But with the multitude, even of professed Christians, the ties
which bound them to earth were stronger than the attractions
heavenward. They chose to listen to the voice of worldly wisdom, and
turned away from the heart-searching message of truth.
Peter, writing as he was inspired by the Holy Spirit,
described the manner in which the message of Christ's second coming
would be received: "There shall come in the last days scoffers, walking
after their own lusts, and saying, Where is the promise of his coming?
for since the fathers fell asleep, all things continue as they were
from the beginning of creation. For this they willingly are ignorant
of, that by the word of God the heavens were of old, and the earth
standing out of the water and in the water; whereby the world that then
was, being overflowed with water, perished; but the heavens and the
earth which are now , by the same word are kept in store, reserved unto
fire against the day of judgment and perdition of ungodly men." 2 Peter
3:3-7. Those who perished in the waters of the flood had an opportunity
to escape. All were urged to find refuge in the ark; but the multitudes
refused to heed the warning. So when the first angel's message was
given, all who heard were invited to receive it, and share the blessing
to follow its acceptance; but many scorned and rejected the call. One
turned to his farm, (232) another to his merchandise, and they
cared for none of these things. Inspiration declares that when the
antediluvians rejected Noah's words, the Spirit of God ceased to strive
with them. So when men now despise the warnings which God in mercy
sends them, his Spirit after a time ceases to arouse conviction in
their hearts. God gives light to be cherished and obeyed, not to be
despised and rejected. The light which he sends becomes darkness to
those who disregard it. When the Spirit of God ceases to impress the
truth upon the hearts of men, all hearing is vain, and all preaching
also is vain.
When the churches spurned the counsel of God by
rejecting the Advent message, the Lord rejected them. The first angel
was followed by a second, proclaiming, "Babylon is fallen, is fallen,
that great city, because she made all nations drink of the wine of the
wrath of her fornication." Rev. 14:8. This message was understood by
Adventists to be an announcement of the moral fall of the churches in
consequence of their rejection of the first message. The proclamation,
"Babylon is fallen," was given in the summer of 1844, and as the
result, about fifty thousand withdrew from these churches.
The term Babylon, derived from Babel, and signifying
confusion, is applied in Scripture to the various forms of false or
apostate religion. But the message announcing the fall of Babylon must
apply to some religious body that was once pure, and has become
corrupt. It cannot be the Romish Church which is here meant; for that
church has been in a fallen condition for many centuries. But how
appropriate (233) the figure as applied to the Protestant
churches, all professing to derive their doctrines from the Bible, yet
divided into almost innumerable sects. The unity for which Christ
prayed does not exist. Instead of one Lord, one faith, one baptism,
there are numberless conflicting creeds and theories. Religious faith
appears so confused and discordant that the world know not what to
believe as truth. God is not in all this; it is the work of man,--the
work of Satan.
In Revelation 17, Babylon is represented as a woman,
a figure which is used in the Scriptures as the symbol of a church. A
virtuous woman represents a pure church, a vile woman an apostate
church. Babylon is said to be a harlot; and the prophet beheld her
drunken with the blood of saints and martyrs. The Babylon thus
described represents Rome, that apostate church which has so cruelly
persecuted the followers of Christ. But Babylon the harlot is the
mother of daughters who follow her example of corruption. Thus are
represented those churches that cling to the doctrines and traditions
of Rome and follow her worldly practices, and whose fall is announced
in the second angel's message.
The close relation of the church to Christ is
represented under the figure of marriage. The Lord had joined his
people to himself by a solemn covenant, he promising to be their God,
and they pledging themselves to be his, and his alone. Said Paul,
addressing the church, "I have espoused you to one husband, that I may
present you as a chaste virgin to Christ." 2 Cor. 11:2. But when her
confidence and affection (234) were turned away from him, and
she sought after vanity, and allowed the love of worldly things to
separate her from God, she forfeited the privileges included in this
peculiar and sacred relation. By the apostle James those who assimilate
to the world are addressed as "adulterers and adulteresses." James 4:4.
A profession of religion has become popular with the
world. Rulers, politicians, lawyers, doctors, merchants, join the
church as a means of securing the respect and confidence of society,
and advancing their own worldly interests. Thus they seek to cover all
their unrighteous transactions under a profession of Christianity. The
various religious bodies, re-enforced by the wealth and influence of
these baptized worldlings, make a still higher bid for popularity and
patronage. Splendid churches, embellished in the most extravagant
manner, are erected on popular avenues. The worshipers array themselves
in costly and fashionable attire. A high salary is paid for a talented
minister to entertain and attract the people. His sermons must not
touch popular sins, but be made smooth and pleasing for fashionable
ears. Thus fashionable sinners are enrolled on the church-records, and
fashionable sins are concealed under a pretense of godliness. God looks
down upon these apostate bodies, and declares them daughters of a
harlot. To secure the favor and support of the great men of earth, they
have broken their solemn vows of allegiance and fidelity to the King of
Heaven.
The great sin charged against Babylon is, that she
"made all nations drink of the wine of the wrath of her fornication."
This cup of intoxication (235) which she presents to the world,
represents the false doctrines which she has accepted as the result of
her unlawful connection with the great ones of the earth. Friendship
with the world corrupts her faith, and in her turn she exerts a
corrupting influence upon the world by teaching doctrines which are
opposed to the plainest statements of the word of God.
Prominent among these false doctrines is that of the
temporal millennium,--a thousand years of spiritual peace and
prosperity, in which the world is to be converted, before the coming of
Christ. This siren song has lulled thousands of souls to sleep over the
abyss of eternal ruin.
The doctrine of the natural immortality of the soul
has opened the way for the artful working of Satan through modern
Spiritualism; and besides the Romish errors, purgatory, prayers for the
dead, invocation of saints, etc., which have sprung from this source,
it has led many Protestants to deny the resurrection and the Judgment,
and has given rise to the revolting heresy of eternal torment, and the
dangerous delusion of Universalism.
And even more dangerous and more widely held than
these are the assumptions that the law of God was abolished at the
cross, and that the first day of the week is now a holy day, instead of
the Sabbath of the fourth commandment.
When faithful teachers expound the word of God, there
arise men of learning, ministers professing to understand the
Scriptures, who denounce sound doctrine as heresy, and thus turn away
inquirers after truth. Were it not that the world is hopelessly (236)
intoxicated with the wine of Babylon, multitudes would be convicted and
converted by the plain, cutting truths of the word of God. The sin of
the world's impenitence lies at the door of the church.
God sent his professed people a message that would
have corrected the evils which separated them from his favor. A state
of union, faith, and love had been produced among those who from every
denomination in Christendom received the Advent doctrine; and had the
churches in general accepted the same truth, the same blessed results
would have followed. But Babylon scornfully rejected the last means
which Heaven had in reserve for her restoration, and then, with greater
eagerness, she turned to seek the friendship of the world.
Those who preached the first message had no purpose
or expectation of causing divisions in the churches, or of forming
separate organizations. "In all my labors," said Wm. Miller, "I never
had the desire or thought to establish any separate interest from that
of existing denominations, or to benefit one at the expense of another.
I thought to benefit all. Supposing that all Christians would rejoice
in the prospect of Christ's coming, and that those who could not see as
I did would not love any the less those who should embrace this
doctrine, I did not conceive there would ever be any necessity for
separate meetings. My whole object was a desire to convert souls to
God, to notify the world of a coming Judgment, and to induce my
fellow-men to make that preparation of heart which will enable them to
meet their God in peace. The great majority of those who were converted
under my labors united (237) with the various existing
churches. When individuals came to me to inquire respecting their duty,
I always told them to go where they would feel at home; and I never
favored any one denomination in my advice to such."
For a time many of the churches welcomed his labors;
but as they decided against the Advent truth, they desired to suppress
all agitation of the subject. Those who had accepted the doctrine were
thus placed in a position of great trial and perplexity. They loved
their churches, and were loth to separate from them; but as they were
ridiculed and oppressed, denied the privilege of speaking of their
hope, or of attending preaching upon the Lord's coming, many at last
arose and cast off the yoke which had been imposed upon them.
In the days of the Reformation, the gentle and pious
Melancthon declared, "There is no other church than the assembly of
those who have the word of God, and who are purified by it."
Adventists, seeing that the churches rejected the testimony of God's
word, could no longer regard them as constituting the church of Christ,
"the pillar and ground of the truth;" and as the message, "Babylon is
fallen," began to be proclaimed, they felt themselves justified in
separating from their former connection.
Since the rejection of the first message, a sad
change has taken place in the churches. As truth is spurned, error is
received and cherished. Love for God, and faith in his word, have grown
cold. The churches have grieved the Spirit of the Lord, and it has been
in a great measure withdrawn. The words of the prophet Ezekiel are
fearfully applicable: (238) "Son of man, these men have set up
their idols in their heart, and put the stumbling-block of their
iniquity before their face. Should I be inquired of at all by them?" "I
the Lord will answer him that cometh according to the multitude of his
idols." Ez. 14:3,4. Men may not bow down to idols of wood and stone,
but all who love the things of the world and take pleasure in
unrighteousness have set up idols in their hearts. The majority of
professed Christians are serving other gods besides the Lord. Pride and
luxury are cherished, idols are set up in the sanctuary, and her holy
places are polluted.
Anciently the Lord declared to his servants
concerning Israel; "The leaders of this people cause them to err, and
they that are led of them are destroyed." Isa. 9:16. "The prophets
prophesy falsely, and the priests bear rule by their means, and my
people love to have it so; and what will ye do in the end thereof?"
Jer. 5:31. "For from the least of them even unto the greatest of them,
every one is given to covetousness; and from the prophet even unto the
priest, every one dealeth falsely." Jer. 6:13. The Jewish church, once
so highly favored of the Lord, became an astonishment and a reproach
through neglect to improve the blessings granted them. Pride and
unbelief led to their ruin. But these scriptures do not apply to
ancient Israel only. The character and condition of many nominally
Christian churches are here portrayed. Though in possession of far
greater blessings than were granted to the Jews, they are following in
the steps of that people; and the greater the light and (239) privileges bestowed, the greater the guilt of those who permit them to pass unimproved.
The picture which the apostle Paul has drawn of the
professed people of God in the last days is a sad but faithful
delineation of the popular churches of our time. "Having a form of
godliness, but denying the power thereof," "lovers of pleasures more
than lovers of God," "lovers of their own selves, covetous, boasters,
proud," 2 Tim. 3:2-7. --such are a few specifications from the dark
catalogue which he has given. And in view of the frequent and startling
revelations of crime, even among those that ministers in holy things,
who dare affirm that there is one sin enumerated by the apostle which
is not concealed under a profession of Christianity?
"But what fellowship hath righteousness with
unrighteousness?" "And what concord hath Christ with Belial?" "And what
agreement hath the temple of God with Idols? For ye are the temple of
the living God; as God hath said, I will dwell in them, and walk in
them; and I will be their God, and they shall be my people. Wherefore
come out from among them, and be ye separate, saith the Lord, and touch
not the unclean, and I will receive you, and will be a Father unto
you;, and ye shall be my sons and daughters, saith the Lord Almighty."
2 Cor. 6:14-18.
At the proclamation of the first angel's message, the
people of God were in Babylon; and many true Christians are still to be
found in her communion. Not a few who have never seen the special
truths for this time are dissatisfied with their present position, and
are longing for clearer light. They look in vain (240) for the
image of Christ in the church. As the churches depart more and more
widely from the truth, and ally themselves more closely with the world,
the time will come when those who fear and honor God can no longer
remain in connection with them. Those that "believed not the truth, but
had pleasure in unrighteousness," will be left to receive "strong
delusion," and to "believe a lie." 2 Thess. 2:11,12. Then the spirit of
persecution will again be revealed. But the light of truth will shine
upon all whose hearts are open to receive it, and all the children of
the Lord still in Babylon, will heed the call, "Come out of her, my
people."
CHAPTER 16
THE TARRYING TIME
(241)
When the year 1843 entirely passed away unmarked by the advent of
Jesus, those who had looked in faith for his appearing were for a time
left in doubt and perplexity. But notwithstanding their disappointment,
many continued to search the Scriptures, examining anew the evidences
of their faith, and carefully studying the prophecies to obtain further
light. The Bible testimony in support of their position seemed clear
and conclusive. Signs which could not be mistaken pointed to the coming
of Christ as near. The believers could not explain their
disappointment; yet they felt assured that God had led them in their
past experience.
Their faith was greatly strengthened by the direct
and forcible application of those scriptures which set forth a tarrying
time. As early as 1842, the Spirit of God had moved upon Charles Fitch
to devise the prophetic chart, which was generally regarded by
Adventists as a fulfillment of the command given by the prophet
Habakkuk, "to write the vision and make it plain upon tables." No one,
however, then saw the tarrying time, which was brought to view in the
same prophecy. After the disappointment, the full (242) meaning
of this scripture became apparent. Thus speaks the prophet: "Write the
vision, and make it plain upon tables, that he may run that readeth it.
For the vision is yet for an appointed time, but at the end it shall
speak, and not lie: though it tarry, wait for it; because it will
surely come, it will not tarry." Hab. 2:2,3.
A portion of Ezekiel's prophecy also was a source of
much strength and comfort to believers: "And the word of the Lord came
unto me, saying, Son of man, what is that proverb that ye have in the
land of Israel, saying, The days are prolonged, and every vision
faileth? Tell them therefore, Thus saith the Lord God:" "The days are
at hand, and the effect of every vision." "I will speak, and the word
that I shall speak shall come to pass; it shall be no more prolonged."
"They of the house of Israel say, The vision that he seeth is for many
days to come, and he prophesieth of the times that are far off.
Therefore say unto them, Thus saith the Lord God: There shall none of
my words be prolonged any more, but the word which I have spoken shall
be done." Ez. 12:21-25,27,28.
The waiting ones rejoiced that He who knows the end
from the beginning had looked down through the ages, and, foreseeing
their disappointment, had given them words of courage and hope. Had it
not been for such portions of Scripture, showing that they were in the
right path, their faith would have failed in that trying hour.
In the parable of the ten virgins, Matthew 25, the experience of Adventists is illustrated by the (243)
incidents of an Eastern marriage. "Then shall the kingdom of Heaven be
likened unto ten virgins, which took their lamps, and went forth to
meet the bridegroom." "While the bridegroom tarried, they all slumbered
and slept." The wide-spread movement under the proclamation of the
first message, answered to the going forth of the virgins, while the
passing of the time of expectation, the disappointment, and the delay,
were represented by the tarrying of the bridegroom. After the definite
time had passed, the true believers were still united in the belief
that the end of all things was at hand; but it soon became evident that
they were losing, to some extent, their zeal and devotion, and were
falling into the state denoted in the parable by the slumbering of the
virgins during the tarrying time.
About this time, fanaticism began to appear. Some who
professed to be zealous believers in the message rejected the word of
God as the one infallible guide, and, claiming to be led by the Spirit,
gave themselves up to the control of their own feelings, impressions,
and imaginations. There were some who manifested a blind and bigoted
zeal, denouncing all who would not sanction their course. Their
fanatical ideas and exercises met with no sympathy from the great body
of Adventists; yet they served to bring reproach upon the cause of
truth.
Satan was seeking by this means to oppose and destroy
the work of God. The people had been greatly stirred by the Advent
movement, thousands of sinners had been converted, and faithful men
were giving themselves to the work of proclaiming the truth, even in
the tarrying time. The prince of evil was (244) losing his
subjects; and in order to bring reproach upon the cause of God, he
sought to deceive those who professed the faith, and to drive them to
extremes. Then his agents stood ready to seize upon every error, every
failure, every unbecoming act, and hold it up before the people in the
most exaggerated light, to render Adventists and their faith odious.
Thus the greater the number whom he could crowd in to make a profession
of the Advent faith while his power controlled their hearts, the
greater advantage would he gain by calling attention to them as
representatives of the whole body of believers.
Satan is an accuser of the brethren, and it is his
spirit which inspires men to watch for the errors and defects of the
Lord's people, and to hold them up to notice, while their good deeds
are passed by without a mention. He is always active when God is at
work for the salvation of souls. When the sons of God come to present
themselves before the Lord, Satan comes also among them. In every
revival he is ready to bring in those who are unsanctified in heart and
unbalanced in mind. When they have accepted some points of truth, and
gained a place with believers, he works through them to introduce
theories that will deceive the unwary. No man is proved to be a true
Christian because he is found in company with the children of God, even
in the house of worship and around the table of the Lord. Satan is
frequently there upon the most solemn occasions, in the form of those
whom he can use as his agents.
The great deceiver will profess anything, in order to
gain adherents. But should he claim to be converted, should he, if it
were possible, enter Heaven and (245) associate with the angels
he would not be changed in character. While the true worshipers would
be bowed in adoration before their Maker, he would be plotting mischief
against God's cause and people, devising means to ensnare souls,
considering the most successful method of sowing tares.
Satan contests every inch of ground over which God's
people advance in their journey toward the heavenly city. In all the
history of the church, no reformation has been carried forward without
encountering serious obstacles. Thus it was in Paul's day. Wherever the
apostle would raise up a church, there were some who professed to
receive the faith, but who brought in heresies, that, if received,
would eventually crowd out the love of the truth. Luther suffered great
perplexity and distress from the course of fanatical persons who
claimed that God had spoken directly through them, and who therefore
set their own ideas and opinions above the testimony of the Scriptures.
Many who were lacking in faith and experience, but who had considerable
self-sufficiency, and who loved to hear and tell some new thing, were
beguiled by the pretensions of the new teachers, and they joined the
agents of Satan in their work of tearing down what God had moved Luther
to build up. The Wesleys also, and others who blessed the world by
their influence and their faith, encountered at every step the wiles of
Satan in pushing over-zealous, unbalanced, and unsanctified ones into
fanaticism of every grade.
Wm. Miller had no sympathy with those influences that
led to fanaticism. He declared, with Martin Luther, that every spirit
should be tested by the word (246) of God: "The devil has great
power over the minds of some at the present day. And how shall we know
what manner of spirit they are of? The Bible answers: 'By their fruits
ye shall know them.'" "There are many spirits gone out into the world;
and we are commanded to try the spirits. The spirit that does not cause
us to live soberly, righteously, and godly, in this present world, is
not the spirit of Christ. I am more and more convinced that Satan has
much to do in these wild movements." "Many among us, who pretend to be
wholly sanctified, are following the traditions of men, and apparently
are as ignorant of truth as others who make no such pretensions, and
are not half so modest ." "The spirit of error will lead us from the
truth; and the Spirit of God will lead us into truth. But, say you, a
man may be in error, and think he has the truth. What then? We answer,
The Spirit and word agree. If a man judges himself by the word of God,
and finds a perfect harmony through the whole word, then he must
believe he has the truth; but if he finds the spirit by which he is led
does not harmonize with the whole tenor of God's law or book, then let
him walk carefully, lest he be caught in the snare of the devil." "I
have often obtained more evidence of inward piety from a kindling eye,
a wet cheek, and a choked utterance, than from all the noise in
Christendom."
The enemies of the Reformation charged all the evils
of fanaticism upon the very ones who were laboring most earnestly
against it. A similar course was pursued by the opposers of the Advent
movement. And not content with misrepresenting and exaggerating the
errors of extremists and fanatics, (247) they circulated
unfavorable reports that had not the slightest semblance of truth.
These persons were actuated by prejudice and hatred. Their peace was
disturbed by the proclamation of Christ at the door. They feared it
might be true, yet hoped it was not, and this was the secret of their
warfare against Adventists and their faith.
The fact that a few fanatics worked their way into
the ranks of Adventists is no more a reason to decide that the movement
was not of God, than is the presence of fanatics and deceivers in the
church in Paul's or Luther's day a sufficient excuse for discarding or
ridiculing their work. Let the people of God arouse out of sleep, and
begin in earnest the work of repentance and reformation, let them
search the Scriptures to learn the truth as it is in Jesus, let them
make an entire consecration to God, and evidence will not be wanting
that Satan is still active and vigilant. With all possible deception
will he manifest his power, calling to his aid all the fallen angels of
his realm.
It was not the proclamation of the Advent message
that created fanaticism and division. These appeared in the summer of
1844, when Adventists were in a state of doubt and perplexity
concerning their real position. The preaching of the first message in
1843, and of the midnight cry in 1844, tended directly to repress
fanaticism and dissension. Those who participated in these solemn
movements were in harmony; their hearts were filled with love for one
another, and for Jesus, whom they expected soon to see. The one faith,
the one blessed hope, lifted them above the control of any human
influence, and proved a shield against the assaults of Satan.
CHAPTER 17
THE MIDNIGHT CRY
(248)
"While the bridegroom tarried, they all slumbered and slept. And at
midnight there was a cry made, Behold, the bridegroom cometh; go ye out
to meet him. Then all those virgins arose, and trimmed their lamps."
Matt. 25:5-7.
In the summer of 1844, Adventists discovered the
mistake in their former reckoning of the prophetic periods, and settled
upon the correct position. The 2300 days of Dan. 8:14, which all
believed to extend to the second coming of Christ, had been thought to
end in the spring of 1844; but it was now seen that this period
extended to the autumn of the same year, and the minds of Adventists
were fixed upon this point as the time for the Lord's appearing. The
proclamation of this time message was another step in the fulfillment
of the parable of the marriage, whose application to the experience of
Adventists had already been clearly seen. As in the parable the cry was
raised at midnight announcing the approach of the bridegroom, so in the
fulfillment, midway between the spring of 1844, when it was first
supposed that the 2300 days would close, and the autumn of 1844, at
which time it was afterward found (249) that they were really
to close, such a cry was raised, in the very words of Scripture:
"Behold, the Bridegroom cometh; go ye out to meet him."
Like a tidal wave the movement swept over the land.
From city to city, from village to village, and into remote country
places it went, until the waiting people of God were fully aroused.
Before this proclamation, fanaticism disappeared, like early frost
before the rising sun. Believers once more found their position, and
hope and courage animated their hearts. The work was free from those
extremes which are ever manifested when there is human excitement
without the controlling influence of the word and Spirit of God. It was
similar in character to those seasons of humiliation and returning unto
the Lord which among ancient Israel followed messages of reproof from
his servants. It bore the characteristics which mark the work of God in
every age. There was little ecstatic joy, but rather deep searching of
heart, confession of sin, and forsaking of the world. A preparation to
meet the Lord was the burden of agonizing spirits. There was
persevering prayer, and unreserved consecration to God.
Said Wm. Miller, in describing that work: "There is
no great expression of joy; that is, as it were, suppressed for a
future occasion, when all Heaven and earth will rejoice together with
joy unspeakable and full of glory. There is no shouting; that, too, is
reserved for the shout from Heaven. The singers are silent; they are
waiting to join the angelic hosts, the choir from Heaven. No arguments
are used or needed; all seem convinced that they have the truth. There
is no clashing of sentiments; all are of one heart and of one mind."
(250)
Of all the great religious movements since the days of the apostles,
none have been more free from human imperfection and the wiles of Satan
than was that of the autumn of 1844. Even now, after the lapse of forty
years, all who shared in that movement and who have stood firm upon the
platform of truth, still feel the holy influence of that blessed work,
and bear witness that it was of God.
At the call, "The Bridegroom cometh; go ye out to
meet him," the waiting ones "arose and trimmed their lamps;" they
studied the word of God with an intensity of interest before unknown.
Angels were sent from Heaven to arouse those who had become
discouraged, and prepare them to receive the message. The work did not
stand in the wisdom and learning of men, but in the power of God. It
was not the most talented, but the most humble and devoted, who were
the first to hear and obey the call. Farmers left their crops standing
in the fields, mechanics laid down their tools, and with tears and
rejoicing went out to give the warning. Those who had formerly led in
the cause were among the last to join in this movement. The churches in
general closed their doors against it, and a large company who had the
living testimony withdrew from their connection. In the providence of
God, this cry united with the second angel's message, and gave power to
that work.
The midnight cry was not so much carried by argument,
though the Scripture proof was clear and conclusive. There went with it
an impelling power that moved the soul. There was no doubt, no
questioning. Upon the occasion of Christ's triumphal (251)
entry into Jerusalem, the people who were assembled from all parts of
the land to keep the feast, flocked to the Mount of Olives, and as they
joined the throng that were escorting Jesus, they caught the
inspiration of the hour, and helped to swell the shout, "Blessed is he
that cometh in the name of the Lord!" Matt. 21:9. In like manner did
unbelievers who flocked to the Adventist meetings--some from curiosity,
some merely to ridicule--feel the convincing power attending the
message, "Behold, the Bridegroom cometh!"
At that time there was faith that brought answers to
prayer,--faith that had respect to the recompense of reward. Like
showers of rain upon the thirsty earth, the Spirit of grace descended
upon the earnest seekers. Those who expected soon to stand face to face
with their Redeemer felt a solemn joy that was unutterable. The
softening, subduing power of the Holy Spirit melted the heart, as wave
after wave of the glory of God swept over the faithful, believing ones.
Carefully and solemnly those who received the message
came up to the time when they hoped to meet their Lord. Every morning
they felt that it was their first duty to secure the evidence of their
acceptance with God. Their hearts were closely united, and they prayed
much with and for one another. They often met together in secluded
places to commune with God, and the voice of intercession ascended to
Heaven from the fields and groves. The assurance of the Saviour's
approval was more necessary to them than their daily food, and if a
cloud (252) darkened their minds, they did not rest until it
was swept away. As they felt the witness of pardoning grace, they
longed to behold Him whom their souls loved.
But again they were destined to disappointment. The
time of expectation passed, and their Saviour did not appear. With
unwavering confidence they had looked forward to his coming, and now
they felt as did Mary, when, coming to the Saviour's tomb and finding
it empty, she exclaimed with weeping, "They have taken away my Lord,
and I know not where they have laid him." John 20:13.
A feeling of awe, a fear that the message might be
true, had for a time served as a restraint upon the unbelieving world.
After the passing of the time, this did not at once disappear; they
dared not triumph over the disappointed ones; but as no tokens of God's
wrath were seen, they recovered from their fears, and resumed their
reproach and ridicule. A large class who had professed to believe in
the Lord's soon coming, renounced their faith. Some who had been very
confident were so deeply wounded in their pride that they felt like
fleeing from the world. Like Jonah, they complained of God, and chose
death rather than life. Those who had based their faith upon the
opinions of others, and not upon the word of God, were now as ready to
again exchange their views. The scoffers won the weak and cowardly to
their ranks, and all united in declaring that there could be no more
fears or expectations now. The time had passed, the Lord had not come,
and the world might remain the same for thousands of years.
(253)
The earnest, sincere believers had given up all for Christ, and had
shared his presence as never before. They had, as they believed, given
their last warning to the world, and, expecting soon to be received
into the society of their divine Master and the heavenly angels, they
had, to a great extent, withdrawn from the unbelieving multitude. With
intense desire they had prayed, "Come, Lord Jesus, and come quickly."
But he had not come. And now to take up again the heavy burden of
life's cares and perplexities, and to endure the taunts and sneers of a
scoffing world, was indeed a terrible trial of faith and patience.
Yet this disappointment was not so great as was that
experience by the disciples at the time of Christ's first advent. When
Jesus rode triumphantly into Jerusalem, his followers believed that he
was about to ascend the throne of David, and deliver Israel from her
oppressors. With high hopes and joyful anticipations they vied with one
another in showing honor to their King. Many spread their outer
garments as a carpet in his path, or strewed before him the leafy
branches of the palm. In their enthusiastic joy they united in the glad
acclaim, "Hosanna to the Son of David!" When the Pharisees, disturbed
and angered by this outburst of rejoicing, wished Jesus to rebuke his
disciples, he replied, "If these should hold their peace, the stones
would immediately cry out." Luke 19:40. Prophecy must be fulfilled. The
disciples were accomplishing the purpose of God; yet they were doomed
to a bitter disappointment. But a few days had passed ere they
witnessed the Savior's agonizing death, and laid him in the tomb. (254)
Their expectations had not been realized in a single particular, and
their hopes died with Jesus. Not till their Lord had come forth
triumphant from the grave could they perceive that all had been
foretold by prophecy, and "that Christ must needs have suffered, and
risen again from the dead." Acts 17:3. In like manner was prophecy
fulfilled in the first and second angels' messages. They were given at
the right time, and accomplished the work which God designed to
accomplish by them.
The world had been looking on, expecting that if the
time passed and Christ did not appear, the whole system of Adventism
would be given up. But while many, under strong temptation, yielded
their faith, there were some who stood firm. They could detect no error
in their reckoning of the prophetic periods. The ablest of their
opponents had not succeeded in overthrowing their position. True, there
had been a failure as to the expected event, but even this could not
shake their faith in the word of God. When Jonah proclaimed in the
streets of Nineveh that within forty days the city would be overthrown,
the Lord accepted the humiliation of the Ninevites, and extended their
period of probation; yet the message of Jonah was sent of God, and
Nineveh was tested according to his will. Adventists believed that God
had in like manner led them to warn the world of the coming Judgment,
and notwithstanding their disappointment, they felt assured that they
had reached a most important crisis.
The parable of the wicked servant was regarded as
applying to those who desired to put off the coming of the Lord: "If
that evil servant (255) shall say in his heart, My lord
delayeth his coming; and shall begin to smite his fellow-servants, and
to eat and drink with the drunken; the lord of that servant shall come
in a day when he looketh not for him, and in an hour that he is not
aware of, and shall cut him asunder, and appoint him his portion with
the hypocrites." Matt. 24:48-51.
The feelings of those who held fast the Advent truth
are expressed in the words of Wm. Miller: "Were I to live my life over
again, with the same evidence that I then had, to be honest with God
and men I should have to do as I have done." "I hope I have cleansed by
garments from the blood of souls; I feel that, as far as possible, I
have freed myself from all guilt in their condemnation." "Although I
have been twice disappointed," wrote this man of God, "I am not yet
cast down or discouraged." "My hope in the coming of Christ is as
strong as ever. I have done only what, after years of sober
consideration, I felt it my solemn duty to do. If I have erred, it has
been on the side of charity, the love of my fellow-man, and my
conviction of duty to God." "One thing I do know, I have preached
nothing but what I believed; and God's hand has been with me, his power
has been manifested in the work, and much good has been effected."
"Many thousands, to all human appearance, have been made to study the
Scriptures by the preaching of the time; and by that means, through
faith and the sprinkling of the blood of Christ, have been reconciled
to God." "I have never courted the smiles of the proud, nor quailed
when the world frowned. I shall not now purchase their favor, nor (256)
shall I go beyond duty to tempt their hate. I shall never seek my life
at their hands, nor shrink, I hope, from losing it, if God in his good
providence so orders."
God did not forsake his people; his Spirit still
abode with those who did not rashly deny the light which they had
received, and denounce the Advent movement. The apostle Paul, looking
down through the ages, had written words of encouragement and warning
for the tried, waiting ones at this crisis: "Cast not away therefore
your confidence, which hath great recompense of reward. For ye have
need of patience, that, after ye have done the will of God, ye might
receive the promise. For yet a little while, and He that shall come
will come, and will not tarry. Now the just shall live by faith; but if
any man draw back, my soul shall have no pleasure in him. But we are
not of them who draw back unto perdition, but of them that believe to
the saving of the soul." Heb. 10:35-39.
The people here addressed were in danger of making
shipwreck of faith. They had done the will of God in following the
guidance of his Spirit and his word; yet they could not understand his
purpose in their past experience, nor could they discern the pathway
before them, and they were tempted to doubt whether God had indeed been
leading them. At this time the words were specially applicable, "Now
the just shall live by faith." As the bright light of the midnight cry
had shone upon their pathway, and they had seen the prophecies
unsealed, and the rapidly fulfilling signs telling that the coming of
Christ was near, Adventists had walked, as it (257) were, by
sight. But now, bowed down by disappointed hopes, they could stand only
by faith in God and in his word. The scoffing world were saying, "You
have been deceived. Give up your faith, and say that the Advent
movement was of Satan." But God's word declared, "If any man draw back,
my soul shall have no pleasure in him." To renounce their faith now,
and deny the power of the Holy Spirit which had attended the message,
would be drawing back toward perdition. They were encouraged to
steadfastness by the words of Paul, "Cast not away therefore your
confidence;" "Ye have need of patience;" "for yet a little while, and
He that shall come will come, and will not tarry." Their only safe
course was to cherish the light which they had already received of God,
hold fast to his promises, and continue to search the Scriptures, and
patiently wait and watch to receive further light.
CHAPTER 18
THE SANCTUARY
(258)
The scripture which above all others had been both the foundation and
central pillar of the Advent faith was the declaration, "Unto two
thousand and three hundred days; then shall the sanctuary be cleansed."
Dan. 8:14. These had been familiar words to all believers in the Lord's
soon coming. By the lips of thousands was this prophecy joyfully
repeated as the watchword of their faith. All felt that upon the events
therein brought to view depended their brightest expectations and most
cherished hopes. These prophetic days had been shown to terminate in
the autumn of 1844. In common with the rest of the Christian world,
Adventists then held that the earth, or some portion of it, was the
sanctuary, and that the cleansing of the sanctuary was the purification
of the earth by the fires of the last great day. This they understood
would take place at the second coming of Christ. Hence the conclusion
that Christ would return to the earth in 1844.
But the appointed time came, and the Lord did not
appear. The believers knew that God's word could not fail; their
interpretation of the prophecy must be at fault; but where was the
mistake? Many rashly (259) cut the knot of difficulty by
denying that the 2300 days ended in 1844. No reason could be given for
this position, except that Christ had not come at the time of
expectation. They argued that if the prophetic days had ended in 1844,
Christ would then have come to cleanse the sanctuary by the
purification of the earth by fire; and that since he had not come, the
days could not have ended.
To accept this conclusion was to renounce the former
reckoning of the prophetic periods, and involve the whole question in
confusion. It was a deliberate surrender of positions which had been
reached through earnest, prayerful study of the Scriptures, by minds
enlightened by the Spirit of God, and hearts burning with its living
power; positions which had withstood the most searching criticism and
the most bitter opposition of popular religionists and worldly-wise
men, and which had stood firm against the combined forces of learning
and eloquence, and the taunts and revilings alike of the honorable and
the base. And all this sacrifice was made in order to maintain the
theory that the earth is the sanctuary.
God had led his people in the great Advent movement;
his power and glory had attended the work, and he would not permit it
to end in darkness and disappointment, to be reproached as a false and
fanatical excitement. He would not leave his word involved in doubt and
uncertainty. Though the majority of Adventists abandoned their former
reckoning of the prophetic periods, and consequently denied the
correctness of the movement based thereon, (260) a few were
unwilling to renounce points of faith and experience that were
sustained by the Scriptures and by the special witness of the Spirit of
God. They believed that they had adopted sound principles of
interpretation in their study of the Scriptures, and that it was their
duty to hold fast the truths already gained, and to still pursue the
same course of Biblical research. With earnest prayer they reviewed
their position, and studied the Scriptures to discover their mistake.
As they could see no error in their explanation of the prophetic
periods, they were led to examine more closely the subject of the
sanctuary.
In their investigation they learned, that the earthly
sanctuary, built by Moses at the command of God, according to the
pattern shown him in the mount, was "a figure for the time then
present, in which were offered both gifts and sacrifices;" that its two
holy places were "patterns of things in the heavens;" that Christ, our
great High Priest, is "a minister of the sanctuary, and of the true
tabernacle, which the Lord pitched, and not man;" that "Christ is not
entered into the holy places made with hands, which are the figures of
the true, but into Heaven itself, now to appear in the presence of God
for us." Heb. 9:9,23; 8:2; 9:24.
The sanctuary in Heaven, in which Jesus ministers in
our behalf, is the great original, of which the sanctuary built by
Moses was a copy. God placed his Spirit upon the builders of the
earthly sanctuary. The artistic skill displayed in its construction was
a manifestation of divine wisdom. The walls had the appearance of
massive gold, reflecting in every direction (261) the light of
the seven lamps of the golden candlestick. The table of show-bread and
the altar of incense glittered like burnished gold. The gorgeous
curtain which formed the ceiling, inwrought with figures of angels in
blue and purple and scarlet, added to the beauty of the scene. And
beyond the second veil was the holy shekinah, the visible manifestation
of God's glory, before which none but the high priest could enter and
live. The matchless splendor of the earthly tabernacle reflected to
human vision the glories of that heavenly temple where Christ our
forerunner ministers for us before the throne of God.
As the sanctuary on earth had two apartments, the
holy and the most holy, so there are two holy places in the sanctuary
in Heaven. And the ark containing the law of God, the altar of incense,
and other instruments of service found in the sanctuary below, have
also their counterpart in the sanctuary above. In holy vision the
apostle John was permitted to enter Heaven, and he there beheld the
candlestick and the altar of incense, and as "the temple of God was
opened," he beheld also "the ark of his testament." Rev. 4:5; 8:3;
11:19.
Those who were seeking for the truth found
indisputable proof of the existence of a sanctuary in Heaven. Moses
made the earthly sanctuary after a pattern which was shown him. Paul
declares that that pattern was the true sanctuary which is in Heaven.
John testifies that he saw it in Heaven.
In the temple in Heaven, the dwelling-place of God,
his throne is established in righteousness and judgment. In the most
holy place is his law, the great (262) rule of right by which
all mankind are tested. The ark that enshrines the tables of the law is
covered with the mercy-seat, before which Christ pleads his blood in
the sinner's behalf. Thus is represented the union of justice and mercy
in the plan of human redemption. This union infinite wisdom alone could
devise, and infinite power accomplish; it is a union that fills all
Heaven with wonder and adoration. The cherubim of the earthly sanctuary
looking reverently down upon the mercy-seat, represent the interest
with which the heavenly host contemplate the work of redemption. This
is the mystery of mercy into which angels desire to look,--that God can
be just while he justifies the repenting sinner, and renews his
intercourse with the fallen race; that Christ could stoop to raise
unnumbered multitudes from the abyss of ruin, and clothe them with the
spotless garments of his own righteousness, to unite with angels who
have never fallen, and to dwell forever in the presence of God.
At the termination of the 2300 days, in 1844, no
sanctuary had existed on earth for many centuries; therefore the
sanctuary in Heaven must be the one brought to view in the declaration,
"Unto two thousand and three hundred days; then shall the sanctuary be
cleansed." But how could a sanctuary in Heaven need cleansing? Turning
again to the Scriptures, the students of prophecy learned that the
cleansing was not a removal of physical impurities, for it was to be
accomplished with blood, and therefore must be a cleansing from sin.
Thus says the apostle: "It was therefore necessary that the patterns of
things in the Heavens should be purified, with these (263) [the
blood of animals]; but the heavenly things themselves with better
sacrifices than these [even the precious blood of Christ]." Heb. 9:23.
To obtain a further knowledge of the cleansing to which the prophecy
points, it was necessary to understand the ministration of the heavenly
sanctuary. This could be learned only from the ministration of the
earthly sanctuary; for Paul declares that the priests who officiated
there served "unto the example and shadow of heavenly things." Heb.
8:5.
The ministration of the earthly sanctuary consisted
of two divisions: the priests ministered daily in the holy place, while
once a year the high priest performed a special work of atonement in
the most holy, for the cleansing of the sanctuary. Day by day the
repentant sinner brought his offering to the door of the tabernacle,
and, placing his hand upon the victim's head, confessed his sins, thus
in figure transferring them to the innocent sacrifice. The animal was
then slain, and the blood or the flesh was carried by the priest into
the holy place. Thus the sin was, in figure, transferred to the
sanctuary. Such was the work that went forward throughout the year. The
continual transfer of sins to the sanctuary, rendered a further work of
ministration necessary in order for their removal. On the tenth day of
the seventh month the high priest entered the inner apartment, or most
holy place, which he was forbidden, on pain of death, to enter at any
other time. The cleansing of the sanctuary then performed completed the
yearly round of service.
On the great day of atonement, two kids of the (264)
goats were brought to the door of the tabernacle, and lots were cast
upon them, "one lot for the Lord, and the other lot for the
scape-goat." The goat upon which fell the lot for the Lord was to be
slain as a sin-offering for the people. And the priest was to bring his
blood within the veil, and sprinkle it upon the mercy-seat, and before
the mercy-seat. "And he shall make an atonement for the holy place,
because of the uncleanness of the children of Israel, and because of
their transgressions in all their sins; and so shall he do for the
tabernacle of the congregation, that remaineth among them in the midst
of their uncleanness." Lev. 16:8,16.
"And Aaron shall lay both his hands upon the head of
the live goat, and confess over him all the iniquities of the children
of Israel, and all their transgression in all their sins, putting them
upon the head of the goat, and shall send him away by the hand of a fit
man into the wilderness; and the goat shall bear upon him all their
iniquities unto a land not inhabited." Lev. 16:21,22. The scape-goat
came no more into the camp of Israel, and the man who led him away was
required to wash himself and his clothing with water before returning
to the camp.
The whole ceremony was designed to impress the
Israelites with the holiness of God and his abhorrence of sin, and,
further, to show them that they could not come in contact with sin
without becoming polluted. Every man was required to afflict his soul
while this work of atonement was going forward. All business was laid
aside, and the whole congregation of Israel spent the day in solemn
humiliation before God, with prayer, fasting, and deep searching of
heart.
(265)
Important truths concerning the atonement may be learned from the
typical service. A substitute was accepted in the sinner's stead; but
the sin was not canceled by the blood of the victim. A means was thus
provided by which it was transferred to the sanctuary. By the offering
of blood, the sinner acknowledged the authority of the law, confessed
his guilt in transgression, and expressed his desire for pardon through
faith in a Redeemer to come; but he was not yet entirely released from
the condemnation of the law. On the day of atonement the high priest,
having taken an offering from the congregation, went into the most holy
place with the blood of this general offering, and sprinkled it upon
the mercy-seat, directly over the law, to make satisfaction for its
claims. Then, in his character of mediator, he took the sins upon
himself, and bore them from the sanctuary. Placing his hands upon the
head of the scape-goat, he confessed over him all these sins, thus in
figure transferring them from himself to the goat. The goat then bore
them away, and they were regarded as forever separated from the people.
Such was the service performed "unto the example and
shadow of heavenly things." And what was done in type in the
ministration of the earthly, is done in reality in the ministration of
the heavenly. After his ascension, our Saviour began his work as our
high priest. Says Paul, "Christ is not entered into the holy places
made with hands, which are the figures of the true; but into Heaven
itself, now to appear in the presence of God for us." Heb. 9:24. In
harmony with the typical service, he began his ministration in (266)
the holy place, and at the termination of the prophetic days in 1844,
as foretold by Daniel the prophet, he entered the most holy to perform
the last division of his solemn work,--to cleanse the sanctuary.
As the sins of the people were anciently transferred,
in figure, to the earthly sanctuary by the blood of the sin-offering,
so our sins are, in fact, transferred to the heavenly sanctuary by the
blood of Christ. And as the typical cleansing of the earthly was
accomplished by the removal of the sins by which it had been polluted,
so the actual cleansing of the heavenly is to be accomplished by the
removal, or blotting out, of the sins which are there recorded. This
necessitates an examination of the books of record to determine who,
through repentance of sin and faith in Christ, are entitled to the
benefits of his atonement. The cleansing of the sanctuary therefore
involves a work of investigative Judgment. This work must be performed
prior to the coming of Christ to redeem his people; for when he comes,
his reward is with him to give to every man according to his works.
Rev. 22:12.
Thus those who followed in the advancing light of the
prophetic word saw that instead of coming to the earth at the
termination of the 2300 days in 1844, Christ then entered the most holy
place of the heavenly sanctuary, into the presence of God, to perform
the closing work of atonement, preparatory to his coming.
It was seen, also, that while the sin-offering
pointed to Christ as a sacrifice, and the high priest represented
Christ as a mediator, the scape-goat typified Satan, the author of sin,
upon whom the sins of the truly (267) penitent will finally be
placed. When the high priest, by virtue of the blood of the
sin-offering, removed the sins from the sanctuary, he placed them upon
the scape-goat. When Christ, by virtue of his own blood, removes the
sins of his people from the heavenly sanctuary at the close of his
ministration, he will place them upon Satan, who, in the execution of
the judgment, must bear the final penalty. The scape-goat was sent away
into a land not inhabited, never to come again into the congregation of
Israel. So will Satan be forever banished from the presence of God and
his people, and he will be blotted from existence in the final
destruction of sin and sinners.
CHAPTER 19
AN OPEN AND A SHUT DOOR
(268)
The subject of the sanctuary was the key which unlocked the mystery of
the disappointment, showing that God had led his people in the great
Advent movement. It opened to view a complete system of truth,
connected and harmonious, and revealed present duty as it brought to
light the position and work of God's people.
After the passing of the time of expectation, in
1844, Adventists still believed the Saviour's coming to be very near;
they held that they had reached an important crisis, and that the work
of Christ as man's intercessor before God, had ceased. Having given the
warning of the Judgment near, they felt that their work for the world
was done, and they lost their burden of soul for the salvation of
sinners, while the bold and blasphemous scoffing of the ungodly seemed
to them another evidence that the Spirit of God had been withdrawn from
the rejecters of his mercy. All this confirmed them in the belief that
probation had ended, or, as they then expressed it, "the door of mercy
was shut."
But clearer light came with the investigation of the
sanctuary question. Now was seen the application of those words of
Christ in the Revelation, addressed to the church at this very time:
"These (269) things saith he that is holy, he that is true, he
that hath the key of David, he that openeth and no man shutteth, and
shutteth and no man openeth; I know thy works; behold, I have set
before thee an open door, and no man can shut it." Rev. 3:7,8. Here an
open as well as a shut door is brought to view. At the termination of
the 2300 prophetic days in 1844, Christ changed his ministration from
the holy to the most holy place. When, in the ministration of the
earthy sanctuary, the high priest on the day of atonement entered the
most holy place, the door of the holy place was closed, and the door of
the most holy was opened. So, when Christ passed from the holy to the
most holy of the heavenly sanctuary, the door, or ministration, of the
former apartment was closed, and the door, or ministration, of the
latter was opened. Christ had ended one part of his work as our
intercessor, to enter upon another portion of the work; and he still
presented his blood before the Father in behalf of sinners. "Behold,"
he declares, "I have set before thee an open door, and no man can shut
it."
Those who by faith follow Jesus in the great work of
the atonement, receive the benefits of his mediation in their behalf;
but those who reject the light that brings to view his work of
ministration, are not benefitted thereby. The Jews who rejected the
light given at Christ's first advent, and refused to believe in him as
the Saviour of the world, could not receive pardon through him. When
Jesus at his ascension entered by his own blood into the heavenly
sanctuary to shed upon his disciples the blessings of his mediation,
the Jews were left in total darkness, to continue (270) their
useless sacrifices and offerings. The ministration of types and shadows
had ceased. That door by which men had formerly found access to God,
was no longer open. The Jews had refused to seek him in the only way
whereby he could then be found, through the ministration in the
sanctuary in Heaven. Therefore they found no communion with God. To
them the door was shut. They had no knowledge of Christ as the true
sacrifice and the only mediator before God; hence they could not
receive the benefits of his mediation.
The condition of the unbelieving Jews illustrates the
condition of the careless and unbelieving among professed Christians,
who are willingly ignorant of the work of our merciful High Priest. In
the typical service, when the high priest entered the most holy place,
all Israel were required to gather about the sanctuary, and in the most
solemn manner humble their souls before God, that they might receive
the pardon of their sins, and not be cut off from the congregation. How
much more essential in this anti-typical day of atonement that we
understand the work of our High Priest, and know what duties are
required of us.
Men cannot with impunity reject the warnings which
God in mercy sends them. A message was sent from Heaven to the world in
Noah's day, and their salvation depended upon the manner in which they
treated that message. Because they rejected the warning, the Spirit of
God was withdrawn from that sinful race, and they perished in the
waters of the flood. In the time of Abraham, mercy ceased to plead with
the guilty inhabitants of Sodom, and all (271) but Lot with his
wife and two daughters were consumed by the fire sent down from heaven.
So in the days of Christ. The Son of God declared to the unbelieving
Jews of that generation, "Your house is left unto you desolate." Matt.
23:38. Looking down to the last days, the same infinite power declares,
concerning those who "received not the love of the truth, that they
might be saved, " "For this cause God shall send them strong delusion,
that they should believe a lie; that they all might be damned who
believed not the truth, but had pleasure in unrighteousness." 2 Thess.
2:10-12. As they reject the teachings of his word, God withdraws his
Spirit, and leaves them to the deceptions which they love.
But Christ still intercedes in man's behalf, and
light will be given to those who seek it. Though this was not at first
understood by Adventists, it was afterward made plain as the scriptures
which define their true position began to open before them.
The passing of the time in 1844 was followed by a
period of great trial to those who still held the Advent faith. Their
only relief, so far as ascertaining their true position was concerned,
was the light which directed their minds to the sanctuary above. As has
been stated, Adventist were for a short time united in the belief that
the door of mercy was shut. This position was soon abandoned. Some
renounced their faith in their former reckoning of the prophetic
periods, and ascribed to human or Satanic agencies the powerful
influence of the Holy Spirit which had attended the Advent movement.
Another class firmly held that the Lord had led them in their past (272)
experience; and as they waited and watched and prayed to know the will
of God, they saw that their great High Priest had entered upon another
work of ministration, and, following him by faith, they were led to
understand also the closing work of the church, and were prepared to
receive and give to the world the warning of the third angel of
Revelation 14.
CHAPTER 20
THE THIRD ANGEL'S MESSAGE
(273)
When Christ entered the most holy place of the heavenly sanctuary to
perform the closing work of the atonement, he committed to his servants
the last message of mercy to be given to the world. Such is the warning
of the third angel of Revelation 14. Immediately following its
proclamation, the son of man is seen by the prophet coming in glory to
reap the harvest of the earth.
As foretold in the Scriptures, the ministration of
Christ in the most holy place began at the termination of the prophetic
days in 1844. To this time apply the words of the Revelator, "The
temple of God was opened in Heaven, and there was seen in his temple
the ark of his testament." Rev. 11:19. The ark of God's testament is in
the second apartment of the sanctuary. As Christ entered there to
minister in the sinner's behalf, the inner temple was opened, and the
ark of God was brought to view. To those who by faith beheld the
Saviour in his work of intercession, God's majesty and power were
revealed. As the train of his glory filled the temple, light from the
holy of holies was shed upon his waiting people on earth.
They had by faith followed their High Priest from the holy to the most holy, and they saw him pleading (274)
his blood before the ark of God. Within that sacred ark is the Father's
law, the same that was spoken by God himself amid the thunders of
Sinai, and written with his own finger on the tables of stone. Not one
command has been annulled; not a jot or tittle has been changed. While
God gave to Moses a copy of his law, he preserved the great original in
the sanctuary above. Tracing down its holy precepts, the seekers for
truth found, in the very bosom of the decalogue, the fourth
commandment, as it was first proclaimed: "Remember the Sabbath day, to
keep it holy. Six days shalt thou labor, and do all thy work; but the
seventh day is the Sabbath of the Lord thy God: in it thou shalt not do
any work, thou, nor thy son, nor thy daughter, thy man-servant, nor thy
maid-servant, nor thy cattle, nor thy stranger that is within thy
gates: for in six days the Lord made heaven and earth, the sea, and all
that in them is, and rested the seventh day; wherefore the Lord blessed
the Sabbath day, and hallowed it." Ex. 20:8-11.
The Spirit of God impressed the hearts of these
students of his word. The conviction was urged upon them, that they had
ignorantly transgressed the fourth commandment by disregarding the
Creator's rest-day. They began to examine the reasons for observing the
first day of the week instead of the day which God had sanctified. They
could find no evidence in the Scriptures that the fourth commandment
had been abolished, or that the Sabbath had been changed; the blessing
which first hallowed the seventh day had never been removed. They had
been honestly seeking to know and do God's will, (275) and now,
as they saw themselves transgressors of his law, sorrow filled their
hearts. They at once evinced their loyalty to God by keeping his
Sabbath holy.
Many and earnest were the efforts made to overthrow
their faith. None could fail to see that if the earthly sanctuary was a
figure or pattern of the heavenly, the law deposited in the ark on
earth was an exact transcript of the law in the ark in Heaven, and that
an acceptance of the truth concerning the heavenly sanctuary involved
an acknowledgment of the claims of God's law, and the obligation of the
Sabbath of the fourth commandment. Here was the secret of the bitter
and determined opposition to the harmonious exposition of the
Scriptures that brought to view the ministration of Christ in the
heavenly sanctuary. How hard men tried to close the door which God had
opened, and to open the door which he had closed! But "He that openeth
and no man shutteth, and shutteth and no man openeth," had declared,
"Behold, I have set before thee an open door, and no man can shut it."
Rev. 3:7,8. Christ had opened the door, or ministration, of the most
holy place, light was shining from that open door of the sanctuary in
Heaven, and the fourth commandment was shown to be included in the law
within the ark; what God had established, no man could overthrow.
Those who had accepted the light concerning the
mediation of Christ and the perpetuity of the law of God, found that
these were the truths brought to view in the third message. The angel
declares, "Here are they that keep the commandments of (276)
God, and the faith of Jesus." This statement is preceded by a solemn
and fearful warning: "If any man worship the beast and his image, and
receive his mark in his forehead, or in his hand, the same shall drink
of the wine of the wrath of God, which is poured out without mixture
into the cup of his indignation." Rev. 14:9,10. An interpretation of
the symbols employed was necessary to an understanding of this message.
What was represented by the beast, the image, and the mark? Again those
who were seeking for the truth returned to the study of the prophecies.
In the book of the Revelation, under the symbols of a
great red dragon, a leopard-like beast, and a beast with lamb-like
horns, Rev. 12; 13. are brought to view those earthly governments which
are especially engaged in trampling upon God's law and persecuting his
people. Their war is carried forward to the close of time. The people
of God, symbolized by a holy woman and her children, are greatly in the
minority. In the last days only a remnant exist. John speaks of them as
those that "keep the commandments of God, and have the testimony of
Jesus Christ." Rev. 12:17.
Through the great powers controlled by paganism and
the papacy, symbolized by the dragon and the leopard-like beast, Satan
for many centuries destroyed God's faithful witnesses. Under the
dominion of Rome, they were tortured and slain for more than a thousand
years; but the papacy was at last deprived of its strength, and forced
to desist from persecution. Rev. 13:3,10. At that time the prophet
beheld a new power coming up, re-presented by (277) the beast
with lamb-like horns. The appearance of this beast and the manner of
its rise seem to indicate that the power which it represents is unlike
those brought to view under the preceding symbols. The great kingdoms
that have ruled the world obtained their dominion by conquest and
revolution, and they were presented to the prophet Daniel as beasts of
prey, rising when the "four winds of the heaven strove upon the great
seas." Dan 7:2. But the beast with horns like a lamb is seen "coming up
out of the earth;" Rev. 13:11. signifying that instead of overthrowing
other powers to establish itself, the nation thus represented arose in
territory previously unoccupied, and grew up gradually and peacefully.
Here is a striking figure of the rise and growth of
our own nation. And the lamb-like horns, emblems of innocence and
gentleness, well represent the character of our government, as
expressed in its two fundamental principles, Republicanism and
Protestantism. The Christian exiles who first fled to America, sought
an asylum from royal oppression and priestly intolerance, and they
determined to establish a government upon the broad foundation of civil
and religious liberty. These principles are the secret of our power and
prosperity as a nation. Millions from other lands have sought our
shores, and the United States has risen to a place among the most
powerful nations of the earth.
But the stern tracings of the prophetic pencil reveal
a change in this peaceful scene. The beast with lamb-like horns speaks
with the voice of a dragon, and "exerciseth all the power of the first
beast before (278) him." The spirit of persecution manifested
by paganism and the papacy is again to be revealed. Prophecy declares
that this power will say "to them that dwell on the earth, that they
should make an image to the beast." Rev. 13:14. The image is made to
the first or leopard-like beast, which is the one brought to view in
the third angel's message. By this first beast is represented the Roman
Church, an ecclesiastical body clothed with civil power, having
authority to punish all dissenters. The image to the beast represents
another religious body clothed with similar power. The formation of
this image is the work of that beast whose peaceful rise and mild
professions render it so striking a symbol of the United States. Here
is to be found an image of the papacy. When the churches of our land,
united upon such points of faith as are held by them in common, shall
influence the State to enforce their decrees and sustain their
institutions, then will Protestant America have formed an image of the
Roman hierarchy. Then the true church will be assailed by persecution,
as were God's ancient people. Almost every century furnishes examples
of what bigotry and malice can do under a plea of serving God by
protecting the rights of Church and State. Protestant churches that
have followed in the steps of Rome by forming alliance with worldly
powers have manifested a similar desire to restrict liberty of
conscience. In the seventeenth century thousands of non-conformist
ministers suffered under the rule of the Church of England. Persecution
always follows religious favoritism on the part of secular governments.
(279)
The beast with lamb-like horns commands "all, both small and great,
rich and poor, free and bond, to receive a mark in their right hand, or
in their foreheads; and that no man might buy or sell, save he that had
the mark, or the name of the beast, or the number of his name." Rev.
13:16,17. This is the mark concerning which the third angel utters his
warning. It is the mark of the first beast, or the papacy, and is
therefore to be sought among the distinguishing characteristics of that
power. The prophet Daniel declared that the Roman Church, symbolized by
the little horn, was to think to change times and laws, Dan. 7;25.
while Paul styled it the man of sin, 2 Thess. 2:3,4. who was to exalt
himself above God. Only by changing God's law could the papacy exalt
itself above God; whoever should understandingly keep the law as thus
changed would be giving supreme honor to that power by which the change
was made. Such an act of obedience to papal laws would be a mark of
allegiance to the pope in the place of God.
The papacy has attempted to change the law of God.
The second commandment, forbidding image worship, has been dropped from
the law, and the fourth commandment has been so changed as to authorize
the observance of the first instead of the seventh day as the Sabbath.
But papists urge as a reason for omitting the second commandment, that
it is unnecessary, being included in the first, and that they are
giving the law exactly as God designed it to be understood. This cannot
be the change foretold by the prophet. An intentional, deliberate
change is brought to view: "He shall think to change times (280)
and laws." The change in the fourth commandment exactly fulfills the
prophecy. For this change the only authority claimed is that of the
church. Here the papal power openly sets itself above God.
The claim so often put forth, that Christ changed the
Sabbath, is disproved by his own words. In his sermon on the mount he
declared: "Think not that I am come to destroy the law or the prophets;
I am not come to destroy, but to fulfill. For verily I say unto you;,
Till heaven and earth pass, one jot or one tittle shall in no wise pass
from the law, till all be fulfilled. Whosoever therefore shall break
one of these least commandments, and shall teach men so, he shall be
called the least in the kingdom of Heaven; but whosoever shall do and
teach them, the same shall be called great in the kingdom of Heaven."
Matt. 5:17-19.
Roman Catholics acknowledge that the change of the
Sabbath was made by their church; and they cite this change as evidence
of the authority of the church to legislate in divine things, and
declare that Protestants, by observing the Sabbath as thus changed, are
recognizing her power. The Roman Church has not relinquished her claim
to supremacy; and when the world and the Protestant churches accept a
Sabbath of her creating, while they reject the Bible Sabbath, they
virtually admit this assumption. They may claim the authority of
apostles and Fathers for the change; but in so doing they ignore the
very principle which separates them from Rome,--that "the Bible, and
the Bible only, is the religion of Protestants." The papist can see
that they are deceiving themselves, willingly closing their eyes to the
(281) facts in the case. As the Sunday institution gains favor,
he rejoices, feeling assured that it will eventually bring the whole
Protestant world under the banner of Rome.
The fourth commandment, which Rome has endeavored to
set aside, is the only precept of the decalogue that points to God as
the Creator of the heavens and the earth, and thus distinguishes the
true God from all false gods. The Sabbath was instituted to commemorate
the work of creation, and thus to direct the minds of men to the true
and living God. The fact of his creative power is cited throughout the
Scriptures as proof that the God of Israel is superior to heathen
deities. Had the Sabbath always been kept, man's thoughts and
affections would have been led to his Maker as the object of reverence
and worship, and there would never have been an idolater, an atheist,
or an infidel.
That institution which points to God as the Creator
is a sign of his rightful authority over the beings he has made. The
change of the Sabbath is the sign, or mark, of the authority of the
Romish Church. Those who, understanding the claims of the fourth
commandment, choose to observe the false in place of the true Sabbath,
are thereby paying homage to that power by which alone it is commanded.
The change in the fourth commandment is the change pointed out in the
prophecy, and the keeping of the counterfeit Sabbath is the reception
of the mark. But Christians of past generations observed the first day,
supposing that they were keeping the Bible Sabbath, and there are in
the churches of to-day many who honestly believe that Sunday is the
Sabbath of divine (282) appointment. None of these have
received the mark of the beast. There are true Christians in every
church, not excepting the Roman Catholic communion. The test upon this
question does not come until Sunday observance is enforced by law, and
the world is enlightened concerning the obligation of the true Sabbath.
Not until the issue is thus plainly set before the people, and they are
brought to choose between the commandments of God and the commandments
of men, will those who continue in transgression receive the mark of
the beast.
The most fearful threatening ever addressed to
mortals is contained in the third angel's message. That must be a
terrible sin which calls down the wrath of God unmingled with mercy.
Men are not to be left in darkness concerning this important matter;
the warning against this sin is to be given to the world before the
visitation of God's judgments, that all may know why they are to be
inflicted, and have opportunity to escape them.
In the issue of the great contest, two distinct,
opposite classes are developed. One class "worship the beast and his
image, and receive his mark," and thus bring upon themselves the awful
judgments threatened by the third angel. The other class, in marked
contrast to the world, "keep the commandments of God and the faith of
Jesus." Rev. 14:9,12. Though the powers of earth summon their forces to
compel "all, both small and great, rich and poor, free and bond," to
receive the mark of the beast, yet the people of God do not receive it.
The prophet of Patmos beholds "them that had gotten the victory over
the (283) beast, and over his image, and over his mark, and
over the number of his name, stand on the sea of glass, having the
harps of God," Rev. 15:2, and singing the song of Moses and the Lamb.
Such were the momentous truths that opened before
those who received the third angel's message. As they reviewed their
experience from the first proclamation of the second advent to the
passing of the time in 1844, they saw their disappointment explained,
and hope and joy again animated their hearts. Light from the sanctuary
illuminated the past, the present, and the future, and they knew that
God had led them by his unerring providence. Now with new courage and
firmer faith, they joined in giving the warning of the third angel.
The work of Sabbath reform to be accomplished in the
last days is clearly brought to view in the prophecy of Isaiah: "Thus
saith the Lord, Keep ye judgment, and do justice; for my salvation is
near to come, and my righteousness to be revealed. Blessed is the man
that doeth this, and the son of man that layeth hold on it; that
keepeth the Sabbath from polluting it, and keepeth his hand from doing
any evil." "The sons of the stranger, that join themselves to the Lord,
to serve him, and to love the name of the Lord, to be his servants,
every one that keepeth the Sabbath from polluting it, and taketh hold
of my covenant; even them will I bring to my holy mountain, and make
them joyful in my house of prayer." Isa. 56:1,2,6,7.
These words apply in the Christian age, as is shown
by the context: "The Lord God which gathereth the outcasts of Israel
saith, Yet will I gather others to (284) him, besides those
that are gathered unto him." Isa. 56:8. Here is foreshadowed the
gathering in of the Gentiles by the gospel. And upon those who then
honor the Sabbath, a blessing is pronounced. Thus the obligation of the
fourth commandment extends past the crucifixion, resurrection, and
ascension of Christ, to the time when his servants should preach to all
nations the message of glad tidings.
The Lord commands by the same prophet, "Bind up the
testimony, seal the law among my disciples." Isa. 8:16. The seal of
God's law is found in the fourth commandment. This only, of all the
ten, brings to view both the name and the title of the Lawgiver. It
declares him to be the Creator of the heavens and the earth, and thus
shows his claim to reverence and worship above all others. Aside from
this precept, there is nothing in the decalogue to show by whose
authority the law is given. When the Sabbath was changed by the papal
power, the seal was taken from the law. The disciples of Jesus are
called upon to restore it, by exalting the Sabbath of the fourth
commandment to its rightful position as the Creator's memorial and the
sign of his authority.
"To the law and to the testimony." While conflicting
doctrines and theories abound, the law of God is the one unerring
standard to which all opinions, doctrines, and theories are to be
brought. Says the prophet, "If they speak not according to this word,
it is because there is no light in them." Isa. 8:20.
Again, the command is given, "Cry aloud, spare not,
lift up thy voice like a trumpet, and show my people their
transgression, and the house of Jacob (285) their sins." It is
not the wicked world, but those whom the Lord designates as "my people"
that are to be reproved for their transgressions. He declares further,
"Yet they seek me daily, and delight to know my ways, as a nation that
did righteousness, and forsook not the ordinance of their God." Isa.
58:1,2. Here is brought to view a class who think themselves righteous,
and appear to manifest great interest in the service of God; but the
stern and solemn rebuke of the Searcher of hearts proves them to be
trampling upon the divine precepts.
The prophet thus points out the ordinance which has
been forsaken: "Thou shalt raise up the foundations of many
generations; and thou shalt be called, The repairer of the breach, the
restorer of paths to dwell in. If thou turn away thy foot from the
Sabbath, from doing thy pleasure on my holy day; and call the Sabbath a
delight, the holy of the Lord, honorable; and shalt honor him, not
doing thine own ways, nor finding thine own pleasure, nor speaking
thine own words; then shalt thou delight thyself in the Lord." Isa.
58:12,13. This prophecy also applies in our time. The breach was made
in the law of God when the Sabbath was changed by the Romish power. But
the time has come for that divine institution to be restored. The
breach is to be repaired, and the foundation of many generations to be
raised up.
With peculiar fitness may the Sabbath be called the
foundation of many generations. Hallowed by the Creator's rest and
blessing, it was kept by Adam in his innocence in holy Eden; by Adam,
fallen yet (286) repentant, when he was driven from his happy
estate. It was kept by all the patriarchs, from Abel to righteous Noah,
to Abraham, to Jacob. When the chosen people were in bondage in Egypt,
many, in the midst of prevailing idolatry, lost their knowledge of
God's law; but when the Lord delivered Israel, he proclaimed his law in
awful grandeur to the assembled multitude, that they might know his
will, and fear and obey him forever.
From that day to the present, the knowledge of God's
law has been preserved in the earth, and the Sabbath of the fourth
commandment has been kept. Though the man of sin succeeded in trampling
the Sabbath under foot, yet even in the period of his supremacy there
were, hidden in secret places, faithful souls who honored the Creator's
rest-day.
Since the Reformation, there have been in every
generation witnesses for God to uphold the standard of the ancient
Sabbath. Though often in the midst of reproach and persecution, a
constant testimony has been borne to this truth. Since 1844, in
fulfillment of the prophecy of the third angel's message, the attention
of the world has been called to the true Sabbath, and a constantly
increasing number are returning to the observance of God's holy day.
CHAPTER 21
THE THIRD MESSAGE REJECTED
(287)
As those who first received the third angel's message saw the beauty
and harmony of the system of truth that opened to their understanding,
they desired that the light which appeared to them so precious might be
imparted to all Christians; and they could not but believe that it
would be joyfully accepted. But truths that would place them at
variance with the world were not welcome to many who claimed to be
followers of Christ. Obedience to the fourth commandment required a
sacrifice from which the majority, even of Adventists, drew back.
As the claims of the Sabbath were presented, many who
had endured reproach and persecution for the Advent faith, began to
reason from the worldling's standpoint. Said they: "We have always kept
Sunday, our fathers kept it, and many good and pious men have died
happy while keeping it. If they were right, so are we. The keeping of
this new Sabbath would throw us out of harmony with the world, and we
would have no influence over them. What can a little company keeping
the seventh day hope to accomplish against all the world who are
keeping Sunday?" It was by similar arguments that the Jews endeavored
to justify their rejection of Christ. (288) Their fathers had
been accepted of God in presenting the sacrificial offerings, and why
could not the children find salvation in pursuing the same course? So,
in the time of Luther, papists reasoned that true Christians had died
in the Catholic faith, and therefore that religion was sufficient for
salvation. Such reasoning would prove an effectual barrier to all
advancement in religious faith or practice.
Many urged that Sunday-keeping had been an
established doctrine and a wide-spread custom of the church for many
centuries. Against this argument it was shown that the Sabbath and its
observance were more ancient and wide-spread, even as old as the world
itself, and bearing the sanction both of angels and of God. When the
foundations of the earth were laid, when the morning stars sang
together, and all the sons of God shouted for joy, then was laid the
foundation of the Sabbath. Job 38:6,7. Gen. 2:1-3. Well may this
institution demand our reverence: it was ordained by no human
authority, and rests on no human tradition; it was established by the
Ancient of days, and commanded by his eternal word.
As the attention of the people was called to the
subject of Sabbath reform, popular ministers perverted the word of God,
placing such interpretations upon its testimony as would best quiet
inquiring minds. And those who did not search the Scriptures for
themselves were content to accept the ministers' conclusions. By
argument, sophistry, the traditions of the Fathers, and the authority
of the church, opposers endeavored to overthrow the truth. Its
advocates were driven to their Bibles to defend the (289)
validity of the fourth commandment. Humble men, armed with the word of
truth alone, met and withstood the attacks of men of learning. With
surprise and anger, popular ministers found their eloquent sophistry
powerless against the simple, straight-forward reasoning of men who had
but little of the learning of the schools.
In the absence of Scripture testimony in their favor,
many with unwearying persistency inquired,--forgetting how the same
reasoning had been employed against Christ and his apostle,--"Why do
not our great men understand this Sabbath question? But few believe as
you do, and even these are uneducated persons. It cannot be that you
are right, and that all the men of learning in the world are wrong."
To refute such arguments it was needful only to cite
the teachings of the Scriptures and the history of the Lord's dealings
with his people in all ages. God works through those who hear and obey
his voice, those who will, if need be, speak unpalatable truths, those
who do not fear to reprove popular sins. The reason why he does not
oftener choose men of learning and high position is, that they trust to
their creeds, theories, and theological systems, and feel no need to be
taught of God. Only those who have a personal connection with the
Source of wisdom are able to understand or explain the Scriptures. Men
who have little of the learning of the schools are called to declare
the truth, not because they are unlearned, but because they are not too
self-sufficient to be taught of God. They learn in the school of
Christ, and their humility and obedience make them great. In committing
to them a (290) knowledge of his truth, God confers upon them
an honor, in comparison with which earthly honor and human greatness
sink into insignificance.
As the majority of Adventists rejected the truths
concerning the sanctuary and the law of God, many also renounced their
faith in the Advent movement, and adopted unsound and conflicting views
of the prophecies which applied to that work. Some were led into the
error of repeated time-setting. The light of the third message would
have shown them that no prophetic period extends to the coming of
Christ; that the exact time of his coming is not foretold. But, turning
from the light, they continued to set time after time for the Lord to
come, and as often were disappointed.
When the Thessalonian church received erroneous views
concerning the coming of Christ, the apostle Paul counseled them to
carefully test their hopes and anticipations by the word of God. He
cited them to prophecies revealing the events to take place before
Christ should come, and showed that they had no ground to expect him in
their day. "Let no man deceive you by any means," are his words of
warning. Should they indulge expectations that were not sanctioned by
the Scriptures, they would be led to a mistaken course of action;
disappointment would expose them to the derision of unbelievers, and
they would be in danger of yielding to discouragement, and would be
tempted to doubt the truths essential for their salvation. The
apostle's admonition to the Thessalonians contains an important lesson
for those who live in the last days. Many Adventists have felt that
unless they could fix their faith upon a definite (291) time
for the Lord's coming, they could not be zealous and diligent in the
work of preparation. But as their hopes are again and again excited,
only to be destroyed, their faith receives such a shock that it becomes
well-nigh impossible for them to be impressed by the great truths of
prophecy. The more frequently a definite time is set for the second
advent, and the more widely it is taught, the better it suits the
purposes of Satan. After the time has passed, he excites ridicule and
contempt of its advocates, and thus cast reproach upon the true time
movement of 1843 and 1844. Those who persist in this error will at last
fix upon a date too far in the future for the coming of Christ. Thus
they will be led to rest in a false security, and many will not be
undeceived until it is too late.
The history of ancient Israel is a striking
illustration of the past experience of the Adventist body. God led his
people in the Advent movement, even as he led the children of Israel
from Egypt. In the great disappointment their faith was tested as was
that of the Hebrews at the Red Sea. Had they still trusted to the
guiding hand that had been with them in their past experience, they
would have seen of the salvation of God. If all who had labored
unitedly in the work in 1844 had received the third angel's message,
and proclaimed it in the power of the Holy Spirit, the Lord would have
wrought mightily with their efforts. A flood of light would have been
shed upon the world. Years ago the inhabitants of the earth would have
been warned, the closing work completed, and Christ would have come for
the redemption of his people.
(292)
It was not the will of God that Israel should wander forty years in the
wilderness; he desired to lead them directly to the land of Canaan, and
establish them there, a holy, happy people. But "they could not enter
in because of unbelief." Heb. 3:19. Because of their backsliding and
apostasy, they perished in the desert, and others were raised up to
enter the promised land. In like manner, it was not the will of God
that the coming of Christ should be so long delayed, and his people
should remain so many years in this world of sin and sorrow. But
unbelief separated them from God. As they refused to do the work which
he had appointed them, others were raised up to proclaim the message.
In mercy to the world, Jesus delays his coming, that sinners may have
an opportunity to hear the warning, and find in him a shelter before
the wrath of God shall be poured out.
Now, as in former ages, the presentation of a truth
that reproves the errors and the sins of the times, will call forth a
storm of opposition. "Every one that doeth evil hateth the light,
neither cometh to the light, lest his deeds should be reproved." John
3:20. Those who cannot sustain their position by the Scriptures are
stubbornly determined that it shall be sustained at all hazards, and
with a malicious spirit they attack the character and motives of those
who stand in defense of unpopular truth. Though very unbelieving in
regard to the sure word of prophecy, they manifest the utmost credulity
in accepting anything detrimental to the Christian integrity of those
who dare to reprove fashionable sins. This spirit will increase more
and more as we near the close of time.
(293)
And what is our duty in view of this? Shall we conclude that the truth
ought not to be presented, since its effects is so often to arouse men
to evade or resist its claims? -No; we have no more reason for
withholding the testimony of God's word because it excites opposition
than had Martin Luther. Luther declared himself to have been urged on,
compelled by the Spirit of God, to battle against the evils of his
time; and in the same manner must those labor who still carry forward
the work of reform. To the servants of God at this time is the command
addressed, "Lift up thy voice like a trumpet, and show my people their
transgression, and the house of Jacob their sins."
The true followers of Christ do not wait for truth to
become popular. Being convinced of their duty, they deliberately accept
the cross, and thus remove the greatest obstacle to the reception of
truth,--the only argument which its advocates have never been able to
refute. It is weak, inefficient world-servers that think it
praiseworthy to have no principle in religious things. We should choose
the right because it is right, and leave consequences with God. To men
of principle, faith, and daring, is the world indebted for its great
reforms. By such men must the work of reform for this time be carried
forward.
Thus saith the Lord: "Hearken unto me, ye that know
righteousness, the people in whose heart is my law; fear ye not the
reproach of men, neither be ye afraid of their revilings. For the moth
shall eat them up like a garment, and the worm shall eat them like
wool; but my righteousness shall be forever, and my salvation from
generation to generation." Isa. 51:7,8.
CHAPTER 22
MODERN REVIVALS
(294)
The character and tendency of modern revivals has awakened no little
anxiety in thoughtful minds among all denominations. Many of the
revivals which have occurred during the last forty years have given no
evidence of the work of the Spirit of God. The light which flames up
for a time, soon dies out, leaving the darkness more dense than before.
Popular revivals are too often carried by appeals to the imagination,
by exciting the emotions, by pandering to the love for what is new and
startling. Converts thus gained have no more desire to listen to Bible
truths, no more interest in the testimony of prophets and apostles,
than has the novel-reader. Unless a religious service has something of
a sensational character, it has no attractions for them. A message
which appeals to unimpassioned reason, awakens no response. The plain
warnings of God's word, relating directly to their eternal interests,
fall as upon the ears of the dead.
The converts are not renewed in heart or changed in
character. They do not renounce their pride and love of the world. They
are no more willing to deny self, to take up the cross, and follow the
meek and lowly Jesus, than before their conversion. In a genuine
revival, when the Spirit of God convicts the (295) conscience,
the earnest, anxious inquiry will be heard, "What must I do to be
saved?" And this is not merely for a day. With every truly converted
soul the relation to God and to eternal things will be the great topic
of life. But where, in the popular churches of to-day, is the deep
conviction of sin? Where is the spirit of consecration to God? The
spirit that controls the world rules in the church. Religion has become
the sport of infidels and skeptics because so many who bear its name
are ignorant of its principles. The power of godliness has well-nigh
departed from the churches. Heart union with Christ is a rare thing
now. The majority of church-members know no tie but that which joins
them to an organized body of professed Christians. Love of pleasure and
thirst for excitement are everywhere prevalent. Picnics, church
theatricals, church fairs, fine houses, personal display, have banished
thoughts of God. Lands and goods and worldly occupations engross the
mind, and things of eternal interest receive hardly a passing notice.
Pleasure-lovers may have their names upon the
church-records, they may stand high as worldly-wise men; but they have
no connection with Christ of Calvary. The apostle Paul describes a
class who are "lovers of pleasures more than lovers of God; having a
form of godliness, but denying the power thereof." Concerning them he
says, "From such turn away." 2 Tim. 3:4,5. Be not deceived by them, do
not imitate their practices.
Notwithstanding the wide-spread declension of faith and piety in the churches, the Lord still has (296)
honest children among them; and before his judgments shall be visited
upon the earth, many ministers and lay-members will separate from these
bodies, and gladly receive the special truths for this time. The enemy
of souls desires to hinder this work, and before the time shall come
for such a movement, he will arouse what appears to be great religious
interest in the churches. They will exult that God is working
marvelously for them, when the work is that of another spirit. Under a
religious guise, Satan will spread his influence over the land. He
hopes to deceive many by leading them to think that God is still with
the churches.
Many of the revivals which have occurred since 1844,
in the churches that have rejected the Advent truth, are similar in
character to those more extensive movements to be witnessed in the
future. The excitement manifested is well adapted to mislead the
unwary; yet none need be deceived. In the light of God's word it is not
difficult to determine the nature of these religious movements. The
history of God's dealings with his people in the past testifies that
his Spirit is not poured out upon those who neglect or oppose the
warnings sent them by his servants. And by the rule which Christ
himself has given, "Ye shall know them by their fruits," it is evident
that these movements are not the work of the Spirit of God.
The scriptural doctrine of conversion has been almost
wholly lost sight of. Christ declared to Nicodemus, "Except a man be
born again, he cannot see the kingdom of God." The heart must be
renewed by divine grace, man must have a new life from above, or his
profession of godliness will avail nothing.
(297)
The apostle Paul, in relating his experience, presents an important
truth concerning the work to be wrought in conversion. He says, "I was
alive without the law once,"--he felt no condemnation; "but when the
commandment came," when the law of God was urged upon his conscience,
"sin revived, and I died." Rom. 7:9. Then he saw himself a sinner,
condemned by the divine law. Mark, it was Paul, and not the law, that
died. He says, further, "I had not known sin, but by the law; for I had
not known lust, except the law had said, Thou shalt not covet." Rom.
7:7. "The commandment which was ordained to life, I found to be unto
death." Rom. 7:10. The law which promised life to the obedient,
pronounced death upon the transgressor. "Wherefore," he says, "the law
is holy, and the commandment holy, and just, and good." Rom. 7:12.
How wide the contrast between these words of Paul and
those that come from many of the pulpits of to-day. The people are
taught that obedience to God's law is not necessary to salvation; that
they have only to believe in Jesus, and they are safe. Without the law,
men have no conviction of sin, and feel no need of repentance. Not
seeing their lost condition as violators of God's law, they do not feel
their need of the atoning blood of Christ as their only hope of
salvation.
The law of God is an agent in every genuine
conversion. There can be no true repentance without conviction of sin.
The Scriptures declare that "sin is the transgression of the law," 1
John 3:4. and that "by the law is the knowledge of sin." Rom. 3:20. In
order to see his (298) guilt, the sinner must test his
character by God's great standard of righteousness. To discover his
defects, he must look into the mirror of the divine statutes. But while
the law reveals his sins, it provides no remedy. The gospel of Christ
alone can offer pardon. In order to stand forgiven, the sinner must
exercise repentance toward God, whose law has been transgressed, and
faith in Christ, his atoning sacrifice. Without true repentance, there
can be no true conversion. Many are deceived here and too often their
entire experience proves to be a deception. This is why so many who are
joined to the church have never been joined to Christ.
"The carnal mind is enmity against God; for it is not
subject to the law of God, neither indeed can be." Rom. 8:7. In the new
birth, the heart is renewed by divine grace, and brought into harmony
with God as it is brought into subjection to his law. When this mighty
change has taken place in the sinner, he has passed from death unto
life, from sin unto holiness, from transgression and rebellion to
obedience and loyalty. The old life of alienation from God has ended;
the new life of reconciliation of faith and love, has begun. Then will
"the righteousness of the law" "be fulfilled in us who walk not after
the flesh, but after the Spirit." Rom. 8:4.
The doctrine of sanctification, or perfect holiness,
which fills a prominent place in some of the religious movements of the
day, is among the causes that have rendered modern revivals so
ineffectual. True sanctification is a Bible doctrine. The apostle Paul
declared to the Thessalonian church, "This is the will (299) of
God, even your sanctification." 1 Thess. 4:3. And again he prayed, "The
very God of peace sanctify you wholly; and I pray God your whole spirit
and soul and body be preserved blameless unto the coming of our Lord
Jesus Christ." 1 Thess. 5:23. But the sanctification now so widely
advocated is not that brought to view in the Scriptures. It is false in
theory, and dangerous in its practical results.
It advocates teach that the law of God is a grievous
yoke, and that by faith in Christ, men are released from all obligation
to keep his Father's commandments. Bible sanctification is a conformity
to the will of God, attained by rendering obedience to his law, through
faith in his Son. Our Saviour prayed for his disciples, "Sanctify them
through thy truth; thy word is truth." John 17:17. There is no genuine
sanctification except through obedience to the truth; and the psalmist
declares, "Thy law is the truth." Ps. 119:142. The law of God is the
only standard of moral perfection. That law was exemplified in the life
of Christ. He says, "I have kept my Father's commandments." John 15:10.
And the apostle John affirms. "He that saith he abideth in Him ought
himself also so to walk, even as he walked." And again, "This is the
love of God, that we keep his commandments." 1 John 2:6; 5:3. Those who
love God will love his commandments also. The truly sanctified heart is
in harmony with the divine precepts; for they are "holy, and just, and
good."
It is only when the law of God is set aside, and men have no standard of right, no means to detect (300)
sin, that erring mortals can claim perfect holiness. But let none
deceive themselves with the belief that God will accept and bless them
while they are willfully violating one of his requirements. The
commission of a known sin silences the witnessing voice of the Spirit,
and separates the soul from God. Jesus cannot abide in the heart that
disregards the divine law. God will honor those only who honor him.
"Whosoever committeth sin transgresseth also the law; for sin is the
transgression of the law." "Whosoever abideth in Him sinneth not;
whosoever sinneth [transgresseth the law] hath not seen him, neither
known him." 1 John 3:4,6. Though John in his epistles treats so fully
upon love, yet he does not hesitate to reveal the true character of
that class who claim to be sanctified while living in transgression of
the law of God: "He that saith, I know Him, and keepeth not his
commandments, is a liar, and the truth is not in him." 1 John 2:4.
Sanctification is believed by many to be
instantaneously accomplished. "Only believe," say they, "and the
blessing is yours." No further effort on the part of the receiver is
supposed to be required. But the Bible teaches that sanctification is
progressive. The Christian will feel the promptings of sin, but he will
keep up a constant warfare against it. Here is where Christ's help is
needed. Human weakness becomes united to divine strength, and faith
exclaims, "Thanks be to God, which giveth us the victory through our
Lord Jesus Christ." 1 Cor. 15:57. Paul exhorts his brethren, "Work out
your own salvation with fear and trembling;" Phil. 2:12. (301)
and concerning himself he declares, "I press toward the mark for the
prize of the high calling of God in Christ Jesus." Phil. 3:14. The
successive steps in the attainment of Bible sanctification are set
before us in the words of Peter: "Giving all diligence, add to your
faith, virtue; and to virtue, knowledge; and to knowledge, temperance;
and to temperance, patience; and to patience, godliness; and to
godliness, brotherly kindness; and to brotherly kindness, charity."
"Wherefore the rather, brethren, give diligence to make your calling
and election sure; for if ye do these things, ye shall never fall." 2
Peter 1:5-7,10. This is a daily work, continuing as long as life shall
last.
Spurious sanctification carries with it a boastful,
self-righteous spirit which is foreign to the religion of the Bible.
Meekness and humility are the fruits of the Spirit. The prophet Daniel
was an example of true sanctification. His long life was filled up with
noble service for his Master. He was a man "greatly beloved" Dan.
10:11. of Heaven, and was granted such honors as have rarely been
vouchsafed to mortals. Yet his purity of character and unwavering
fidelity were equaled only by his humility and contrition. Instead of
claiming to be pure and holy, this honored prophet identified himself
with the really sinful of Israel, as he pleaded before God in behalf of
his people: "We do not present our supplication before thee for our
righteousnesses, but for thy great mercies." "We have sinned, we have
done wickedly." And "for our sins, and for the iniquities of our
fathers, Jerusalem and thy people are become a reproach." He (302)
declares, "I was speaking, and praying, and confessing my sin and the
sin of my people." Dan. 9:18,15,16,20. And when at a later time the Son
of God appeared in answer to his prayers to give him instruction, he
declares, "My comeliness was turned in me into corruption, and I
retained no strength." Dan. 10:8.
Those who are truly seeking to perfect Christian
character will never indulge the thought that they are sinless. The
more their minds dwell upon the character of Christ, and the nearer
they approach to his divine image, the more clearly will they discern
its spotless perfection, and the more deeply will they feel their own
weakness and defects. Those who claim to be without sin, give evidence
that they are far from holy. It is because they have no true knowledge
of Christ that they can look upon themselves as reflecting his image.
The greater the distance between them and their Saviour, the more
righteous they appear in their own eyes.
The
sanctification set forth in the Scriptures embraces the entire
being,--spirit, soul, and body. Paul prayed for the Thessalonians, that
their "whole spirit and soul and body be preserved blameless unto the
coming of our Lord Jesus Christ." Again he writes to believers, 'I
beseech you therefore, brethren, by the mercies of God, that ye present
your bodies a living sacrifice, holy, acceptable unto God." Rom. 12:1.
The Jews were commanded to offer in sacrifice to God only such animals
as were free from disease or blemish. So Christians are required to
preserve all their powers in the best possible condition for the Lord's
service. Says Peter, "Abstain from fleshly lusts, (303) which
war against the soul." 1 Peter 2:11. The word of God will make but a
feeble impression upon those whose faculties are benumbed by any sinful
gratification. The heart cannot preserve consecration to God while the
animal appetites and passions are indulged at the expense of health and
life. Paul writes to the Corinthians, "Let us cleanse ourselves from
all filthiness of the flesh and spirit, perfecting holiness in the fear
of God." 2 Cor. 7:1. And with the fruits of the Spirit--"love, joy,
peace, long-suffering, gentleness, goodness, faith, meekness,"--he
classes temperance. Gal. 5:22,23.
Not withstanding these inspired declarations, how
many professed Christians are enfeebling their powers in the pursuit of
gain or the worship of fashion; how many are debasing their godlike
manhood by gluttony, by wine-drinking, by forbidden pleasure. And the
church, instead of rebuking, too often encourages the evil by appealing
to appetite, to desire for gain, or love of pleasure, to replenish her
treasury, which love for Christ is too feeble to supply. Were Jesus to
enter the churches of to-day, and behold the feasting and unholy
traffic there conducted in the name of religion, would he not drive out
those desecrators, as he banished the money-changers from the temple?
The apostle James declares that the wisdom from above
is "first pure." Had he encountered those who take the precious name of
Jesus upon lips defiled by tobacco, those whose breath and person are
contaminated by its foul odor, and who pollute the air of heaven and
force all about them to inhale the poison,--had the apostle come in
contact with a (304) practice so opposed to the purity of the
gospel, would he not have denounced it as "earthly, sensual, devilish"?
Slaves of tobacco, claiming the blessing of entire sanctification, talk
of their hope of Heaven; but God's word plainly declares that "there
shall in no wise enter into it anything that defileth." Rev. 21:27.
"Know ye not that your body is the temple of the Holy
Ghost, which is in you, which ye have of God, and ye are not your own?
For ye are bought with a price; therefore glorify God in your body, and
in your spirit, which are God's" 1 Cor. 6:19,20. He whose body is the
temple of the Holy Spirit will not be enslaved by a pernicious habit.
His powers belong to Christ, who has bought him with the price of
blood. His property is the Lord's. How could he be guiltless in
squandering this intrusted capital? Professed Christians yearly expend
an immense sum upon useless and pernicious indulgences, while souls are
perishing for the word of life. God is robbed in tithes and offerings,
while they offer upon the altar of destroying lust more than they give
to relieve the poor or for the support of the gospel. If all who
profess to be followers of Christ were truly sanctified, every channel
of needless expense would be turned into the Lord's treasury, and
Christians would set an example for temperance, self-denial, and
self-sacrifice. Then they would be the light of the world.
The world is given up to self-indulgence. The lust of
the flesh, the lust of the eye, and the pride of life, control the
masses of the people. But Christ's followers have a holier calling.
"Come out from among them, and be ye separate, saith the Lord, and
touch (305) not the unclean; and I will receive you, and will
be a Father unto you, and ye shall be my sons and daughters, saith the
Lord Almighty." 2 Cor. 6:17,18.
It is the privilege and the duty of every Christian
to maintain a close union with Christ, and to have a rich experience in
the things of God. Then his life will be fruitful in good works. When
we read the lives of men who have been eminent for their piety, we
often regard their experiences and attainments as beyond our reach. But
this is not the case. Said Christ: "Herein is my Father glorified, that
ye bear much fruit." "As the branch cannot bear fruit of itself, except
it abide in the vine, no more can ye, except ye abide in me." "He that
abideth in me, and I in him, the same bringeth forth much fruit." John
15:8,4,5. The prophets and apostles did not perfect Christian character
by a miracle. They used the means which God had placed within their
reach, and all who will put forth a like effort will secure a like
result.
Paul addressed his Corinthian brethren as "them that
are sanctified in Christ Jesus;" and he thanked God that in everything
they were enriched by him, "in all utterance and in all knowledge," so
that they came behind in no gift. 1 Cor. 1:2,5,7. In his epistle to the
Colossians he set forth the glorious privileges granted to the children
of God. Said the apostle: We "do not cease to pray for you, and to
desire that ye might be filled with the knowledge of his will in all
wisdom and spiritual understanding; that ye might walk worthy of the
Lord unto all pleasing, being fruitful in every good work, and
increasing in the knowledge of God; strengthened with all might,
according to his (306) glorious power, unto all patience and
long-suffering with joyfulness." Col. 1:9-11. Such are the fruits of
Bible sanctification.
In setting aside the claims of the law of God, the
church has lost sight of the blessings of the gospel. Bible conversion
and sanctification,--a radical change of heart and transformation of
character,--is the great need of the churches of to-day. Revivals in
which men become members of the church without real conviction of sin,
without repentance, and without acknowledging the claims of the law of
God, are a cause of weakness to the church, and an occasion of
stumbling to the world.
CHAPTER 23
THE INVESTIGATIVE JUDGMENT
(307)
"I beheld," says the prophet Daniel, "till the thrones were cast down,
and the Ancient of days did sit, whose garment was white as snow, and
the hair of his head like the pure wool; his throne was like the fiery
flame, and his wheels as burning fire. A fiery stream issued and came
forth from before him; thousand thousands ministered unto him, and ten
thousand times ten thousand stood before him; the Judgment was set, and
the books were opened." "And, behold, one like the son of man came with
the clouds of heaven, and came to the Ancient of days, and they brought
him near before him. And there was given him dominion, and glory, and a
kingdom, that all people, nations, and languages should serve him; his
dominion is an everlasting dominion, which shall not pass away." Dan.
7:9,10,13,14.
Thus was presented to the prophet's vision the
opening of the investigative Judgment. The coming of Christ here
described is not his second coming to the earth. He comes to the
Ancient of days in Heaven to receive dominion, and glory, and a
kingdom, which will be given him at the close of his mediatorial work.
It is this coming, and not his (308) second advent to the
earth, that was foretold in prophecy to take place at the termination
of the 2300 days, in 1844. Attended by a cloud of heavenly angels, our
great High Priest enters the holy of holies, and there appears in the
presence of God to engage in the last acts of his ministration in
behalf of man,--to perform the work of investigative Judgment, and to
make an atonement for all who are shown to be entitled to its benefits.
"The dead were judged," says John, "out of those
things which were written in the books, according to their works." Rev.
20:12. Angels of God have kept a faithful record of the lives of all,
and they are to be judged according to their deeds. In view of this
Judgment, Peter exhorted the men of Israel: "Repent ye therefore, and
be converted, that your sins may be blotted out, when the times of
refreshing shall come from the presence of the Lord; and he shall send
Jesus," "whom the heaven must receive until the times of restitution of
all things, which God hath spoken by the mouth of all his holy prophets
since the world began." Acts 3:19-21.
Christ himself declares: "He that overcometh, the
same shall be clothed in white raiment; and I will not blot out his
name out of the book of life, but I will confess his name before my
Father, and before his angels." Rev. 3:5. Again he said to his
disciples: "Whosoever therefore shall confess me before men, him will I
confess also before my Father which is in Heaven. But whosoever shall
deny me before men, him will I also deny before my Father which is in
Heaven." Matt. 10:32,33.
(309)
The lives of all who have believed on Jesus pass in solemn review
before God. Beginning with those who first lived upon the earth, our
Advocate examines the cases of each successive generation, and closes
with the living. Every name is mentioned, every case closely
investigated. Names are accepted, names rejected. From age to age, all
who have truly repented of sin, and by faith claimed the blood of
Christ as their atoning sacrifice, have had pardon written against
their names in the books of Heaven, and in the closing work of Judgment
their sins are blotted out, and they themselves are accounted worthy of
eternal life.
The deepest interest manifested among men in the
decisions of earthly tribunals but faintly represents the interest
evinced in the heavenly courts when the names entered in the book of
life come up in review before the Judge of all the earth. The divine
Intercessor presents the plea that all who from among the fallen sons
of men have overcome through faith in his blood, be forgiven their
transgressions, that they be restored to their Eden home, and crowned
as joint-heirs with himself to the "first dominion." Micah 4:8. Satan,
in his efforts to deceive and tempt our race, had thought to frustrate
the divine plan in man's creation; but Christ now asks that this plan
be carried into effect as if man had never fallen. He asks for his
people not only pardon and justification, full and complete, but a
share in his glory and a seat upon his throne.
While Jesus is pleading for the subjects of his
grace, Satan accuses them before God as transgressors. The (310)
great deceiver has sought to lead them into skepticism, to cause them
to lose confidence in God, to separate from his love, and to break his
law. Now he points to their defective characters, to their unlikeness
to Christ which has dishonored their Redeemer, to all the sins which he
has tempted them to commit, and because of these he claims them as his
subjects.
Jesus does not excuse their sins, but shows their
penitence and faith, and, claiming for them forgiveness, he lifts his
wounded hands before the Father and the holy angels, saying, "I know
them by name. I have graven them on the palms of my hands. 'The
sacrifices of God are a broken spirit; a broken and a contrite heart, O
God, thou wilt not despise.'" Ps. 51:17. And to the accuser of his
people he declares, "The Lord rebuke thee, O Satan; even the Lord that
hath chosen Jerusalem rebuke thee. Is not this a brand plucked out of
the fire?" Zech. 3:2. Christ will place his own signet upon his
faithful ones, that he may present them to his Father "a glorious
church, not having spot, or wrinkle, or any such thing." Their names
stand enrolled in the book of life, and concerning them it is written,
"They shall walk with me in white; for they are worthy."
Those who are owned and approved of God are not
therefore recognized and honored by the world. The very names that are
taken upon the lips of Jesus as belonging to his own sons and
daughters, joint-heirs with the King of glory, honored among the
heavenly angels, are often those that are spoken with contempt and
mockery by the ungodly. Steadfast souls whom Jesus delights to honor
are for his (311) sake defamed, imprisoned, mobbed, hunted, and
slain. God's people must live by faith. They must look over into the
great beyond, and choose divine honors and the recompense of the reward
above every earthly gain or preferment. While probation continues, they
must expect that the world will know them not, "because it knew Him
not."
Great and small, high and low, rich and poor, are to
be judged "out of those things which were written in the books,
according to their works." Day after day, passing into eternity, bears
its burden of records for the books of Heaven. Words once spoken, deeds
once done, can never be recalled. Angels of God have registered both
the good and the evil. The mightiest conqueror upon the earth cannot
call back the record of even a single day. Our acts, our words, even
our most secret motives, all have their weight in deciding our destiny
for weal or woe. Though they may be forgotten by us, they will bear
their testimony to justify or condemn. They go before us to the
Judgment.
The use made of every talent will be scrutinized.
Have we improved the capital intrusted us of God? Will the Lord at his
coming receive his own with usury? No value is attached to the mere
profession of faith in Christ; nothing is counted as genuine but that
love which is shown by works.
As the features of the countenance are reproduced
with marvelous exactness in the camera of the artist, so is the
character faithfully delineated in the books above. If Christians were
as solicitous to stand faultless in the heavenly records as they are to
be represented without a blemish in the picture, how different would
their life-history appear.
(312)
Could the veil which separates the visible from the invisible world be
swept back, and the children of men behold an angel recording every
word and deed to meet them again in the Judgment, how many words that
are daily uttered would remain unspoken; how many deeds would remain
undone. When all the details of life appear in the books that never
contain a false entry, many will find too late that the record
testifies against them. There their hidden selfishness stands revealed.
There is the record of unfulfilled duties to their fellow-men, of
forgetfulness of the Saviour's claims. There they will see how often
were given to Satan the time, thought, and strength that belonged to
Christ. Sad is the record which angels bear to Heaven. Intelligent
beings, professed followers of Christ, are absorbed in the acquirement
of worldly possessions or the enjoyment of earthly pleasures. Money,
time, and strength are sacrificed for display and self-indulgence; but
few are the moments devoted to prayer, to the searching of the
Scriptures, to humiliation of soul and confession of sin.
Satan invents unnumbered schemes to occupy our minds
that they may not dwell upon the very work with which we ought to be
best acquainted. The arch-deceiver hates the great truths that bring to
view an atoning sacrifice and an all-powerful Mediator. He knows that
with him everything now depends on his diverting minds from Jesus and
his truth.
Those who would share the benefits of the Saviour's
mediation should permit nothing to interfere with their duty to perfect
holiness in the fear of God. The hours heretofore given to pleasure, to
display, or to (313) gain-seeking, should now be devoted to an
earnest, prayerful study of the word of truth. The subject of the
sanctuary and the investigative Judgment should be clearly understood
by the people of God. All need a knowledge for themselves of the
position and work of their great High Priest. Otherwise, it will be
impossible for them to exercise the faith essential at this time, or to
occupy the position which God designs them to fill.
We are to bear testimony of the great truths which
God has committed to us. The sanctuary in Heaven is the very center of
Christ's work in behalf of men. It concerns every soul living upon the
earth. It opens to our view the plan of redemption, bringing us down to
the very close of time, and revealing the triumphant issue of the
contest between righteousness and sin. It is of the utmost importance
that all who have received the light, both old and young, should
thoroughly investigate these subjects, and be able to give an answer to
every one that asketh them a reason of the hope that is in them.
The intercession of Christ in man's behalf in the
sanctuary above is as essential to the plan of salvation as was his
death upon the cross. By his death he began that work which after his
resurrection he ascended to complete in Heaven. We must by faith enter
within the veil, "whither the forerunner is for us entered." There the
light from the cross of Calvary is reflected. There we may gain a
clearer insight into the mysteries of redemption. The salvation of man
is accomplished at an infinite expense to Heaven; the sacrifice made is
equal to the broadest demands of the broken law of God. Jesus has
opened (314) the way to the Father's throne, and through his
mediation the sincere desire of all who come to him in faith may be
presented before God.
"He that covereth his sins shall not prosper; but
whoso confesseth and forsaketh them shall have mercy." Prov. 28:13. If
those who hide and excuse their faults could see how Satan exults over
them, how he taunts Christ and holy angels with them, they would make
haste to confess their sins and to put them away. Satan is continually
seeking to deceive the followers of Christ with his fatal sophistry
that their defective traits of character render it impossible for them
to overcome. But Jesus pleads in their behalf his wounded hands, his
bruised body; and he declares to all who would follow him, "My grace is
sufficient for thee." "Take my yoke upon you, and learn of me; for I am
meek and lowly in heart, and ye shall find rest unto your souls. For my
yoke is easy, and my burden is light." Matt. 11:29,30. Let none, then,
regard their defects as incurable. God will give faith and grace to
overcome them.
All who would have their names retained in the book
of life, should now, in the few remaining days of their probation,
afflict their souls before God by sorrow for sin, and true repentance.
There must be deep, faithful searching of heart. The light, frivolous
spirit indulged by the majority of professed Christians must be put
away. There is earnest warfare before all who would subdue the evil
tendencies that strive for the mastery.
Solemn are the scenes connected with the closing work of the atonement. Momentous are the interests (315)
therein involved. The Judgment is now passing in the sanctuary above.
Forty years has this work been in progress. Soon--none know how
soon--it will pass to the cases of the living. In the awful presence of
God our lives are to come up in review. At this time above all others
it behooves every soul to heed the Saviour's admonition, "Watch and
pray, for ye know not when the time is." "Watch ye therefore,...lest
coming suddenly he find you sleeping." Mark 13:33,35,36.
"If therefore thou shalt not watch, I will come on
thee as a thief; and thou shalt not know what hour I will come upon
thee." Rev. 3:3. How perilous is the condition of those, who, growing
weary of their watch, turn to the attractions of the world. While the
man of business is absorbed in the pursuit of gain, while the
pleasure-lover is seeking indulgence, while the daughter of fashion is
arranging her adornments,--it may be in that hour the Judge of all the
earth will pronounce the sentence, "Thou art weighed in the balances,
and art found wanting."
Every
soul that has named the name of Christ has a case pending at the
heavenly tribunal. It is court week with us, and the decision passed
upon each case will be final.
CHAPTER 24
ORIGIN OF EVIL
(316)
To many minds the origin of sin and the reason for its existence are a
source of great perplexity. In their interest in these questions, the
truths plainly revealed in God's word and essential to salvation are
neglected; and the fact that the Scriptures furnish no explanation, is
seized upon as an excuse for rejecting the words of Holy Writ.
It is impossible to explain the origin of sin, or to
give a reason for its existence. It is an intruder, for whose existence
no reason can be given. It is mysterious, unaccountable; to excuse it,
is to defend it. Could it be excused, could a cause be shown for its
existence, it would cease to be sin. Our only definition of sin is that
given in the word of God; it is "the transgression of the law."
Sin originated with him, who, next to Christ, stood
highest in the favor of God, and highest in power and glory among the
inhabitants of Heaven. Before his fall, Lucifer was the covering
cherub, holy and undefiled. The prophet of God declares, "Thou wast
perfect in thy ways from the day that thou wast created, till iniquity
was found in thee." Ez. 28:15. Peace and joy, in perfect submission to
the will of Heaven, existed throughout the angelic host. Love to God (317) was supreme, love for one another impartial. Such was the condition that existed for ages before the entrance of sin.
But over this happy state there came a change. Says
the prophet, addressing the prince of evil, "Thine heart was lifted up
because of thy beauty, thou hast corrupted thy wisdom by reason of thy
brightness." Ez. 28:17. Though God had created Lucifer noble and
beautiful, and had exalted him to high honor among the angelic host,
yet he had not placed him beyond the possibility of evil. It was in
Satan's power, did he choose to do so, to pervert these gifts. He might
have remained in favor with God, beloved and honored by all the angelic
throng, presiding in his exalted position with generous, unselfish
care, exercising his noble powers to bless others and to glorify his
Maker. But, little by little, he began to seek his own honor, and to
employ his powers to attract attention and win praise to himself. He
also gradually led the angels over whom he ruled to do him service,
instead of devoting all their powers to the service of their Creator.
This course perverted his own imagination, and perverted those who
yielded implicitly to his authority.
The heavenly councils admonished Lucifer to change
his course. The Son of God warned and entreated him not to venture thus
to dishonor his Maker, and bring ruin upon himself. But instead of
yielding, Satan represented to those who loved him, that he had been
wrongly judged, that his dignity was not respected, and that his
liberty was to be abridged.
(318)
That Christ should regard him as needing to be corrected, and should
presume to take the position of a superior, aroused in him a spirit of
resistance, and he charged the Son of God with a design to humble him
before the angels. By misrepresentation of the words of Christ, by
prevarication and direct falsehood, Satan secured the sympathy of the
angels under his control, and they united with him in revolt against
Heaven's authority.
To the last, he refused to acknowledge his own course
to be deserving of censure. When the consequence of his disaffection
became apparent, and it was decreed that with all his sympathizers he
must be forever banished from the abode of bliss, the arch-deceiver
threw the blame wholly upon Christ. With one accord, Satan and his
hosts declared that had they not been reproved, the rebellion would
never have occurred, thus making Christ responsible for their course.
Thus stubborn and defiant in their disloyalty, seeking vainly to
overthrow the government of God, yet blasphemously claiming to be
themselves the innocent victims of oppressive power, the arch-rebel and
all his sympathizers were at last banished from Heaven.
The rebellion in Heaven was prompted by the same
spirit which inspires rebellion on earth. Satan has continued with men
the same policy which he pursued with the angels. His spirit now reigns
in the children of disobedience. There is a constant hatred of reproof,
and a disposition to rebel against it. When God sends to wrong-doers a
message of warning or correction, Satan leads them to justify
themselves, and to seek the sympathy of others. (319) Instead
of changing their wrong course, they manifest great indignation against
the reprover, as if he were the sole cause of difficulty. From the days
of righteous Abel to our own time, such is the spirit which has been
displayed toward those who dare to condemn sin.
Satan had excited sympathy in his favor by
representing that God had dealt unjustly with him in bestowing supreme
honor upon Christ. Before he was sentenced to banishment from Heaven,
his course was with convincing clearness shown to be wrong, and he was
granted an opportunity to confess his sin, and submit to God's
authority as just and righteous. But he chose to carry his points at
all hazards. To sustain his charge of God's injustice toward him, he
resorted to misrepresentation, even of the words and acts of the
Creator.
Here, for a time, Satan had the advantage; and he
exulted in his arrogated superiority, in this one respect, to the
angels of Heaven, and even to God himself. While Satan can employ fraud
and sophistry to accomplish his objects, God cannot lie; while Lucifer,
like the serpent, can choose a tortuous course, turning, twisting,
gliding, to conceal himself, God moves only in a direct,
straight-forward line. Satan had disguised himself in a cloak of
falsehood, and for a time it was impossible to tear off the covering,
so that the hideous deformity of his character could be seen. He must
be left to reveal himself in his cruel, artful, wicked works.
He was not immediately dethroned when he first
ventured to indulge the spirit of discontent and insubordination, nor
even when he began to present his false (320) claim and lying
representations before the loyal angels. Long was he retained in
Heaven. Again and again was he offered pardon on condition of
repentance and submission. Such efforts as God alone could make, were
made to convince him of his error, and restore him to the path of
rectitude. God would preserve the order of the heavens, and had Lucifer
been willing to return to his allegiance, humble and obedient, he would
have been re-established in his office as covering cherub. But as he
stubbornly justified his course, and maintained that he had no need of
repentance, it became necessary for the Lord of Heaven to vindicate his
justice and the honor of his throne; and Satan and all who sympathized
with him were cast out.
By the same misrepresentation of the character of God
as he had practiced in Heaven, causing him to be regarded as severe and
tyrannical, Satan induced man to sin. And having succeeded thus far, he
declared that God's unjust restrictions had led to man's fall, as they
had led to his own rebellion.
But the Eternal One himself proclaims his character:
"The Lord God, merciful and gracious, long-suffering, and abundant in
goodness and truth, keeping mercy for thousands, forgiving iniquity and
transgression and sin, and that will by no means clear the guilty." Ex.
34:6,7.
In the banishment of Satan from Heaven, God declared
his justice, and maintained the honor of his throne. But when man had
sinned through yielding to the deceptions of this apostate spirit, God
gave an evidence of his love by yielding up his only (321)
begotten Son to die for the fallen race. In the atonement the character
of God stands revealed. The mighty argument of the cross demonstrates
to the whole universe that God was in no wise responsible for the
course of sin that Lucifer had chosen; that it was no arbitrary
withdrawal of divine grace, no deficiency in the divine government,
which inspired in him the spirit of rebellion.
In the contest between Christ and Satan, during the
Saviour's earthly ministry, the character of the great deceiver was
unmasked. Nothing could so effectually have uprooted Satan from the
minds and affections of the heavenly angels and the whole loyal
universe as did his cruel warfare upon the world's Redeemer. The daring
blasphemy of his demand that Christ should pay him homage, his
presumptuous boldness in bearing him to the mountain summit and the
pinnacle of the temple, the malicious intent betrayed in urging him to
cast himself down from the dizzy height, the unsleeping malice that
hunted him from place to place, inspiring the hearts of priests and
people to reject his love, and at the last to raise the cry "Crucify
him! crucify him!"--all this excited the amazement and indignation of
the universe.
It was Satan that prompted the world's rejection of
Christ. The prince of evil exerted all his power and cunning to destroy
Jesus; for he saw that the Saviour's mercy and love, his compassion and
pitying tenderness, were representing to the world the character of
God. Satan contested every claim put forth by the Son of God, and
employed men as his agents to fill the Saviour's life with suffering
and sorrow. The sophistry and falsehood by which he had sought to (322)
hinder the work of Jesus, the hatred manifested through the children of
disobedience, his cruel accusations against Him whose life was one of
unexampled goodness, all sprang from deep-seated revenge. The pent-up
fires of envy and malice, hatred and revenge, burst forth on Calvary
against the son of God, while all Heaven gazed upon the scene in silent
horror.
When the great sacrifice had been consummated, Christ
ascended on high, refusing the adoration of angels until he had
preferred the request, "I will that they also whom thou hast given me,
be with me where I am." John 17:24. Then with inexpressible love and
power came forth the answer from the Father's throne, "Let all the
angels of God worship him." Heb. 1:6. Not a stain rested upon Jesus.
His humiliation ended, his sacrifice completed, there was given unto
him a name that is above every name.
Now the guilt of Satan stood forth without excuse.
His lying charges against the divine character and government appeared
in their true light. He had accused God of seeking merely the
exaltation of himself in requiring submission and obedience from his
creatures, and had declared that while the Creator exacted self-denial
from all others, he himself practiced no self-denial, and made no
sacrifice. Now it was seen that for the salvation of a fallen and
sinful race, the Ruler of the universe had made the greatest sacrifice
which God could make. It was seen, also, that while Lucifer had opened
the door for the entrance of sin, by his desire for honor and
supremacy, Christ had, in order to destroy sin, humbled himself, and
become obedient unto death.
(323)
God had manifested his abhorrence of the principles of rebellion. All
Heaven saw his justice revealed, both in the condemnation of Satan and
in the redemption of man. Lucifer had declared God's law to be of such
a character that its penalty could not be remitted, and therefore every
transgressor must be forever debarred from the Creator's favor. He had
claimed that the sinful race were placed beyond redemption, and were
therefore his rightful prey. But the death of Christ was an argument in
man's behalf that could not be turned aside. He suffered the penalty of
the law. God was just in permitting his wrath to fall upon Him who was
equal with himself, and man was set free to accept the righteousness of
Christ, and by a life of penitence and humiliation to triumph as the
Son of God had triumphed over the power of Satan.
God's law stands fully vindicated. He is just, and
yet the justifier of all who believe in Jesus. Nothing less than this
plan of atonement could convince the whole universe of God's justice.
In the final execution of the judgment it will be
seen that no cause for sin exits. When the Judge of all the earth shall
demand of Satan, "Why hast thou rebelled against me, and robbed me of
the subjects of my kingdom?" the originator of evil can render no
excuse. Every mouth will be stopped, and all the hosts of rebellion
will be speechless before the great tribunal.
CHAPTER 25
ENMITY BETWEEN MAN AND SATAN
(324)
"I will put enmity between thee and the woman, and between thy seed and
her seed; it shall bruise thy head, and thou shalt bruise his heel."
Gen. 3:15. The divine sentence pronounced against Satan after the fall
of man, was also a prophecy, embracing all the ages to the close of
time, and foreshadowing the great conflict to engage all the races of
men who should live upon the earth.
God declares, "I will put enmity." This enmity is not
naturally entertained. When man transgressed the divine law, his nature
became evil, and he was in harmony, and not at variance, with Satan.
There exists naturally no enmity between sinful man and the originator
of sin. Both became evil through apostasy. The apostate is never at
rest, except as he obtains sympathy and support by inducing others to
follow his example. For this reason, fallen angels and wicked men unite
in desperate companionship. Had not God specially interposed, Satan and
man would have entered into an alliance against Heaven; and instead of
cherishing enmity against Satan, the whole human family would have been
united in opposition to God.
(325)
Satan tempted man to sin, as he had caused angels to rebel, that he
might thus secure co-operation in his warfare against Heaven. There was
no dissension between himself and the fallen angels as regards their
hatred of Christ; while on all other points there was discord, they
were firmly united in opposing the authority of the Ruler of the
universe. But when Satan heard the declaration that enmity should exist
between himself and the woman, and between his seed and her seed, he
knew that his efforts to deprave human nature would be interrupted;
that by some means man was to be enabled to resist his power.
The grace that Christ implants in the soul creates
the enmity against Satan. Without this converting grace and renewing
power, man would continue the captive of Satan, a servant ever ready to
do his bidding. But the new principle in the soul creates conflict
where hitherto had been peace. The power which Christ imparts, enables
man to resist the tyrant and usurper. Whoever is seen to abhor sin
instead of loving it, whoever resists and conquers those passions that
have held sway within, displays the operation of a principle wholly
from above.
The antagonism that exists between the spirit of
Christ and the spirit of Satan was most strikingly displayed in the
world's reception of Jesus. It was not so much because he appeared
without worldly wealth, pomp, or grandeur, that the Jews were led to
reject him. They saw that he possessed power which would more than
compensate for the lack of these outward advantages. But the purity and
holiness of Christ called forth against him the hatred of the (326) ungodly.
His life of self-denial and sinless devotion was a perpetual reproof to
a proud, sensual people. It was this that evoked enmity against the Son
of God. Satan and evil angels joined with evil men. All the energies of
apostasy conspired against the champion of truth.
The same enmity is manifested toward Christ's
followers as was manifested toward their Master. Whoever sees the
repulsive character of sin, and, in strength from above, resists
temptation, will assuredly arouse the wrath of Satan and his subjects.
Hatred of the pure principles of truth, and reproach and persecution of
its advocates, will exist as long as sin and sinners remain. The
followers of Christ and the servants of Satan cannot harmonize. The
offense of the cross has not ceased. "All that will live godly in
Christ Jesus shall suffer persecution." 2 Tim. 3:12.
Satan's agents are constantly working under his
direction to establish his authority; and build up his kingdom in
opposition to the government of God. To this end they seek to deceive
Christ's followers, and allure them from their allegiance. Like their
leader, they misconstrue and pervert the Scriptures to accomplish their
object. As Satan endeavored to cast reproach upon God, so do his agents
seek to malign God's people. The spirit which put Christ to death moves
the wicked to destroy his followers. All this is foreshadowed in that
first prophecy, "I will put enmity between thee and the woman, and
between thy seed and her seed." Such is the work that will be carried
forward in the great controversy between Christ and Satan to the close
of time.
(327)
Satan summons all his forces, and throws his whole power into the
combat. Why is it that he meets with no greater resistance? Why are the
soldiers of Christ so sleepy and indifferent?--Because they do not
realize their peril. There is but little enmity against Satan and his
works, because there is so great ignorance concerning his power and
malice, and the vast extent of his warfare against Christ and his
church. Multitudes are deluded here. They do not know that their enemy
is a mighty general, who controls the minds of evil angels, and that
with well-matured plans and skillful movements he is warring against
Christ to prevent the salvation of souls. Among professed Christians,
and even among ministers of the gospel, there is heard scarcely a
reference to Satan, except perhaps an incidental mention in the pulpit.
They overlook the evidences of his continual activity and success; they
neglect the many warnings of his subtlety; they seem to ignore his very
existence.
While men are ignorant of his devices, this vigilant
foe is upon their track every moment. He is intruding his presence in
every department of the household, in every street of our cities, in
the churches, in the councils, in the courts of justice, perplexing,
deceiving, seducing, everywhere ruining the souls and bodies of men,
women, and children, breaking up families, sowing hatred, emulation,
strife, sedition, murder. And the Christian world seem to regard these
things as though God had appointed them, and they must exist.
Satan is continually seeking to overcome the people of God by breaking down the barriers which (328) separate
them from the world. Ancient Israel were enticed into sin when they
ventured into forbidden association with the heathen. In a similar
manner are modern Israel led astray. "The god of this world hath
blinded the minds of them which believe not, lest the light of the
glorious gospel of Christ, who is the image of God, should shine unto
them." 2 Cor. 4:4. All who are not decided followers of Christ are
servants of Satan. In the unregenerate heart there is love of sin, and
a disposition to cherish and excuse it. In the renewed heart there is
hatred of sin, and determined resistance against it. When Christians
choose the society of the ungodly and unbelieving, they expose
themselves to temptation. Satan conceals himself from view, and
stealthily draws his bandage across their eyes. They cannot see that
such company is calculated to do them harm, and while all the time
assimilating to the world in character, words, and actions, they are
becoming more and more blinded. Familiarity with sin inevitably causes
it to appear less repulsive. He who chooses to associate with the
servants of Satan soon ceases to fear their master.
The tempter often works most successfully through
those who are least suspected of being under his control. The opinion
prevails with many that all which appears like courtesy or refinement
must, in some sense, pertain to Christ. Never was there a greater
mistake. These qualities should grace the character of every Christian,
for they would exert a powerful influence in favor of true religion;
but they must be consecrated to God, or they are a power for evil. (329)
Many who are affable and intelligent, and who would not stoop to what
is commonly regarded as an immoral act, are but polished instruments in
the hands of Satan. The insidious, deceptive character of their
influence and example renders them more dangerous enemies to the cause
of Christ than are those who are unattractive, coarse, rough, and
degraded.
By earnest prayer and dependence upon God, Solomon
obtained the wisdom which excited the wonder and admiration of the
world. But when he turned from the Source of his strength, and went
forward relying upon himself, he fell a prey to temptation. Then the
marvelous powers bestowed on this wisest of kings, only rendered him a
more efficient agent of the adversary of souls.
While Satan is constantly seeking to blind their
minds to the fact, let Christians never forget that they "wrestle not
against flesh and blood, but against principalities, against powers,
against the rulers of the darkness of this world, against wicked
spirits [margin] in high places." Eph. 6:12. The inspired warning is
sounding down the centuries to our time: "Be sober, be vigilant;
because your adversary the devil, as a roaring lion, walketh about,
seeking whom he may devour." 1 Peter 5:8. "Put on the whole armor of
God, that ye may be able to stand against the wiles of the devil." Eph.
6:11.
From the days of Adam to our own time, our great
enemy has been exercising his power to oppress and destroy. He is now
preparing for his last campaign against the church. All who seek to
follow Jesus will be brought into conflict with this relentless (330)
foe. The more nearly the Christian imitates the divine Pattern, the
more surely will he make himself a mark for the attacks of Satan. All
who are actively engaged in the cause of God, seeking to unveil the
deceptions of the evil one and to present Christ before the people,
will be able to join in the testimony of Paul, in which he speaks of
serving the Lord with all humility of mind, with many tears and
temptations.
Satan assailed Christ with his fiercest and most
subtle temptations; but he was repulsed in every conflict. Those
battles were fought in our behalf; those victories make it possible for
us to conquer. Christ will give strength to all who seek it. No man
without his own consent can be overcome by Satan. The tempter has no
power to control the will or to force the soul to sin. He may distress,
but he cannot contaminate. He can cause agony, but not defilement. The
fact that Christ has conquered should inspire his followers with
courage to fight manfully the battle against sin and Satan.
CHAPTER 26
AGENCY OF EVIL SPIRITS
(331) The
existence of Satan and the agency of evil spirits are facts fully
established by both the Old and the New Testament. From the days of
Adam to Moses, and all the succeeding ages to John, the latest gospel
writer, Satan is recognized as an active, personal agent, the
originator of evil, the enemy of God and man. It is true that
imagination and superstition have given their own coloring to these
facts, and have linked them with legends and traditions of heathen,
Jewish, and even Christian nations; but as revealed in the word of God
they are of the utmost solemnity and importance. The connection of the
visible with the invisible world, the ministration of angels of God,
and the agency of evil angels, are inseparably interwoven with human
history. We are told of the fall of the angels from their purity, of
Lucifer their leader, the instigator of rebellion, of their confederacy
and government, of their various orders, of their great intelligence
and subtlety, and of their malicious designs against the innocence and
happiness of men. We are told of One mightier than the fallen foe,--One
by whose authority Satan's power is limited and controlled; and we are
told, also, of the punishment prepared for the originator of iniquity.
(332) During
the time when Christ was upon the earth, evil spirits manifested their
power in a most striking manner. And why was this?--Christ had come to
enter upon the plan devised for man's redemption, and Satan therefore
determined to assert his right to control the world. He had succeeded
in establishing idolatry in every part of the earth except the land of
Palestine. To the only land that had not fully yielded to the tempter's
sway, Christ came to shed upon the people the light of Heaven. Here two
rival powers claimed supremacy. Jesus was stretching out his arms of
love, inviting all who would to find pardon and peace in him. The hosts
of darkness understood that if his mission should be successful, their
rule was soon to end. Satan raged like a chained lion, and defiantly
exhibited his power over the bodies as well as the souls of men.
The fact that men have been possessed with demons is
clearly stated in the New Testament. The persons thus afflicted were
not merely suffering with disease from natural causes. Christ had
perfect understanding of that with which he was dealing, and he
recognized the direct presence and agency of evil spirits.
A striking example of their number, power, and
malignity, and also of the power and mercy of Christ, is given in the
Scripture account of the healing of the demoniacs at Gadara. Those
wretched maniacs, spurning all restraint, writhing, foaming, raging,
were filling the air with their cries, doing violence to themselves,
and endangering all who should approach them. Their bleeding and
disfigured bodies and distracted minds presented a spectacle
well-pleasing (333) to the prince of darkness. One of the
demons controlling the sufferers declared, "My name is Legion; for we
are many." Mark 5:9. In the Roman army a legion consisted of from three
to five thousand men. Satan's hosts also are marshaled into companies,
and the single company to which these demons belonged numbered no less
than a legion.
At the command of Jesus, the evil spirits departed
from their victims, leaving them calmly sitting at the Saviour's feet,
subdued, intelligent, and gentle. But the demons were permitted to
sweep a herd of swine into the sea; and to the dwellers of Gadara their
loss outweighed the blessings which Christ had bestowed, and the divine
Healer was entreated to depart. This was the result which Satan
designed to secure. By casting the blame upon Jesus, he aroused the
selfish fears of the people, and prevented them from listening to his
words. Satan is constantly accusing Christians as the cause of loss,
misfortune, and suffering, instead of allowing the reproach to fall
where it belongs, upon himself and his agents.
But the purposes of Christ were not thwarted. He
allowed the evil spirits to destroy the herd of swine as a rebuke to
those Jews, who, by raising these unclean beasts for the sake of gain,
had transgressed the command of God. Had not Christ restrained the
demons, they would have plunged into the sea, not only the swine, but
also their keepers and owners. The preservation of both the keepers and
the owners was due alone to his merciful interposition for their
deliverance. Furthermore, this scene was permitted to take place that
the disciples (334) might witness the cruel power of Satan upon
both man and beast. The Saviour desired his followers to have a
knowledge of the foe whom they were to meet, that they might not be
deceived and overcome by his devices. It was also his will that the
people of that region should behold his power to break the bondage of
Satan and release his captives. And though Jesus himself departed, the
men so marvelously delivered, remained to declare the mercy of their
Benefactor.
Other instances of a similar nature are recorded in
the Scriptures. The daughter of the Syrophenician woman was grievously
vexed with a devil, whom Jesus cast out by his word. Mark 7:26-30. One
"possessed with a devil, blind and dumb," Matt. 12:22. a youth who had
a dumb spirit, that ofttimes "cast him into the fire, and into the
waters, to destroy him," Mark 9:17-27. the maniac, who, tormented by "a
spirit of an unclean devil," Luke 4:33-36. disturbed the Sabbath quiet
of the synagogue at Capernaum, were all healed by the compassionate
Saviour. In nearly every instance, Christ addressed the demon as an
intelligent entity, commanding him to come out of his victim and to
torment him no more. The worshipers at Capernaun, beholding his mighty
power, "were all amazed, and spake among themselves, saying, What a
word is this! for with authority and power he commandeth the unclean
spirits, and they come out."
Those possessed with devils are usually represented
as being in a condition of great suffering; yet there were exceptions
to this rule. For the sake of obtaining (335) supernatural
power, some welcomed the Satanic influence. These of course had no
conflict with the demons. Of this class were those who possessed the
spirit of divination,--Simon Magus, Elymas the sorcerer, and the damsel
who followed Paul and Silas at Philippi.
None are in greater danger from the influence of evil
spirits than are those who, notwithstanding the direct and ample
testimony of the Scriptures, deny the existence and agency of the devil
and his angels. So long as we are ignorant of their wiles, they have
almost inconceivable advantage; many give heed to their suggestions
while they suppose themselves to be following the dictates of their own
wisdom. This is why, as we approach the close of time, when Satan is to
work with greatest power to deceive and destroy, he spreads everywhere
the belief that he does not exist. It is his policy to conceal himself
and his manner of working.
There is nothing that the great deceiver fears so
much as that we shall become acquainted with his devices. The better to
disguise his real character and purposes, he has caused himself to be
so represented as to excite no stronger emotion than ridicule or
contempt. He is well pleased to be painted as a ludicrous or loathsome
object, misshapen, half animal and half human. He is pleased to hear
his name used in sport and mockery by those who consider themselves
intelligent and well-informed.
It is because he has masked himself with consummate
skill that the question is so widely asked, "Does such a being really
exist?" It is an evidence of his success that theories giving the lie
to the plainest (336) testimony of the Scriptures are so
generally received in the religious world. And it is because Satan can
most readily control the minds of those who are unconscious of his
influence that the word of God gives us so many examples of his
malignant work, unveiling before us his secret forces, and thus placing
us on our guard against his assaults.
The power and malice of Satan and his host might
justly alarm us, were it not that we may find shelter and deliverance
in the superior power of our Redeemer. We carefully secure our houses
with bolts and locks to protect our property and our lives from evil
men; but we seldom think of the evil angels who are constantly seeking
access to us, and against whose attacks we have no method of defense.
If permitted they can distract our minds, disorder, torment our bodies,
destroy our possessions and our lives. Their only delight is in misery
and destruction. Fearful is the condition of those who resist the
divine claims and yield to Satan's temptations until God gives them up
to the control of evil spirits. But those who follow Christ are ever
safe under his watchcare. Angels that excel in strength are sent from
Heaven to protect them. The wicked one cannot break through the guard
which God has stationed about his people.
CHAPTER 27
THE SNARES OF SATAN
(337)
As the people of God approach the perils of the last days, Satan holds
earnest consultation with his angels as to the most successful plan of
overthrowing their faith. He sees that the popular churches are already
lulled to sleep by his deceptive power. By pleasing sophistry and lying
wonders he can continue to hold them under his control. Therefore he
directs his angels to lay their snares especially for those who are
looking for the second advent of Christ, and endeavoring to keep all
the commandments of God.
Says the great deceiver: "We must watch those who are
calling the attention of the people to the Sabbath of Jehovah; they
will lead many to see the claims of the law of God; and the same light
which reveals the true Sabbath, reveals also the ministration of Christ
in the heavenly sanctuary, and shows that the last work for man's
salvation is now going forward. Hold the minds of the people in
darkness till that work is ended, and we shall secure the world and the
church also.
"The Sabbath is the great question which is to decide
the destiny of souls. We must exalt the Sabbath of our creating. We
have caused it to be accepted by both worldlings and church-members;
now the church must be led to unite with the world (338) in its
support. We must work by signs and wonders to blind their eyes to the
truth, and lead them to lay aside reason and the fear of God, and
follow custom and tradition.
"I will influence popular ministers to turn the
attention of their hearers from the commandments of God. That which the
Scriptures declare to be a perfect law of liberty shall be represented
as a yoke of bondage. The people accept their ministers' explanations
of Scripture, and do not investigate for themselves. Therefore by
working through the ministers, I can control the people according to my
will.
"But our principal concern is to silence this sect of
Sabbath-keepers. We must excite popular indignation against them. We
will enlist great men and worldly-wise men upon our side, and induce
those in authority to carry out our purposes. Then the Sabbath which I
have set up shall be enforced by laws the most severe and exacting.
Those who disregard them shall be driven out from the cities and
villages, and made to suffer hunger and privation. When once we have
the power, we will show what we can do with those who will not swerve
from their allegiance to God. We led the Romish Church to inflict
imprisonment, torture, and death upon those who refused to yield to her
decrees, and now that we are bringing the Protestant churches and the
world into harmony with this right arm of our strength;, we will
finally have a law to exterminate all who will not submit to our
authority. When death shall be made the penalty of violating our
Sabbath, then many who are now ranked with commandment-keepers will
come over to our side.
(339) "But
before proceeding to these extreme measures, we must exert all our
wisdom and subtlety to deceive and ensnare those who honor the true
Sabbath. We can separate many from Christ by worldliness, lust and
pride. They may think themselves safe because they believe the truth,
but indulgence of appetite or the lower passions, which will confuse
judgment and destroy discrimination, will cause their fall.
"Go, make the possessors of lands and money drunk
with the cares of this life. Present the world before them in its most
attractive light, that they may lay up their treasure here, and fix
their affections upon earthly things. We must do our utmost to prevent
those who labor in God's cause from obtaining means to use against us.
Keep the money in our own ranks. The more means they obtain, the more
they will injure our kingdom by taking from us our subjects. Make them
care more for money than for the up-building of Christ's kingdom and
the spread of the truths we hate, and we need not fear their influence;
for we know that every selfish, covetous person will fall under our
power, and will finally be separated from God's people.
"Through those that have a form of godliness but know
not the power, we can gain many who would otherwise do us great harm.
Lovers of pleasure more than lovers of God will be our most effective
helpers. Those of this class who are apt and intelligent will serve as
decoys to draw others into our snares. Many will not fear their
influence, because they profess the same faith. We will thus lead them
to conclude that the requirements of Christ are less strict than they
once believed, and that by conformity (340) to the world they
would exert a greater influence with worldlings. Thus they will
separate from Christ; then they will have no strength to resist our
power, and erelong they will be ready to ridicule their former zeal and
devotion.
"Until the great decisive blow shall be struck, our
efforts against commandment-keepers must be untiring. We must be
present at all their gatherings. In their large meetings especially our
cause will suffer much, and we must exercise great vigilance, and
employ all our seductive arts to prevent souls from hearing the truth
and becoming impressed by it.
"I will have upon the ground, as my agents, men
holding false doctrines mingled with just enough truth to deceive
souls. I will also have unbelieving ones present, who will express
doubts in regard to the Lord's messages of warning to his church.
Should the people read and believe these admonitions, we could have
little hope of overcoming them. But if we can divert their attention
from these warnings, they will remain ignorant of our power and cunning
and we shall secure them in our ranks at last. God will not permit his
words to be slighted with impunity. If we can keep souls deceived for a
time, God's mercy will be withdrawn, and he will give them up to our
full control.
"We must cause distraction and division. We must
destroy their anxiety for their own souls, and lead them to criticise,
to judge, and to accuse and condemn one another, and to cherish
selfishness and enmity. For these sins, God banished us from his
presence; and all who follow our example will meet a similar fate."
(341)
The Scriptures declare that upon one occasion, when the angels of God
came to present themselves before the Lord, Satan came also among them,
not to bow before the Eternal King, but to further his own malicious
designs against the righteous. With the same object he is in attendance
when men assemble for the worship of God. Though hidden from sight, he
is working with all diligence to control the minds of the worshipers.
Like a skillful general, he lays his plans beforehand. As he sees the
messenger of God searching the Scriptures, he takes note of the subject
to be presented to the people. Then he employs all his cunning and
shrewdness to so control circumstances that the message may not reach
those whom he is deceiving on that very point. The one who most needs
the warning will be urged into some business transaction which requires
his presence, or will by some other means be prevented from hearing the
words that might prove to him a savor of life unto life.
Again, Satan sees the Lord's servant burdened because
of the spiritual darkness that enshrouds the people. He hears their
earnest prayers for divine grace and power to break the spell of
indifference, carelessness, and indolence. Then with renewed zeal he
plies his arts. He tempts men to the indulgence of appetite or to some
other form of self-gratification, and thus benumbs their sensibilities,
so that they fail to hear the very things which they most need to
learn.
Satan well knows that all whom he can lead to neglect
prayer and the searching of the Scriptures will be overcome by his
attacks. Therefore he invents every possible device to engross the
mind. (342) There has ever been a class professing godliness
who, instead of following on to know the truth, make it their religion
to seek some fault of character or error of faith in those with whom
they do not agree. Such are Satan's right-hand helpers. Accusers of the
brethren are not few; and they are always active when God is at work,
and his servants are rendering him true homage. They will put a false
coloring upon the words and acts of those who love and obey the truth.
They will represent the most earnest, zealous, self-denying servants of
Christ as deceived or deceivers. It is their work to misrepresent the
motives of every true and noble deed, to circulate insinuations, and
arouse suspicion in the minds of the inexperienced. In every
conceivable manner they will seek to cause that which is pure and
righteous to be regarded as foul and deceptive. And in this work the
agents of Satan have their master and his angels to help them.
But none need be deceived concerning them. It may be
readily seen whose children they are, whose example they follow, and
whose work they do. "Ye shall know them by their fruits." Matt. 7:16.
They closely resemble Satan, the envenomed slanderer, the accuser of
the brethren.
It is Satan's plan to bring into the church
insincere, unregenerate elements that will encourage doubt and
unbelief, and hinder all who desire to see the work of God advance, and
to advance with it. Many who have no real faith in God or in his word,
assent to some principles of truth, and pass as Christians; and thus
they are enabled to introduce their errors as scriptural doctrines.
(343)
The position that it is of no consequence what men believe, is one of
Satan's most successful deceptions. He knows that the truth, received
in the love of it, sanctifies the soul of the receiver; therefore he is
constantly seeking to substitute false theories, fables, another
gospel. From the beginning, the servants of God have contended against
false teachers, not merely as vicious men, but as inculcators of
falsehoods that were fatal to the soul. Elijah, Jeremiah, Paul, firmly
and fearlessly opposed those who were turning men from the word of God.
That liberality which regards a correct religious faith as unimportant,
found no favor with these holy defenders of the truth.
The vague and fanciful interpretations of Scripture,
and the many conflicting theories concerning religious faith, that are
found in the Christian world, are the work of our great adversary to so
confuse minds that they shall not discern the truth. And the discord
and division which exists among the churches of Christendom is in a
great measure due to the prevailing custom of wresting the Scriptures
to support a favorite theory. Instead of carefully studying God's word
with humility of heart to obtain a knowledge of his will, many seek
only to discover something odd or original.
In order to sustain erroneous doctrines or
unchristian practices, they seize upon passages of Scripture separated
from the context, perhaps quoting half of a single verse as proving
their point, when the remaining portion would show the meaning to be
quite the opposite. With the cunning of the serpent, they entrench
themselves behind disconnected utterances (344) construed to
suit their carnal desires. Thus do many willfully pervert the word of
God. Others, who have an active imagination, seize upon the figures and
symbols of Holy Writ, interpret to suit their fancy, with little regard
to the testimony of Scripture as its own interpreter, and then they
present their vagaries as the teachings of God's word.
Whenever the study of the Scriptures is entered upon
without a prayerful, humble, teachable spirit, the plainest and
simplest as well as the most difficult passages will be wrested from
their true meaning. The papal leaders select such portions of Scripture
as best serve their purpose, interpret to suit themselves, and then
present these to the people, while they deny them the privilege of
studying the Bible, and understanding its sacred truths for themselves.
Unless the whole Bible is given to the people just as it reads, it
would be better for them not to have it at all.
The Bible was designed to be a guide to all who wish
to become acquainted with the will of their Maker. God gave to men the
sure word of prophecy; angels and even Christ himself came to make
known to Daniel and John the things that must shortly come to pass.
Those important matters that concern our salvation were not left
involved in mystery. They were not revealed in such a way as to perplex
and mislead the honest seeker after truth. Said the Lord by the prophet
Habakkuk, "Write the vision, and make it plain upon tables, that he may
run that readeth it." Hab. 2:2,3. The word of God is plain to all who
study it with a prayerful heart. Every truly honest (345) soul
will come to the light of truth. "Light is sown for the righteous." Ps.
97:11. No church can advance in holiness unless its members are
earnestly seeking for truth as for hid treasure.
By the cry of liberality, men are blinded to the
devices of their adversary, while he is all the time working steadily
for the accomplishment of his object. As he succeeds in supplanting the
word of truth by human speculations, the law of God is set aside, and
the churches are under the bondage of sin while they claim to be free.
To many, scientific research has become a curse;
their finite minds are so weak that they lose their balance. They
cannot harmonize their views of science with Scripture statements, and
they think that the Bible is to be tested by their standard of "science
falsely so called." Thus they err from the faith, and are seduced by
the devil. Men have endeavored to be wiser than their Creator; human
philosophy has attempted to search out and explain mysteries which will
never be revealed, through the eternal ages. If men would but search
and understand what God has made known of himself and his purposes,
they would obtain such a view of the glory, majesty, and power of
Jehovah, that they would realize their own littleness, and would be
content with that which has been revealed for themselves and their
children.
It is a masterpiece of Satan's deceptions to keep the
minds of men searching and conjecturing in regard to that which God has
not made known, and which he does not intend that we shall understand. (346)
It was thus that Lucifer himself was cast out of Heaven. He became
dissatisfied because all the secrets of God's purposes were not
confided to him, and he entirely disregarded that which was revealed
concerning his own work in the lofty position assigned him. By arousing
the same discontent in the angels under his command, he caused their
fall. Now he seeks to imbue the minds of men with the same spirit, and
to lead them also to disregard the direct commands of God.
Those who are unwilling to accept the plain, cutting
truths of the Bible, are continually seeking for pleasing fables that
will quiet their consciences. The less spiritual, self-denying, and
humiliating the doctrines presented, the greater the favor with which
they are received. These persons degrade the intellectual powers to
serve their carnal desires. Too wise in their own conceit to search the
word of God with contrition of soul and earnest prayer for divine
guidance, they have no shield from delusion. Satan is ready to supply
the heart's desire, and he palms off his deceptions in the place of
truth. It was thus that the papacy gained its power over the minds of
men; and by rejection of the truth because it involves a cross,
Protestants are following the same path. All who neglect the word of
God to study convenience and policy, that they may not be at variance
with the world, will be left to receive damnable heresy for religious
truth. The apostle Paul speaks of a class who "received not the love of
the truth, that they might be saved." He says of these, "For this cause
God shall send them strong delusion, that they should believe a lie,
that they all might be damned who (347) believed not the truth,
but had pleasure in unrighteousness." 2 Thess. 2:10-12. With such a
warning before us, it behooves us to be on our guard as to what
doctrines we receive.
Every conceivable form of error will be accepted by
those who willfully reject the truth. Satan has different deceptions
prepared to reach different minds; and some who look with horror upon
one deception will readily receive another.
Among the most successful agencies of the great
deceiver are the delusive doctrines and lying wonders of Spiritualism.
Disguised as an angel of light, he spreads his nets where least
suspected. If men would but study the word of God with earnest prayer
that they might understand its teachings, they would not be left in
darkness to receive false doctrines. But as they reject the truth, they
fall a prey to these deceptions.
Another dangerous heresy is the doctrine that denies
the divinity of Christ. Men who have no experimental knowledge of
Jesus, will yet assume an appearance of great wisdom, as though their
judgment were beyond question, and boldly declare that the Son of God
had no existence prior to his first advent to this world. This position
directly contradicts the plainest statements of our Saviour concerning
himself; yet it is received with favor by a large class who claim to
believe the Scriptures. With such persons it is folly to argue. No
argument, however conclusive, will convince those who reject the direct
testimony of the Son of God. "The natural man receiveth not the things
of the Spirit of God; for they are foolishness unto him; neither can he
know them, (348) because they are spiritually discerned." 1
Cor. 2:14. Those who persistently cling to such errors, give evidence
of their own ignorance of God and of his Son.
Still another subtle and mischievous error is the
fast-spreading belief that Satan has no existence as a personal being;
that the name is used in Scripture merely to represent men's evil
thoughts and desires.
The teaching so widely echoed from popular pulpits,
that the second advent of Christ is his coming to each individual at
death, is a device to divert the minds of men from his personal coming
in the clouds of heaven. For years Satan has thus been saying, "Behold,
he is in the secret chambers;" and many souls have been lost by
accepting this deception.
Again, worldly wisdom teaches that prayer is not
essential. Men of science claim that there can be no real answer to
prayer; that this would be a violation of law, a miracle, and that
miracles have no existence. The universe, say they, is governed by
fixed laws, and God himself does nothing contrary to these laws. Thus
they represent God as bound by his own laws; as if the operation of
divine laws could exclude divine freedom. Such teaching is opposed to
the testimony of Scriptures. Were not miracles wrought by Christ and
his apostles? The same compassionate Saviour lives to-day, and he is as
willing to listen to the prayer of faith as when he walked visibly
among men. The natural co-operates with the supernatural. It is a part
of God's plan to grant us, in answer to the prayer of faith, that which
he would not bestow, did we not thus ask.
Innumerable are the erroneous doctrines and fanciful (349)
ideas that are obtaining among the churches of Christendom. It is
impossible to estimate the evil results of removing one of the
landmarks fixed by the word of God. Few who venture to do this, stop
with the rejection of a single truth. The majority continue to set
aside one after another of its principles, until they become actual
infidels.
And this is the object which Satan seeks to
accomplish. There is nothing that he desires more than to destroy
confidence in God and in his word. Satan stands at the head of the
great army of doubters, and he works to the utmost of his power to
beguile souls into his ranks. It is becoming fashionable to doubt.
There are many who seem to feel that it is a virtue to stand on the
side of unbelief, skepticism, and infidelity. But underneath an
appearance of candor and humility, it will be found that such persons
are actuated by self-confidence and pride. It is a terrible thing to
lose faith in God or in his word. Unbelief strengthens as it is
encouraged. There is danger in even once giving expression to doubt; a
seed is sown which produces a harvest of its kind. Satan will nourish
the crop every moment. Those who allow themselves to talk of their
doubts will find them constantly becoming more confirmed. God will
never remove every occasion for doubt. He will never work a miracle to
remove unbelief when he has given sufficient evidence for faith.
God looks with displeasure upon the self-sufficient
and the unbelieving, who are ever doubting his promises and distrusting
the assurance of his grace. They are unproductive trees that spread
their dark branches far and wide, shutting away the sunlight (350)
from other plants, and causing them to droop and die under the chilling
shadow. The life-work of these persons will appear as a never-ceasing
witness against them. They are sowing seeds of doubt and skepticism
that will yield an unfailing harvest.
The followers of Christ know little of the plots
which Satan and his hosts are forming against them. But He who sitteth
in the heavens will overrule all these devices for the accomplish-ment
of his deep designs. The Lord permits his people to be subjected to the
fiery ordeal of temptation, not because he takes pleasure in their
distress and affliction, but because this process is essential to their
final victory. He could not, consistently with his own glory, shield
them from temptation; for the very object of the trial is to prepare
them to resist all the allurements of evil.
Satan is well aware that the weakest soul who abides
in Christ is more than a match for the hosts of darkness, and that,
should he reveal himself openly, he would be met and resisted.
Therefore he seeks to draw away the soldiers of the cross from their
strong fortification, while he lies in ambush with his forces, ready to
destroy all who venture upon his ground. No man is safe for a day or an
hour without prayer. Especially should we entreat the Lord for wisdom
to understand his word. Satan is an expert in quoting Scripture,
placing his own interpretation upon passages by which he hopes to cause
us to stumble. We should study the Bible with humility of heart, never
losing sight of our dependence upon God. While we must constantly guard
against the devices of Satan, we should pray in faith continually,
"Lead us not into temptation."
CHAPTER 28
THE FIRST GREAT DECEPTION
(351) With
the earliest history of man, Satan began his efforts to deceive our
race. He who had incited rebellion in Heaven desired to bring the whole
creation to unite with him in his warfare against the government of
God. His envy and jealousy were excited as he looked upon the beautiful
home prepared for the happy, holy pair, and he immediately laid his
plans to cause their fall. Had he revealed himself in his real
character, he would have been repulsed at once, for Adam and Eve had
been warned against this dangerous foe; but he worked in the dark,
concealing his purpose, that he might more effectually accomplish his
object.
Employing as his medium the serpent, then a creature
of fascinating appearance, he addressed himself to Eve, "Hath God said
Ye shall not eat of every tree of the garden?" Gen. 3:1. Had Eve
refrained from entering into argument with the tempter, she would have
been safe; but she ventured to parley with him, and fell a victim to
his wiles. It is thus that many are still overcome. They doubt and
argue concerning the requirements of God, and instead of obeying the
divine commands, they accept human theories, which but disguise the
devices of Satan.
(352) "The
woman said unto the serpent, We may eat of the fruit of the trees of
the garden; but of the fruit of the tree which is in the midst of the
garden, God hath said, Ye shall not eat of it, neither shall ye touch
it, lest ye die. And the serpent said unto the woman, Ye shall not
surely die; for God doth know that in the day ye eat thereof, then your
eyes shall be opened, and ye shall be as gods, knowing good and evil."
Gen. 3:2-5. Eve yielded to temptation, and through her influence Adam
also was deceived. They accepted the words of the serpent, that God did
not mean what he said; they distrusted their Creator, and imagined that
he was restricting their liberty, and that they might obtain great
light and freedom by transgressing his law.
But what did Adam, after his sin, find to be the
meaning of the words, "In the day that thou eatest thereof thou shalt
surely die"? Did he find them to mean, as Satan had led him to believe,
that he was to be ushered into a more exalted state of existence? Then
indeed there was great good to be gained by transgression, and Satan
was proved to be a benefactor of the race. But Adam did not so
understand the divine sentence. God declared that as a penalty for his
sin, man should return to the ground whence he was taken: "Dust thou
art, and unto dust shalt thou return." Gen. 3:19. The words of Satan,
"Your eyes shall be opened," proved to be true only in this sense:
After Adam and Eve had disobeyed God, their eyes were opened to discern
their folly; they did know evil, and they tasted the bitter fruit of
transgression.
Immortality had been promised on condition of (353)
obedience to the requirements of God. It was forfeited by disobedience,
and Adam became subject to death. He could not transmit to his
posterity that which he did not possess; and there would have been no
hope for the fallen race, had not God, by the sacrifice of his Son,
brought immortality within their reach. "The wages of sin is death; but
the gift of God is eternal life through Jesus Christ our Lord." Rom.
6:23. In no other way can it be obtained. But every man may come in
possession of this priceless blessing if he will comply with the
conditions. All "who by patient continuance in well-doing seek for
glory and honor and immortality," will receive eternal life. Rom. 2:7.
The one who promised Adam life in disobedience was
the great deceiver. The first sermon ever preached upon the immortality
of the soul was preached by the serpent to Eve in Eden,--"Ye shall not
surely die;" and this declaration, resting solely upon the authority of
Satan, is echoed from the pulpits of Christendom, and received by the
majority of mankind as readily as it was received by our first parents.
The divine sentence, "The soul that sinneth, it shall die," Ez. 18:20.
is made to mean, The soul that sinneth, it shall not die, but live
eternally. We cannot but wonder at the strange infatuation which
renders men so credulous concerning the words of Satan, and so
unbelieving in regard to the words of God.
The fruit of the tree of life had the power to
perpetuate life. Had man after his fall been allowed free access to
that tree, he would have lived forever, and thus sin would have been
immortalized. (354) But a flaming sword was placed "to keep the
way of the tree of life," and not one of the family of Adam has been
permitted to pass that barrier and partake of the life-giving fruit.
Therefore there is not an immortal sinner.
But after the fall, Satan bade his angels make a
special effort to foster the belief in man's natural immortality; and
when they had induced the people to receive this error, they led them
on to conclude that the sinner would live in eternal misery. Now the
prince of darkness, working through his agents, represents God as a
revengeful tyrant, declaring that he plunges into hell all those who do
not please him, and causes them ever to feel his wrath; and that while
they suffer unutterable anguish, and writhe in the eternal flames,
their Creator looks down upon them with satisfaction.
Thus the arch-fiend clothes with his own attributes
the Creator and Benefactor of mankind. Cruelty is Satanic. God is love;
and all that he created was pure, holy, and lovely, until sin was
brought in by the first great rebel. Satan himself is the enemy who
tempts man to sin, and then destroys him if he can; and when he has
made sure of his victim, then he exults in the ruin he has wrought. If
permitted, he would sweep the entire race into his net. Were it not for
the interposition of divine power, not one son or daughter of Adam
would escape.
He is seeking to overcome men to-day, as he overcame
our first parents, by shaking their confidence in their Creator, and
leading them to doubt the wisdom of his government and the justice of
his laws. Satan and his emissaries represent God as even (355)
worse than themselves, in order to excuse their own malignity and
rebellion. The great deceiver endeavors to shift his own horrible
cruelty of character upon our heavenly Father, that he may cause
himself to appear as one greatly wronged because he will not submit to
so unjust a governor. He presents before the world the liberty which
they may enjoy under his mild sway, in contrast with the bondage
imposed by the stern decrees of Jehovah. Thus he succeeds in luring
souls away from their allegiance to God.
How repugnant to every emotion of love and mercy, and
even to our sense of justice, is the doctrine that the wicked dead are
tormented with fire and brimstone in an eternally burning hell, that
for the sins of a brief earthly life they are to suffer torture as long
as God shall live. Yet this doctrine has been generally embodied in the
creeds of Christendom. Says a learned doctor of divinity: "The sight of
hell-torments will exalt the happiness of the saints forever. When they
see others who are of the same nature and born under the same
circumstances, plunged in such misery, and they so distinguished, it
will make them sensible of how happy they are." Another uses these
words; "While the decree of reprobation is eternally executing on the
vessels of wrath, the smoke of their torment will be eternally
ascending in view of the vessels of mercy, who, instead of taking the
part of these miserable objects, will say, Amen, Alleluia! praise ye
the Lord!"
Where in the pages of God's word are such sentiments
expressed? Those who present them may be learned and even honest men;
but they are deluded by the sophistry of Satan. He leads them to (356)
misconstrue strong expressions of Scripture, giving to the language the
coloring of bitterness and malignity which pertains to himself, but not
to our Creator.
What would be gained to God should we admit that he
delights in witnessing unceasing tortures; that he is regaled with the
groans and shrieks and imprecations of the suffering creatures whom he
holds in the flames of hell: Can these horrid sounds be music in the
ear of Infinite Love? It is urged that the infliction of endless misery
upon the wicked would show God's hatred of sin as an evil which is
ruinous to the peace and order of the universe. Oh, dreadful blasphemy!
As if God's hatred of sin is the reason why he perpetuates sin. For,
according to the received theology, continued torture without hope of
mercy maddens its wretched victims, and as they pour out their rage in
curses and blasphemy, they are forever augmenting their load of guilt.
God's glory is not enhanced by thus perpetuating continually increasing
sin through ceaseless ages.
It is beyond the power of the human mind to estimate
the evil which has been wrought by the heresy of eternal torment. The
religion of the bible, full of love and goodness, and abounding in
compassion, is darkened by superstition and clothed with terror. When
we consider in what false colors Satan has painted the character of
God, can we wonder that our merciful Creator is feared, dreaded, and
even hated? The appalling views of God which have spread over the world
from the teachings of the pulpit have made thousands, yea, millions, of
skeptics and infidels.
(357)
The theory of eternal torment is one of the false doctrines that
constitute the wine of the abominations of Babylon, of which she makes
all nations drink. That ministers of Christ should have accepted this
heresy and proclaimed it from the sacred desk, is indeed a mystery.
They received it from Rome, as they received the false Sabbath. True,
it has been taught by great and good men; but the light on this subject
had not come to them as it has come to us. They were responsible only
for the light which shone in their time; we are accountable for that
which shines in our day. If we turn from the testimony of God's word,
and accept false doctrines because our fathers taught them, we fall
under the condemnation pronounced upon Babylon; we are drinking of the
wine of her abominations.
A large class to whom the doctrine of eternal torment
is revolting are driven to the opposite error. They see that the
Scriptures represent God as a being of love and compassion, and they
cannot believe that he will consign his creatures to the fires of an
eternally burning hell. But, holding that the soul is naturally
immortal, they see no alternative but to conclude that all mankind will
finally be saved. Many regard the threatenings of the Bible as designed
merely to frighten men into obedience, and not to be literally
fulfilled. Thus the sinner can live in selfish pleasure, disregarding
the requirements of God, and yet expect to be finally received into his
favor. Such a doctrine, presuming upon God's mercy, but ignoring his
justice, pleases the carnal heart, and emboldens the wicked in their
iniquity.
To show how believers in universal salvation wrest (358) the
Scriptures to sustain their soul-destroying dogmas, it is needful only
to cite their own utterances. At the funeral of an irreligious young
man, who was killed instantly by an accident, a Universalist minister
selected as his text the Scripture statement concerning David; "He was
comforted concerning Amnon, seeing he was dead." 2 Sam. 13:39.
"I am frequently asked," said the speaker, "what will
be the fate of those who leave the world in sin, die, perhaps, in a
state of inebriation, die with the scarlet stains of crime unwashed
from their robes, or die as this young man died, having never made a
profession or enjoyed an experience of religion. We are content with
the Scriptures; their answer shall solve the awful problem. Amnon was
exceedingly sinful; he was unrepentant, he was made drunk, and while
drunk was killed. David was a prophet of God; he must have known
whether it would be ill or well for Amnon in the world to come. What
were the expressions of his heart?--'The soul of King David longed to
go forth unto Absalom; for he was comforted concerning Amnon, seeing he
was dead.'
"And what is the inference to be deduced from this
language? Is it not that endless suffering formed no part of his
religious belief?--So we conceive; and here we discover a triumphant
argument in support of the more pleasing, more enlightened, more
benevolent hypothesis of ultimate universal purity and peace. He was
comforted, seeing his son was dead. And why so?--Because by the eye of
prophecy he could look forward into the glorious future, and see that
son far removed from all temptations, released from (359) the
bondage and purified from the corruptions of sin, and after being made
sufficiently holy and enlightened, admitted to the assembly of ascended
and rejoicing spirits. His only comfort was, that in being removed from
the present state of sin and suffering, his beloved son had gone where
the loftiest breathings of the Holy Spirit would be shed upon his
darkened soul; where his mind would be unfolded to the wisdom of Heaven
and the sweet raptures of immortal love, and thus prepared with a
sanctified nature to enjoy the rest and society of the heavenly
inheritance.
"In these thoughts we would be understood to believe
that the salvation of Heaven depends upon nothing which we can do in
this life; neither upon a present change of heart, nor upon present
belief, or a present profession of religion."
Thus does the professed minister of Christ reiterate
the falsehood uttered by the serpent in Eden,--"Ye shall not surely
die." "In the day ye eat thereof, then your eyes shall be opened, and
ye shall be as gods." The vilest of sinners,--the murderer, the thief,
and the adulterer,--will after death be prepared to enter into immortal
bliss.
And from what does this perverter of the Scriptures
draw his conclusions?--From a single sentence expressing David's
submission to the dispensation of Providence. His soul "longed to go
forth unto Absolom; for he was comforted concerning Amnon, seeing he
was dead." The poignancy of his grief having been softened by time, his
thoughts turned from the dead to the living son, self-banished through
fear of the just punishment of his crime. And this is (360) the
evidence that the incestuous, drunken Amnon was at death immediately
transported to the abodes of bliss, there to be purified and prepared
for the companionship of sinless angels! A pleasing fable indeed, well
suited to gratify the carnal heart! This is Satan's own doctrine, and
it does his work effectually. Should we be surprised that, with such
instruction, wickedness abounds? Is there not need of contending
earnestly for the faith once delivered to the saints?
The course pursued by this one false teacher
illustrates that of many others. A few words of Scripture are separated
from the context, which would in many cases show its meaning to be
exactly opposite to the interpretation put upon it; and such disjointed
passages are perverted and used in proof of doctrines that have no
foundation in the word of God. The testimony cited as evidence that the
drunken Amnon is in Heaven, is a mere inference directly contradicted
by the plain and positive statement of the Scriptures, that no drunkard
shall inherit the kingdom of God. It is thus that doubters,
unbelievers, and skeptics turn the truth into a lie. And multitudes
have been deceived by their sophistry, and rocked to sleep in the
cradle of carnal security.
If the souls of all men pass directly to Heaven at
the hour of dissolution, then we may well covet death rather than life.
Many have been led by this belief to put an end to their existence.
When overwhelmed with trouble, perplexity, and disappointment, it seems
an easy thing to break the brittle thread of life, and soar away into
the bliss of the eternal world.
God has given in his word abundant evidence that he will punish the transgressors of his law. Witness (361) the
visitation of his judgments upon the angels who kept not their first
estate, on the inhabitants of the antediluvian world, on the people of
Sodom, on unbelieving Israel. Their history is placed on record for our
admonition.
Let us consider what the Bible teaches further
concerning the ungodly and unrepentant, whom the Universalist places in
Heaven as holy, happy angels.
"I am Alpha and Omega, the beginning and the end. I
will give unto him that is athirst of the fountain of the water of life
freely." This promise is only to those that thirst. None but those who
feel their need of the water of life, and seek it at the loss of all
things else, will be supplied. "He that overcometh shall inherit all
things; and I will be his God, and he shall be my son." Rev 21:6,7.
Here, also, conditions are specified. To inherit all things, we must
resist and overcome sin.
"No fornicator, nor unclean person, nor covetous man,
which is an idolater, hath any inheritance in the kingdom of Christ and
God." Eph. 5:5, RV. "Follow peace with all men, and holiness, without
which no man shall see the Lord." Heb. 12:14. "Blessed are they that do
his commandments, that they may have right to the tree of life, and may
enter in through the gates into the city. For without are dogs, and
sorcerers, and whoremongers, and murderers, and idolaters, and
whosoever loveth and maketh a lie." Rev. 22:14,15.
God has given to men a declaration of his character:
"The Lord God, merciful and gracious, long-suffering, and abundant in
goodness and truth, keeping mercy for thousands, forgiving iniquity and
(362) transgression and sin, and that will by no means clear the
guilty." Ex. 34:6,7. The power and authority of the divine government
will be employed to put down rebellion; yet all the manifestations of
retributive justice will be perfectly consistent with the character of
God as a merciful, long-suffering, benevolent being.
God does not force the will or judgment of any. He
takes no pleasure in a slavish obedience. He desires that the creatures
of his hands shall love him because he is worthy of love. He would have
them obey him because they have an intelligent appreciation of his
wisdom, justice, and benevolence. And all who have a just conception of
these qualities will love him because they are drawn toward him in
admiration of his attributes.
The principles of kindness, mercy, and love taught
and exemplified by our Saviour, are a copy of the will and character of
God. Christ declared that he taught nothing except that which he had
received from his Father. The principles of the divine government are
in perfect harmony with the Saviour's precept, "Love your enemies." God
executes justice upon the wicked, for the good of the universe, and
even of those upon whom his judgments are visited. He would make them
happy if he could do so in accordance with the laws of his government
and the justice of his character. He surrounds them with the tokens of
his love, he grants them a knowledge of his law, and follows them with
the offers of his mercy; but they despise his love, make void his law,
and reject his mercy. While constantly receiving his gifts, they
dishonor the Giver; (363) they hate God because they know that
he abhors their sins. The Lord bears long with their perversity; but
the decisive hour will come at last, when their destiny is to be
decided. Will he then chain these rebels to his side? Will he force
them to do his will?
Those who have chosen Satan as their leader, and have
been controlled by his power, are not prepared to enter the presence of
God. Pride, deception, licentiousness, cruelty, have become fixed in
their characters. Can they enter Heaven to dwell forever with those
whom they despised and hated on earth? Truth will never be agreeable to
a liar; meekness will not satisfy self-esteem and pride; purity is not
acceptable to the corrupt; disinterested love does not appear
attractive to the selfish. The destiny of the wicked is fixed by their
own choice. Their exclusion from Heaven is voluntary; it is just.
Like the waters of the flood, the fires of the great
day declare God's verdict that the wicked are incurable. They have no
disposition to submit to divine authority. Their will has been
exercised in revolt; and when life is ended, it is too late to turn the
current of their thoughts in the opposite direction,--too late to turn
from transgression to obedience, from hatred to love.
In mercy to the world, God blotted out its wicked
inhabitants in Noah's time. In mercy he destroyed the corrupt dwellers
in Sodom. Through the deceptive power of Satan, the workers of iniquity
obtain sympathy and admiration, and are thus constantly leading others
to rebellion. It was so in Noah's day, and in the time of Abraham and
Lot; it is so in our (364) time. It is in mercy to the universe that God will finally destroy the rejecters of his grace.
But the doctrine of never-ending torment has no
sanction in the Bible. John in the Revelation, describing the future
joy and glory of the redeemed, declares that he heard every voice in
Heaven and earth, and under the earth, ascribing praise to God. There
will be no lost beings in hell to mingle their shrieks with the songs
of the saved.
"The wages of sin is death; but the gift of God is
eternal life through Jesus Christ our Lord." Rom. 6:23. While life is
the inheritance of the righteous, death is the portion of the wicked.
The penalty threatened is not merely temporal death, for all must
suffer this. It is the second death, the opposite of everlasting life.
God cannot save the sinner in his sins; but he declares that the
wicked, having suffered the punishment of their guilt, shall be as
though they had not been. Says an inspired writer, "Thou shalt
diligently consider his place, and it shall not be." Ps. 37:10. In
consequence of Adam's sin, death passed upon all mankind. All alike go
down into the grave. But through the provisions of the plan of
salvation, all are to be brought forth from their graves. Then those
who have not secured the pardon of their sins must receive the penalty
of transgression. They suffer punishment varying in duration and
intensity according to their works, but finally ending in the second
death. Covered with infamy, they sink into hopeless, eternal oblivion.
Upon the fundamental error of natural immortality rests the doctrine of consciousness in death, a (365) doctrine,
like eternal torment, opposed to the teachings of the Scriptures, to
the dictates of reason, and to our feelings of humanity. According to
the popular belief, the redeemed in Heaven are acquainted with all that
takes place on the earth, and especially with the lives of the friends
whom they have left behind. But how could it be a source of happiness
to the dead to know the troubles of the living, to witness the sins
committed by their own loved ones, and to see them enduring all the
sorrows, disappointments, and anguish of life? How much of Heaven's
bliss would be enjoyed by those who were hovering over their friends on
earth? And how utterly revolting is the belief that as soon as the
breath leaves the body, the soul of the impenitent is consigned to the
flames of hell! To what depths of anguish must those be plunged who see
their friends passing to the grave unprepared, to enter upon an
eternity of woe and sin! Many have been driven to insanity by this
harrowing thought.
What say the Scriptures concerning these things?
David declares that man is not conscious in death. "His breath goeth
forth, he returneth to his earth; in that very day his thoughts
perish." Ps 146:4. Solomon bears the same testimony: "The living know
that they shall die; but the dead know not anything." "Their love, and
their hatred, and their envy, is now perished; neither have they any
more a portion forever in anything that is done under the sun." "There
is no work, nor device, nor knowledge, nor wisdom, in the grave,
whither thou goest." Eccl. 9:5,6,10.
When, in answer to his prayer, Hezekiah's life was
prolonged fifteen years, the grateful king rendered to (366)
God a tribute of praise for his great mercy. In this song he tells the
reason why he thus rejoices: "The grave cannot praise thee; death
cannot celebrate thee; they that go down into the pit cannot hope for
thy truth. The living, the living, he shall praise thee, as I do this
day. The father to the children shall make known thy truth." Isa.
38:18,19. Popular theology represents the righteous dead as in Heaven,
entered into bliss, and praising God with an immortal tongue; but
Hezekiah could see not such glorious prospect in death. With his words
agrees the testimony of the psalmist: "In death there is no remembrance
of thee; in the grave who shall give thee thanks?" "The dead praise not
the Lord, neither any that go down into silence." Ps. 6:5; 115:17.
Peter, speaking through the Holy Spirit on the day of
Pentecost, said: "Men and brethren, let me freely speak unto you of the
patriarch David, that he is both dead and buried, and his sepulcher is
with us unto this day." "For David is not ascended into the heavens."
Acts 2:29,34. The fact that David remains in the grave until the
resurrection proves that the righteous do not go to Heaven at death. It
is only through the resurrection, and by virtue of the fact that Christ
has risen, that David can at last sit at the right hand of God.
Paul declares: "If the dead rise not, then is not
Christ raised. And if Christ be not raised, your faith is vain; ye are
yet in your sins. Then they also which are fallen asleep in Christ are
perished." 1 Cor. 15:16-18. If for four thousand years the righteous
had gone (367) directly to Heaven at death, how could they be said to perish, even though there should never be a resurrection?
When about to leave his disciples, Jesus did not tell
them that they would soon come to him. "I go to prepare a place for
you," he said. "And if I go and prepare a place for you, I will come
again, and receive you unto myself." John 14:2,3. And Paul tells us,
further, that "the Lord himself shall descend from heaven with a shout,
with the voice of the archangel, and with the trump of God; and the
dead in Christ shall rise first. Then we which are alive and remain
shall be caught up together with them in the clouds, to meet the Lord
in the air; and so shall we ever be with the Lord." And he adds,
"Comfort one another with these words." 1 Thess. 4:16-18. How wide the
contrast between these words of comfort and those of the minister
previously quoted. The latter consoled the bereaved friends with the
assurance, that, however sinful the dead might have been, he was
received among the angels as soon as he breathed out his life here.
Paul points his brethren to the future coming of the Lord, when the
fetters of the tomb shall be broken, and the "dead in Christ'" shall be
raised to eternal life.
Before any can enter the mansions of the blest, their
cases must be investigated, and their characters and their deeds must
pass in review before God. All are to be judged according to the things
written in the books, and to be rewarded as their works have been. This
Judgment does not take place at death. Mark the words of Paul: "He hath
appointed a day, in the which he will judge the world in (368) righteousness
by that man whom he hath ordained; whereof he hath given assurance unto
all men, in that he hath raised him from the dead." Acts 17:31. Here
the apostle plainly stated that a specified time, then future, had been
fixed upon for the Judgment of the world.
Jude refers to the same period: "The angels which
kept not their first estate, but left their own habitation, he hath
reserved in everlasting chains under darkness unto the Judgment of the
great day." And again he quotes the words of Enoch: "Behold, the Lord
cometh with ten thousands of his saints, to execute judgment upon all."
Jude 6,14,15. John declares that he "saw the dead, small and great,
stand before God, and the books were opened:" "and the dead were judged
out of those things which are written in the books." Rev. 20:12.
But if the dead are already enjoying the bliss of
Heaven or writhing in the flames of hell, what need of a future
Judgment? The teachings of God's word on these important points are
neither obscure nor contradictory; they may be understood by common
minds. But what candid mind can see either wisdom or justice in the
current theory? Will the righteous, after the investigation of their
cases at the Judgment, receive the commendation, "Well done, good and
faithful servant, enter thou into the joy of thy Lord," when they have
been dwelling in his presence, perhaps for long ages? Are the wicked
summoned from the place of torment to receive the sentence from the
Judge of all the earth, "Depart, ye cursed into ever-lasting fire"? Oh,
solemn mockery! shameful impeachment of the wisdom and justice of God!
(369) Nowhere
in the Sacred Scriptures is found the statement that the righteous go
to their reward or the wicked to their punishment at death. The
patriarchs and prophets have left no such assurance. Christ and his
apostles have given no hint of it. The Bible clearly teaches that the
dead do not go immediately to Heaven. They are represented as sleeping
until the resurrection. In the very day that the silver cord is loosed
and the golden bowl broken, man's thoughts perish. They that go down to
the grave are in silence. They know no more of anything that is done
under the sun. Blessed rest for the weary righteous! Time, be it long
or short, is but a moment to them. They sleep, they are awakened by the
trump of God to a glorious immortality. As they are called forth from
their deep slumber, they begin to think just where they ceased. The
last sensation was the pang of death, the last thought that they were
falling beneath the power of the grave. When they arise from the tomb,
their first glad thought will be echoed in the triumphal shout, "O
death, where is thy sting? O grave, where is thy victory?"
CHAPTER 29
SPIRITUALISM
(370) The
doctrine of natural immortality has prepared the way for modern
Spiritualism. If the dead are admitted to the presence of God and the
holy angels, and privileged with knowledge far exceeding what they
before possessed, why should they not return to the earth to enlighten
and instruct the living? How can those who believe in man's
consciousness in death reject what comes to them as divine light
communicated by glorified spirits? Here is a channel regarded as
sacred, through which Satan works for the accomplishment of his
purposes. The fallen angels who do his bidding appear as messengers
from the spirit world. While professing to bring the living into
communication with the dead, Satan exercises his bewitching influence
upon their minds.
He has power even to bring before men the appearance
of their departed friends. The counterfeit is perfect; the familiar
look, the words, the tone, are reproduced with marvelous distinctness.
Many are comforted with the assurance that their loved ones are
enjoying the bliss of Heaven; and without suspicion of danger, they
give ear to seducing spirits and doctrines of devils.
When they have been led to believe that the dead actually return to communicate with them, Satan (371)
causes those to appear who went into the grave unprepared. They claim
to be happy in Heaven, and even to occupy exalted positions there; and
thus the error is widely taught, that no difference is made between the
righteous and the wicked. The pretended visitants from the world of
spirits sometimes utter cautions and warnings which prove to be
correct. Then, as confidence is gained, they present doctrines which
directly undermine faith in the Scriptures. With an appearance of deep
interest in the well-being of their friends on earth, they insinuate
the most dangerous errors. The fact that they state some truths, and
are able at times to foretell future events, gives to their statements
an appearance of reliability; and their false teachings are accepted by
the multitudes as readily, and believed as implicitly, as if they were
the most sacred truths of the Bible. The law of God is set aside, the
Spirit of grace despised, the blood of the covenant counted an unholy
things. The spirits deny the divinity of Christ, and place even the
Creator on a level with themselves. Thus under a new disguise the great
rebel still carries forward his warfare against God, begun in Heaven,
and for nearly six thousand years continued upon the earth.
Many endeavor to account for spiritual manifestations
by attributing them wholly to fraud and sleight of hand on the part of
the medium. But while it is true that the results of trickery have
often been palmed off as genuine manifestations, there have been, also,
marked exhibitions of supernatural power. The mysterious rapping with
which modern Spiritualism began was not the result of human trickery (372)
or cunning, but the direct work of evil angels, who thus introduced one
of the most successful of soul-destroying delusions. Many will be
ensnared through the belief that Spiritualism is a merely human
imposture; when brought face to face with manifestations which they
cannot but regard as supernatural, they will be deceived, and will be
led to accept them as the great power of God.
These persons overlook the testimony of the
Scriptures concerning the wonders wrought by Satan and his agents. It
was by Satanic aid that Pharaoh's magicians were enabled to counterfeit
the work of God. The apostle John, describing the miracle-working power
that will be manifested in the last days, declares: "He doeth great
wonders, so that he maketh fire come down from heaven on the earth in
the sight of men, and deceiveth them that dwell on the earth by means
of those miracles which he had power to do." Rev. 13:13,14. No mere
impostures are here brought to view. Men are deceived by the miracles
which Satan's agents have power to do, not which they pretend to do.
The very name of witchcraft is now held in contempt.
The claim that men can hold intercourse with evil spirits is regarded
as a fable of the Dark Ages. But Spiritualism, which numbers its
converts by hundreds of thousands, yea, by millions, which has made its
way into scientific circles, which has invaded churches, and has found
favor in legislative bodies, and even in the courts of kings--this
mammoth deception is but a revival in a new disguise of the witchcraft
condemned and prohibited of old.
(373)
Satan beguiles men now, as he beguiled Eve in Eden, by exciting a
desire to obtain forbidden knowledge. "Ye shall be as gods," he
declares, "knowing good and evil." But the wisdom which Spiritualism
imparts is that described by the apostle James, which "descended not
from above, but is earthly, sensual, devilish." James 3:15.
The prince of darkness has a masterly mind, and he
skillfully adapts his temptations to men of every variety of condition
and culture. He works "with all deceivableness of unrighteousness" to
gain control of the children of men; but he can accomplish his object
only as they voluntarily yield to his temptations. Those who place
themselves in his power by indulging their evil traits of character,
little realize where their course will end. The tempter accomplishes
their ruin, and then employs them to ruin others.
To those who regard themselves as educated and
refined, Satan addresses himself by exciting the imagination to lofty
flights in forbidden fields, leading them to take so great pride in
their superior wisdom that in their hearts they despise the Eternal
One. To this class the great deceiver presents Spiritualism in its more
refined and intellectual aspects, and he thus succeeds in drawing many
into his snare. He who could appear clothed with the brightness of the
heavenly seraphs before Christ in the wilderness of temptation, comes
to men in the most attractive manner, as an angel of light. He appeals
to the reason by the presentation of elevating themes, he delights the
fancy with enrapturing (374) scenes, and he enlists the
affections by his eloquent portrayals of love and charity. That mighty
being who could take the world's Redeemer to an exceedingly high
mountain, and bring before him all the kingdoms of the earth and the
glory of them, will present his temptations to men in a manner to
pervert the senses of all who are not shielded by divine power.
To the self-indulgent, the pleasure-loving, the
sensual, the grosser forms of spiritualism are adapted; and multitudes
eagerly accept teachings that leave them at liberty to follow the
inclinations of the carnal heart. Satan studies every indication of the
frailty of human nature, he marks the sins which each individual is
inclined to commit, and then he takes care that opportunities shall not
be wanting to gratify the tendency to evil. He tempts men to excess in
that which is in itself lawful, causing them through intemperance to
weaken physical, mental, and moral power. He has destroyed and is
destroying thousands through the indulgence of the passions, thus
brutalizing the entire nature of man. When the people are led to
believe that desire is the highest law, that liberty is license, and
that man is accountable only to himself, who can wonder that corruption
and depravity teem on every hand? The reins of self-control are laid
upon the neck of lust, the powers of mind and soul are made subject to
the animal propensities, and Satan exultingly sweeps into his net
thousands who profess to be followers of Christ.
But none need be deceived by the lying claims of
Spiritualism. God has given the world sufficient light to enable them
to discover the snare. If there were (375) no other evidence,
it should be enough for the Christian that the spirits make no
difference between righteousness and sin, between the noblest and
purest of the apostles of Christ and the most corrupt of the servants
of Satan. By representing the basest of men as in Heaven, and highly
exalted there, Satan virtually declares to the world, No matter how
wicked you are; no matter whether you believe or disbelieve God and the
Bible. Live as you please; Heaven is your home.
Moreover, the apostles, as personated by these lying
spirits, are made to contradict what they wrote at the dictation of the
Holy Spirit when on earth. They deny the divine origin of the Bible,
and thus tear away the foundation of the Christian's hope, and put out
the light that reveals the way to Heaven. Satan is making the world
believe that the Bible is a mere fiction, or at least a book suited to
the infancy of the race, but now to be lightly regarded, or cast aside
as obsolete. And to take the place of the word of God he holds out
spiritual manifestations. Here is a channel wholly under his control;
by this means he can make the world believe what he will. The book that
is to judge him and his followers he puts into the shade, just where he
wants it; the Saviour of the world he makes to be no more than a common
man. And as the Romish guard that watched the tomb of Jesus spread the
lying report which the priests and elders put into their mouths to
disprove his resurrection, so do the believers in spiritual
manifestations try to make it appear that there is nothing miraculous
in the circumstances of our Saviour's life. After thus seeking to put
Jesus (376) in the background, they call attention to their own miracles, declaring that these far exceed the works of Christ.
Says the prophet Isaiah: "When they shall say unto
you, Seek unto them that have familiar spirits, and unto wizards that
peep and that mutter: should not a people seek unto their God? for the
living to the dead? To the law and to the testimony. If they speak not
according to this word, it is because there is no light in them." Isa.
8:19,20. If men had been willing to receive the truth so plainly stated
in the Scriptures, that the dead know not anything, they would see in
the claims and manifestations of Spiritualism the working of Satan with
power and signs and lying wonders. But rather than yield the liberty so
agreeable to the carnal heart, and renounce the sins which they love,
the multitudes close their eyes to the light, and walk straight on,
regardless of warnings, while Satan weaves his snares about them, and
they become his prey. "Because they received not the love of the truth,
that they might be saved," therefore "God shall send them strong
delusion, that they should believe a lie." 2 Thess. 2:10,11.
Those who oppose the teachings of Spiritualism are
assailing, not men alone, but Satan and his angels. They have entered
upon a contest against principalities and powers and wicked spirits in
high places. Satan will not yield one inch of ground except as he is
driven back by the power of heavenly messengers. The people of God
should be able to meet him, as did our Saviour, with the words, "It is
written." Satan can quote Scripture now as in the days of (377) Christ,
and he will pervert its teachings to sustain his delusions. But the
plain statements of the Bible will furnish weapons powerful in every
conflict.
Those who would stand in this time of peril must
understand the testimony of the Scriptures concerning the nature of man
and the state of the dead; for in the near future many will be
confronted by the spirits of devils personating beloved relatives or
friends, and declaring the most dangerous heresies. These visitants
will appeal to our tenderest sympathies, and will work miracles to
sustain their pretensions. We must be prepared to withstand them with
the Bible truth that the dead know not anything, and that they who thus
appear are the spirits of devils.
Just before us is the "hour of temptation, which
shall come upon all the world, to try them that dwell upon the earth."
Rev. 3:10. All whose faith is not firmly established upon the word of
God will be deceived and overcome. But to those who earnestly seek a
knowledge of the truth, thus doing what they can to prepare for the
conflict, the God of truth will be a sure defense. "Because thou hast
kept the word of my patience, I also will keep thee," is the Saviour's
promise. He would sooner send every angel out of Heaven to protect his
people, than leave one soul that trusts in him to be overcome by Satan.
The prophet Isaiah brings to view the fearful
deception which will come upon the wicked, causing them to count
themselves secure from the judgments of God: "We have made a covenant
with death, and with hell are we at agreement. When the overflowing
scourge shall pass through, it shall not come unto (378) us;
for we have made lies our refuge, and under falsehood have we hid
ourselves." Isa. 28:15. In the class here described are included those
who in their stubborn impenitence comfort themselves with the assurance
that there is to be no punishment for the sinner; that all mankind, it
matters not how corrupt, are to be exalted to Heaven to become as the
angels of God. But still more emphatically are those making a covenant
with death and an agreement with hell, who renounce the truths which
Heaven has provided as a defense for the righteous in the day of
trouble, and accept the refuge of lies offered by Satan in its
stead,--the delusive pretensions of Spiritualism.
Marvelous beyond expression is the blindness of the
people of this generation. Thousands reject the word of God as unworthy
of belief, and with eager confidence receive the deceptions of Satan.
Skeptics and scoffers with great clamor denounce the bigotry of those
who contend for the faith of prophets and apostles, and they divert
themselves by holding up to ridicule the solemn declarations of the
Scriptures concerning Christ and the plan of salvation, and the
retribution to be visited upon the rejecters of the truth. They affect
great pity for minds so narrow, weak, and superstitious as to
acknowledge the claims of God, and obey the requirements of his law.
They manifest as much assurance as if, indeed, they had made a covenant
with death and an agreement with hell,--as if they had erected an
impassable, impenetrable barrier between themselves and the vengeance
of God. Nothing can arouse their fears. So fully have they yielded to
the (379) tempter, so closely are they united with him, and so
thoroughly imbued with his spirit, that they have no power and no
inclination to break away from his snare.
Long has Satan been preparing for his final effort to
deceive the world. The foundation of his work was laid by the assurance
given to Eve in Eden, "Ye shall not surely die." "In the day that ye
eat thereof, then your eyes shall be opened, and ye shall be as gods,
knowing good and evil." Little by little he has prepared the way for
his master-piece of deception in the development of Spiritualism. He
has not yet reached the full accomplishment of his designs; but it will
be reached in the last remnant of time, and the world will be swept
into the ranks of this delusion. They are fast being lulled into a
fatal security, to be awakened only by the outpouring of the wrath of
God.
Saith the Lord God: "Judgment also will I lay to the
line, and righteousness to the plummet; and the hail shall sweep away
the refuge of lies, and the waters shall overflow the hiding-place. And
your covenant with death shall be disannulled, and your agreement with
hell shall not stand. When the overflowing scourge shall pass through,
then ye shall be trodden down by it." Isa. 28:17,18.
CHAPTER 30
CHARACTER AND AIMS OF THE PAPACY
(380)
Romanism is now regarded by Protestants with far greater favor than in
former years. There is an increasing indifference concerning the
doctrines that separate the reformed churches from the papal hierarchy;
the opinion is gaining ground that, after all, we do not differ so
widely upon vital points as has been supposed, and that a little
concession on our part will bring us into a better understanding with
Rome. The time was when Protestants placed a high value upon the
liberty of conscience which has been so dearly purchased. They taught
their children to abhor popery, and held that to remain at peace with
Rome would be disloyalty to God. But how widely different are the
sentiments now expressed.
The defenders of popery declare that she has been
maligned; and the Protestant world is inclined to accept the statement.
Many urge that it is unjust to judge the Romish Church of to-day by the
abominations and absurdities that marked her reign during the centuries
of ignorance and darkness. They excuse her horrible cruelty as the
result of the barbarism of the times, and plead that civilization has
changed her sentiments.
(381)
Have these persons forgotten the claim of infallibility for eight
hundred years put forth by this haughty power? So far from
relinquishing this claim, the church in the nineteenth century has
affirmed it with greater positiveness than ever before. As Rome asserts
that she has never erred, and never can err, how can she renounce the
principles which governed her course in past ages?
The papal church will never relinquish her claim to
infallibility. All that she has done in her persecution of those who
reject her dogmas, she holds to be right; and would she not repeat the
same acts, should the opportunity be presented? Let the restraints now
imposed by secular governments be removed, and Rome be re-instated in
her former power, and there would speedily be a revival of her tyranny
and persecution.
It is true that there are real Christians in the
Roman Catholic communion. Thousands in that church are serving God
according to the best light they have. They are not allowed access to
his word, and therefore they do not discern the truth. They have never
seen the contrast between a living heart-service and a round of mere
forms and ceremonies. But God looks with pitying tenderness upon these
souls, educated as they are in a faith that is delusive and
unsatisfying. He will cause rays of light to penetrate the dense
darkness that surrounds them. He will reveal to them the truth as it is
in Jesus, and they will yet take their position with his people.
But Romanism as a system is no more in harmony with
the gospel of Christ now than at any former period in her history. The
Protestant churches are in (382) great darkness, or they would
discern the signs of the times. The Roman Church is far-reaching in her
plans and modes of operation. She is employing every device to extend
her influence and increase her power in preparation for a fierce and
determined conflict to regain control of the world, to re-establish
persecution, and to undo all that Protestantism has done. Catholicism
is gaining ground in our country upon every side. Look at the number of
her churches and chapels. Look at her colleges and seminaries, so
widely patronized by Protestants. These things should awaken the
anxiety of all who prize the pure principles of the gospel. Protestants
have tampered with and patronized popery; they have made compromises
and concessions which papists themselves are surprised to see, and fail
to understand. Men are closing their eyes to the real character of
Romanism, and the dangers to be apprehended from her supremacy. The
people of our land need to be aroused to resist the advances of this
most dangerous foe to civil and religious liberty.
Many suppose that the Catholic religion is
unattractive, and that its worship is a dull, stupid round of ceremony.
Here they mistake. While Romanism is based upon deception, it is not a
coarse and clumsy imposture. The religious service of the Romish Church
is a most impressive ceremonial. Its gorgeous display and solemn rites
fascinate the senses of the people, and silence the voice of reason and
of conscience. The eye is charmed. Magnificent churches, imposing
processions, golden altars, jeweled shrines, choice paintings, and
exquisite sculpture (383) appeal to the love of beauty. The ear
also is captivated. There is nothing to excel the music. The rich notes
of the deep-toned organ, blending with the melody of many voices as it
swells through the lofty domes and pillared aisles of her grand
cathedrals, cannot fail to impress the mind with awe and reverence.
This outward splendor, pomp, and ceremony, that only
mocks the longings of the sin-sick soul, is an evidence of inward
corruption. The religion of Christ needs not such attractions to
recommend it. In the light shining from the cross, true Christianity
appears so pure and lovely that external decorations only hide its true
worth. It is the beauty of holiness, a meek and quiet spirit, which is
of value with God.
Brilliancy of style is not an index of pure, elevated
thought. The highest conceptions of art, the most delicate refinement
of taste, often spring from minds wholly earthly and sensual. They are
often employed by Satan to lead men to forget the necessities of the
soul, to lose sight of the future, immortal life, to turn away from
their infinite Helper, and to live for this world alone.
A religion of externals is attractive to the
unrenewed heart. The pomp and ceremony of the Catholic worship have a
seductive, bewitching power by which many are deceived; and they come
to look upon the Roman Church as the very gate of Heaven. None are
proof against her influence but those who have planted their feet
firmly upon the foundation of truth, and whose hearts are renewed by
the Spirit of God. Thousands who have not an experimental knowledge of
Christ will be swept into this deception. (384) A form of
godliness without the power is just what they desire. The Romanist
feels at liberty to sin, because the church claims the right to pardon.
To him who loves self-indulgence, it is more pleasing to confess to a
fellow-mortal than to open the soul to God. It is more palatable to
human nature to do penance than to renounce sin. It is easier to
mortify the flesh by sackcloth and nettles and galling chains than to
crucify fleshly lusts. Heavy is the yoke which the carnal heart is
willing to bear rather than bow to the yoke of Christ.
There is a striking similarity between the church of
Rome and the Jewish church at the time of Christ's first advent. While
the Jews secretly trampled upon every principle of the law of God, they
were outwardly rigorous in the observance of its precepts, loading it
down with exactions and traditions that made obedience painful and
burdensome. As the Jews professed to revere the law, so do Romanists
claim to reverence the cross. They exalt the symbol of Christ's
sufferings, while in their lives they deny him whom it represents.
Papists place crosses upon their churches, upon their
altars, and upon their garments. Everywhere is seen the insignia of the
cross. Everywhere it is outwardly honored and exalted. But the
teachings of Christ are buried beneath a mass of senseless traditions,
false interpretations, and rigorous exactions. The Saviour's words
concerning the bigoted Jews apply with still greater force to the
Romish leaders: "They bind heavy burdens and grievous to be borne, and
lay them on men's shoulders; but they themselves will not move them
with one of their fingers." Matt. 23:4. (385) Conscientious
souls are kept in constant terror, fearing the wrath of an offended
God, while the dignitaries of the church are living in luxury and
sensual pleasure.
Satan instigates the worship of images, the
invocation of saints, and the exaltation of the pope, to attract the
minds of the people from God and from his Son. To accomplish their
ruin, he endeavors to turn their attention from Him through whom alone
they can find salvation. He will direct them to any one that can be
substituted for the One who has said, "Come unto me, all ye that labor
and are heavy laden, and I will give you rest." Matt. 11:28.
It is Satan's constant effort to misrepresent the
character of God, the nature of sin, and the real issues at stake in
the great controversy. By his sophistry he blinds the minds of men, and
secures them as his agents to war against God. By perverted conceptions
of the divine attributes, heathen nations were led to believe human
sacrifices necessary to secure the favor of Deity; and the most
horrible cruelties have been perpetrated under the various forms of
idolatry. The Romish Church, uniting the forms of paganism and
Christianity, and in a similar manner mis-representing the character of
God, has resorted to practices no less cruel and revolting. In the days
of Rome's supremacy there were instruments of torture to compel assent
to her doctrines. There was the stake for those who would not concede
to her claims. There were massacres on a scale that will never be known
to mortals. Dignitaries of the church studied, under Satan their
master, to invent means to cause the (386) greatest possible
torture, and not end the life of their victim. The infernal process was
repeated to the utmost limit of human endurance, until nature gave up
the struggle, and the sufferer hailed death as a sweet release.
Such was the fate of Rome's opponents. For her
adherents she had the discipline of the scourge, of famishing hunger,
of bodily austerities in every conceivable, heart-sickening form. To
secure the favor of Heaven, penitents violated the laws of God by
violating the laws of nature. They were taught to sunder every tie
which he has formed to bless and gladden man's earthly sojourn. The
churchyard contains millions of victims who spent their lives in vain
endeavors to subdue their natural affections, to repress, as offensive
to God, every thought and feeling of sympathy with their
fellow-creatures.
If we desire to understand the determined cruelty of
Satan, manifested for hundreds of years, not among those who never
heard of God, but in the very heart and throughout the extent of
Christendom, we have only to look at the history of Romanism. And as we
see how he succeeds in disguising himself, and accomplishing his work
through the leaders of the church, we may better understand why he has
so great antipathy to the Bible. If that book is read, the mercy and
love of God will be revealed; it will be seen that he lays upon men
none of these heavy burdens. All that he asks is a broken and contrite
heart, a humble, obedient spirit.
Christ gives no example in his life for men and women
to shut themselves in monasteries in order to become fitted for Heaven.
He has never taught that (387) love and sympathy must be
repressed. The Saviour's heart overflowed with love. The nearer man
approaches to moral perfection, the keener are his sensibilities, the
more acute is his perception of sin, and the deeper his sympathy for
the afflicted. The pope claims to be the vicar of Christ. How does his
character bear comparison with that of our Saviour? Was Christ ever
known to consign men to the prison or the rack because they did not pay
him homage as the King of Heaven? Was his voice heard condemning to
death those who did not accept him? When he was slighted by the people
of a Samaritan village, the apostle John was filled with indignation,
and inquired, "Lord, wilt thou that we command fire to come down from
heaven, and consume them, even as Elias did?" Jesus looked with pity
upon his disciple, and rebuked his harsh spirit, saying, "The Son of
man is not come to destroy men's lives, but to save them" Luke 9:54,56.
How different from the spirit manifested by Christ is that of his
professed vicar.
The Romish Church now presents a fair front to the
world, covering with apologies her record of horrible cruelties. She
has clothed herself in Christ-like garments; but she is unchanged.
Every principle of popery that existed in ages past exists to-day. The
doctrines devised in the darkest ages are still held. Let none deceive
themselves. The popery that Protestants are now so ready to embrace and
honor is the same that ruled the world in the days of the Reformation,
when men of God stood up at the peril of their lives to expose her
iniquity. She possesses the same pride and arrogant assumption (388)
that lorded it over kings and princes, and claimed the prerogatives of
God. Her spirit is no less cruel and despotic now than when she crushed
out human liberty, and slew the saints of the Most High.
Popery is just what prophecy declared that she would
be,--the apostasy of the latter times. It is a part of her policy to
assume the character which will best accomplish her purpose; but
beneath the variable appearance of the chameleon, she conceals the
invariable venom of the serpent. "We are not bound to keep faith and
promises to heretics," she declares. Shall this power, whose record for
a thousand years is written in the blood of the saints, be now
acknowledged as a part of the church of Christ?
Is it not without reason that the claim has been put
forth that Catholicism is now almost like Protestantism. There has been
a change; but the change is in Protestants, not in Romanists.
Catholicism indeed resemble the Protestantism that now exists; but it
is far removed from Protestantism as it was in the days of Cranmer,
Ridley, Knox, and other reformers.
As the Protestant churches have been seeking the
favor of the world, false charity has blinded their eyes. They do not
see but that it is right to believe good of all evil; and as the
inevitable result, they will finally believe evil of all good. Instead
of standing in defense of the faith once delivered to the saints, they
are now, as it were, apologizing to Rome for their uncharitable opinion
of her, begging pardon for their bigotry.
A large class, even of those who look upon Romanism with no favor, apprehend little danger from her (389)
power and influence. Many urge that the intellectual and moral darkness
prevailing during the Middle Ages favored the spread of her dogmas,
superstitions, and oppression, and that the greater intelligence of
modern times, the general diffusion of knowledge, and the increasing
liberality in matters of religion, forbid a revival of intolerance and
tyranny. The very thought that such a state of things will exist in
this enlightened age is ridiculed. It is true that great light,
intellectual, moral, and religious, is shining upon this generation. In
the open pages of God's holy word, light from Heaven has been shed upon
the world. But it should be remembered that the greater the light
bestowed, the greater the darkness of those who pervert or reject it.
A prayerful study of the Bible would show Protestants
the real character of the papacy, and would cause them to abhor and to
shun it; but men are so wise in their own conceit that they feel no
need of humbly seeking God that they may be led into the truth.
Although priding themselves on their enlightenment, they are ignorant
both of the Scriptures and of the power of God. They must have some
means of quieting their consciences; and they seek that which is least
spiritual and humiliating. What they desire is a method of forgetting
God which shall pass as a method of remembering him. The papacy is well
adapted to meet the wants of all these. It is prepared for two classes
of mankind, embracing nearly the whole world,--those who would be saved
by their merits, and those who would be saved in their sins. Here is
the secret of its power.
(390) A
day of great intellectual darkness has been shown to be favorable to
the success of popery. It will yet be demonstrated that a day of great
intellectual light is equally favorable for its success. In past ages,
when men were without God's word, and without the knowledge of the
truth, their eyes were blindfolded, and thousands were ensnared, not
seeing the net spread for their feet. In this generation there are many
whose eyes become dazzled by the glare of human speculations, "science
falsely so called;" they discern not the net, and walk into it as
readily as if blindfolded. God designed that man's intellectual powers
should be held as a gift from his Maker, and employed in the service of
truth and righteousness; but when they are idolized, and laid upon the
shrine of Satan to be employed in the service of a false religion, then
intelligence can accomplish greater harm than ignorance.
In the movements now in progress in this country to
secure for the institutions and usages of the church the support of the
State, Protestants are following in the steps of papists. Nay, more,
they are opening the door for popery to regain in Protestant America
the supremacy which she has lost in the Old World. And that which gives
greater significance to this movement is the fact that the principal
object contemplated is the enforcement of Sunday observance,--a custom
which originated with Rome, and which she claims as the sign of her
authority.
The spirit of the papacy,--the spirit of conformity
to worldly customs, the veneration for human traditions above the
commands of God,--is permeating the Protestant churches, and leading
them on to do (391) same work of Sunday exaltation which the
papacy has done before them. Would the reader understand the agencies
to be employed in the soon coming contest? He has but to trace the
record of the means which Rome employed for the same object in ages
past. Would he know how papist and Protestants united will deal with
those who reject their dogmas? Let him see the spirit which Rome
manifested toward the Sabbath and its defenders.
Royal edicts, human councils, and church ordinances
sustained by secular power, were the steps by which the pagan festival
attained its position of honor in the Christian world. The first public
measure enforcing Sunday observance was the law enacted (A.D.321) by
Constantine, two years before his profession of Christianity. This
edict required towns-people to rest on the venerable day of the sun,
but permitted countrymen to continue their agricultural pursuits.
Though originally a heathen statute, it was enforced by the emperor
after his nominal acceptance of the Christian religion.
The royal mandate not proving a sufficient substitute
for divine authority, the bishop of Rome soon after conferred upon the
Sunday the title of Lord's day. Another bishop, who also sought favor
of princes, and who was the special friend and flatterer of
Constantine, advanced the claim that Christ had transferred the Sabbath
to Sunday. Not a single testimony of the Scriptures was produced in
proof of the new doctrine. The sacred garments in which the spurious
Sabbath was arrayed were of man's own manufacture; but they served to
embolden men in (392) trampling upon the law of God. All who desired to be honored by the world accepted the popular festival.
As the papacy became firmly established, the work of
Sunday exaltation was continued. For a time the people engaged in
agricultural labor when not attending church, and the name Sabbath was
still attached to the seventh day. But steadily and surely a change was
effected. Those in holy office were forbidden to pass judgment in any
civil controversy on the Sunday. Soon after, persons of all rank were
commanded to refrain from common labor, on pain of a fine for freemen,
and stripes in the case of servants. Later it was decreed that rich men
should be punished with the loss of half of their estates; and finally,
that if still obstinate they should be made slaves. The lower classes
were to suffer perpetual banishment.
Miracles also were called into requisition. Among
other wonders it was reported that as a husbandman who was about to
plow his field on Sunday, cleaned his plow with an iron, the iron stuck
fast in his hand, and for two years he carried it about with him, "to
his exceeding great pain and shame."
Later, the pope gave directions that the parish
priest should admonish the violators of Sunday, and wish them to go to
church and say their prayers, lest they bring some great calamity on
themselves and neighbors. An ecclesiastical council brought forward the
argument since so widely employed, that because persons had been struck
by lightning while laboring on Sunday, it must be the Sabbath. "It is
apparent," said the prelates, "how high the displeasure of God was upon
their neglect of this day." (393) An appeal was then made that
priests and ministers, kings and princes, and all faithful people, "use
their utmost endeavors and care that the day be restored to its honor,
and, for the credit of Christianity, more devoutly observed for time to
come."
The decrees of councils proving insufficient, the
secular authorities were besought to issue an edict that would strike
terror to the hearts of the people, and force them to refrain from
labor on the Sunday. At a synod held in Rome, all previous decisions
were reaffirmed with greater force and solemnity. They were also
incorporated into the ecclesiastical law, and enforced by the civil
authorities throughout nearly all Christendom.
Still the absence of scriptural authority for
Sunday-keeping occasioned no little embarrassment. The people
questioned the right of their teachers to deny the positive declaration
of Jehovah, "The seventh day is the Sabbath of the Lord thy God," in
order to honor the day of the sun. To supply the lack of Bible
testimony, Satan was ready with expedients. A zealous advocate of
Sunday, who about the close of the twelfth century visited the churches
of England, was resisted by faithful witnesses for the truth; and so
fruitless were his efforts that he departed from the country for a
season, and cast about him for some means to enforce his teachings.
When he returned, the lack was supplied, and in his after-labors he met
with greater success. He brought with him a roll purporting to be from
God himself, and containing the needed command for Sunday observance,
and awful threats to terrify the disobedient. This precious
document--as base a counterfeit (394) as the institution it
supported--was said to have fallen from heaven, and to have been found
in Jerusalem, upon the altar of St. Simeon, in Golgotha. The pontifical
palace at Rome was the source whence it proceeded. Frauds and forgeries
to advance the power and prosperity of the church have in all ages been
esteemed lawful by the papal hierarchy.
The roll forbade labor from the ninth hour, three
o'clock, on Saturday afternoon, till sunrise on Monday; and its
authority was declared to be confirmed by many miracles. It was
reported that persons laboring beyond the appointed hour were stricken
with paralysis. A miller who attempted to grind his corn, saw, instead
of flour, a torrent of blood come forth, and the mill-wheel stood
still, notwithstanding the strong rush of the water. A woman who placed
dough in the oven, found it raw when taken out, though the oven was
very hot. Another who had dough prepared for baking at the ninth hour,
but determined to set it aside till Monday, found the next day that it
had been made into loaves and baked by divine power. A man who baked
bread after the ninth hour on Saturday, found, when he broke it the
next morning, that blood started therefrom. By such absurd and
superstitious fabrications did the advocates of Sunday endeavor to
establish its sacredness.
In Scotland, as in England, a greater regard for
Sunday was secured by uniting with it a portion of the ancient Sabbath.
But the time required to be kept holy varied. A law was passed that
Saturday from twelve at noon ought to be accounted holy, (395) and that no man, from that time till Monday morning, should engage in worldly business.
But notwithstanding all the efforts to establish
Sunday sacredness, papists themselves publicly confessed the divine
authority of the Sabbath, and the human origin of the institution by
which it had been supplanted. In the sixteenth century a papal council
plainly declared: "Let all Christians remember that the seventh day was
consecrated by God, and hath been received and observed, not only by
the Jews, but by all others who pretend to worship God; though we
Christians have changed their Sabbath into the Lord's day." Those who
were tampering with the divine law were not ignorant of the character
of their work. They were deliberately setting themselves above God.
A striking illustration of Rome's policy toward those
who honor the Sabbath was given in the long and bloody persecution of
the Waldenses. Others suffered in a similar manner for their fidelity
to the same truth. Amid the gloom of the Dark Ages, the Christians of
Central Africa were lost sight of and forgotten by the world, and for
many centuries they enjoyed freedom in the exercise of their faith. But
at last Rome learned of their existence, and the emperor of Abyssinia
was soon beguiled into an acknowledgment of the pope as the vicar of
Christ. Other concessions followed. An edict was issued forbidding the
observance of the Sabbath under severest penalties. But papal tyranny
soon became a galling yoke; and the Abyssinians determined to break it
from their necks. After a terrible struggle, the Romanists were
banished from their dominions, (396) and the ancient faith was
restored. The churches rejoiced in their freedom, and they never forgot
the lesson they had learned concerning the deception, the fanaticism,
and the despotic power of Rome. Within their solitary realm they were
content to remain, unknown to the rest of Christendom.
The churches of Africa held the Sabbath as it was
held by the papal church before her complete apostasy. While they kept
the seventy day in obedience to the commandment of God, they abstained
from labor on the Sunday in conformity to the custom of the church.
Upon obtaining supreme power, Rome had trampled upon the Sabbath of God
to exalt her own, but the churches of Africa, hidden for nearly a
thousand years, did not share in this apostasy. When brought under the
sway of Rome, they were forced to set aside the true and exalt the
false Sabbath; but no sooner had they regained their independence than
they returned to obedience to the fourth commandment.
These records of the past clearly reveal the enmity
of Rome toward the true Sabbath and its defenders, and the means which
she employs to honor the institution of her creating. The word of God
teaches that these scenes are to be repeated as papists and Protestants
shall unite for the exaltation of the Sunday. Rev. 13:11,12. For nearly
forty years Sabbath reformers have presented this testimony to the
world. In the events now taking place is seen a rapid advance toward
the fulfillment of the prediction. There is the same claim of divine
authority for Sunday-keeping, and the same lack of scriptural evidence,
as in (397) the days of papal supremacy. The assertion that
God's judgments are visited upon men for their violation of the
Sunday-Sabbath, will be repeated. Already it is beginning to be urged.
Marvelous in her shrewdness and cunning is the Romish
Church. She can read what is to be. She bides her time, seeing that the
Protestant churches are paying her homage in their acceptance of the
false Sabbath, and that they are preparing to employ the very means
which she herself employed in by-gone days. Those who reject the light
of truth will yet seek the aid of this self-styled infallible power to
exalt an institution that originated with her. How readily she will
come to the help of Protestants in this work, it is not difficult to
conjecture. Who understands better than popery how to deal with those
who are disobedient to the church?
Christian world will learn what Romanism really is,
when it is too late to escape the snare. She is silently growing into
power. Her doctrines are exerting their influence in legislative halls,
in the churches, and in the hearts of men. Throughout the land she is
piling up her lofty and massive structures, in the secret recesses of
which her former persecutions will be repeated. She is stealthily and
unsuspectedly strengthening her forces to further her own ends when the
time shall come for her to strike. All that she desires is vantage
ground, and this is soon to be given her. In the near future we shall
see and shall feel what the purpose of the Roman element is. Whoever
shall believe and obey the word of God will thereby incur reproach and
persecution.
CHAPTER 31
THE COMING CONFLICT
(398) The
greatest and most favored nation upon the earth is the United States. A
gracious Providence has shielded this country, and poured upon her the
choicest of Heaven's blessings. Here the persecuted and oppressed have
found refuge. Here the Christian faith in its purity has been taught.
This people have been the recipients of great light and unrivaled
mercies. But these gifts have been repaid by ingratitude and
forgetfulness of God. The Infinite One keeps a reckoning with the
nations, and their guilt is proportioned to the light rejected. A
fearful record now stands in the register of Heaven against our land;
but the crime which shall fill up the measure of her iniquity is that
of making void the law of God.
Between the laws of men and the precepts of Jehovah
will come the last great conflict of the controversy between truth and
error. Upon this battle we are now entering,--a battle not between
rival churches contending for the supremacy, but between the religion
of the Bible and the religion of fable and tradition. The agencies
which will unite against truth and righteousness in this contest are
now actively at work.
God's holy word, which has been handed down to (399)
us at such a cost of suffering and blood, is but little valued. The
Bible is within the reach of all, but there are few who really accept
it as the guide of life. Infidelity prevails to an alarming extent, not
in the world merely, but in the church. Many have come to deny
doctrines which are the very pillars of the Christian faith. The great
facts of Creation as presented by the inspired writers, the fall of
man, the atonement, and the perpetuity of the law of God, are
practically rejected by a large share of the professedly Christian
world. Thousands who pride themselves upon their wisdom and
independence regard it an evidence of weakness to place implicit
confidence in the Bible, and a proof of superior talent and learning to
cavil at the Scriptures, and to spiritualize and explain away their
most important truths. Many ministers are teaching their people, and
many professors and teachers are instructing their students, that the
law of God has been changed or abrogated; and they ridicule those who
are so simple-minded as to acknowledge all its claims.
In rejecting the truth, men reject its Author. In
trampling upon the law of God, they deny the authority of the Lawgiver.
It is as easy to make an idol of false doctrines and theories as to
fashion an idol of wood or stone. Satan leads men to conceive of God in
a false character, as having attributes which he does not possess. A
philosophical idol is enthroned in the place of Jehovah; while the true
God, as he is revealed in his word, in Christ, and in the works of
creation, is worshiped by but few. Thousands deify nature, while they
deny the God of nature. Though in a different form, idolatry exists in
the Christian (400) world to-day as verily as it existed among
ancient Israel in the days of Elijah. The god of many professedly wise
men, of philosophers, poets, politicians, journalists,--the god of
polished fashionable circles, of many colleges and universities, even
of some theological institutions,--is little better than Baal, the
sun-god of Phenicia.
No error accepted by the Christian world strikes more
boldly against the authority of Heaven, none is more directly opposed
to the dictates of reason, none is more pernicious in its results, than
the modern doctrine, so rapidly gaining ground, that God's law is no
longer obligatory upon men. Every nation has its laws, which command
respect and obedience; and has the Creator of the heavens and the earth
no law to govern the beings he has made? Suppose that prominent
ministers were publicly to teach that the statues which govern our
nation and protect the rights of its citizens were not
obligatory,--that they restricted the liberties of the people, and
therefore ought not to be obeyed; how long would such men be tolerated
in the pulpit? But is it a graver offense to disregard the laws of
States and nations than to trample upon those divine precepts which are
the foundation of all government? When the standard of righteousness is
set aside, the way is open for the prince of evil to establish his rule
in the earth.
It would be far more consistent for nations to
abolish their statutes, and permit the people to do as they please,
than for the Ruler of the universe to annul his law, and leave the
world without a standard to condemn the guilty or justify the obedient.
Would we know the result of making void the law of God? The (401)
experiment has been tried. Terrible were the scenes enacted in France
when atheism became the controlling power. It was then demonstrated to
the world that to throw off the restraints which God has imposed is to
accept the rule of the cruelest of tyrants.
Wherever the divine precepts are set aside, sin
ceases to appear sinful, or righteousness desirable. Those who refuse
to submit to the government of God are wholly unfitted to govern
themselves. Through their pernicious teachings, the spirit of
insubordination is implanted in the hearts of children and youth, who
are naturally impatient of control; and a lawless, licentious state of
society results. While scoffing at the credulity of those who obey the
requirements of God, the multitudes eagerly accept the delusions of
Satan. They give the rein to lust, and practice the sins which called
down judgments upon the heathen.
Let the restraint imposed by the divine law be wholly
removed, and human laws would soon be disregarded. Because God forbids
dishonest practices, coveting, lying, and defrauding, men are ready to
trample upon his statues as a hindrance to their worldly prosperity;
but the results of banishing these precepts would be such as they do
not anticipate. If the law were not binding, why should any fear to
transgress? Property would no longer be safe. Men would obtain their
neighbor's possessions by violence; and the strongest would become
richest. Life itself would not be respected. Those who disregard the
commandments of God sow disobedience to reap disobedience. The marriage
vow would no longer stand as a sacred bulwark to protect the family. He
who (402) had the power, would, if he desired, take his
neighbor's wife by violence. The fifth commandment would be set aside
with the fourth. Children would not shrink from taking the life of
their parents, if by so doing they could obtain the desire of their
corrupt hearts. The civilized world would become a horde of robbers and
assassins; and peace, rest and happiness would be banished from the
earth.
Already the doctrine that men are released from
obedience to God's requirements has weakened the force of moral
obligation, and opened the flood-gates of iniquity upon the world.
Lawlessness, dissipation, and corruption are sweeping in upon us like
an over-whelming tide. In the family, Satan is at work. His banner
waves, even in professedly Christian households. There is envy, evil
surmising, hypocrisy, estrangement, emulation, strife, betrayal of
sacred trusts, indulgence of lust. The whole system of religious
principles and doctrines, which should form the foundation and
frame-work of social life, seems to be a tottering mass, ready to fall
to ruin. The vilest of criminals, when thrown into prison for their
offenses, are often made the recipients of gifts and attentions, as if
they had attained an enviable distinction. The greatest publicity is
given to their character and crimes. The press publish the revolting
details of vice, thus initiating others into the practice of fraud,
robbery, and murder; and Satan exults in the success of his hellish
schemes. The infatuation of vice, the wanton taking of life, the
terrible increase of intemperance and iniquity of every order and
degree, should arouse all who fear God, to inquire what can be done to
stay the tide of evil.
(403) Courts
of justice are corrupt. Rulers are actuated by desire for gain, and
love of sensual pleasure. Intemperance has beclouded the faculties of
many, so that Satan has almost complete control of them. Jurists are
perverted, bribed, deluded. Drunkenness and revelry, passion, envy,
dishonesty of every sort, are represented among those who administer
the laws. "Justice standeth afar off; for truth is fallen in the
street, and equity cannot enter."
The iniquity and spiritual darkness that prevailed
under the supremacy of Rome were the inevitable result of her
suppression of the Scriptures; but where is to be found the cause of
the wide-spread infidelity, the rejection of the law of God, and the
consequent corruption, under the full blaze of gospel light in an age
of religious freedom? Now that Satan can no longer keep the world under
his control by withholding the Scriptures, he resorts to other means to
accomplish the same object. To destroy faith in the Bible serves his
purpose as well as to destroy the Bible itself. By introducing the
belief that God's law is not binding, he as effectually leads men to
transgress as if they were wholly ignorant of its precepts. And now, as
in former ages he has worked through the church to further his designs.
As the religious organizations of the day have refused to listen to
unpopular truths plainly brought to view in the Scriptures, they have
sown broadcast the seeds of skepticism. Clinging to the papal error of
natural immortality and man's consciousness in death, they reject the
only defense against the delusions of Spiritualism. Nor is this all. As
the claims of the fourth commandment are urged upon the people, (404)
popular teachers find that the observance of the seventh-day Sabbath is
there enjoined; and as the only way to free themselves from a duty
which they are unwilling to perform, they declare that the law of God
is no longer binding. Thus they cast away the law and the Sabbath
together. As the work of Sabbath reform extends, this rejection of the
divine law to avoid the claims of the fourth commandment will become
well-nigh universal. Upon those religious leaders whose teachings have
opened the door to infidelity, to Spiritualism, and to contempt for
God's holy law, rests a fearful responsibility for the iniquity that
exits in the Christian world.
Yet this very class put forth the claim that the
fast-spreading corruption is largely attributable to the desecration of
the so-called "Christian Sabbath," and that the enforcement of Sunday
observance would greatly improve the morals of society. Combining the
temperance reform with the Sunday movement, they represent themselves
as laboring to promote the highest interests of society; and those who
refuse to unite with them are denounced as the enemies of temperance
and reform. But the fact that a movement to establish error is
connected with a work which is in itself good, is not an argument in
favor of the error. We may disguise poison by mingling it with
wholesome food, but we do not thereby change its nature. On the
contrary, it is rendered more dangerous, as it is more likely to be
taken unawares. It is one of Satan's devices to combine with falsehood
just enough truth to give it plausibility. The leaders of the Sunday
movement may advocate reforms which the people need, principles (405) which
are in harmony with the Bible, yet while there is with these a
requirement which is contrary to God's law, his servants cannot unite
with them. Nothing can justify them in setting aside the commandments
of God for the precepts of men.
Through the two great errors, the immortality of the
soul and Sunday sacredness, Satan will bring the people under his
deceptions. While the former lays the foundation of Spiritualism, the
latter creates a bond of sympathy with Rome. Protestantism will yet
stretch her hand across the gulf to grasp the hand of Spiritualism; she
will reach over the abyss to clasp hands with the Roman power; and
under the influence of this threefold union, our country will follow in
the steps of Rome in trampling on the rights of conscience.
Spiritualism is now changing its form, veiling some
of its more objectionable and immoral features, and assuming a
Christian guise. Formerly it denounced Christ and the Bible; now it
professes to accept both. The Bible is interpreted in a manner that is
attractive to the unrenewed heart, while its solemn and vital truths
are made of no effect. A God of love is presented; but his justice, his
denunciations of sin, the requirements of his holy law, are all kept
out of sight. Pleasing, bewitching fables captivate the senses of those
who do not make God's word the foundation of their faith. Christ is as
verily rejected as before; but Satan has so blinded the eyes of the
people that the deception is not discerned.
As Spiritualism assimilates more closely to the
nominal Christianity of the day, it has greater power to deceive and
ensnare. Satan himself is converted, (406) after the modern
order of things. He will appear in the character of an angel of light.
Through the agency of Spiritualism, miracles will be wrought, the sick
will be healed, and many undeniable wonders will be performed. And as
the spirits will profess faith in the Bible, and express regard for
Sunday, their work will be accepted as a manifestation of divine power.
The line of distinction between professing Christians
and the ungodly is now hardly distinguishable. Church-members love what
the world loves, and are ready to join with them; and Satan determines
to unite them in one body and thus strengthen his cause by sweeping all
into the ranks of Spiritualism. Papists who boast of miracles as a
certain mark of the true church, will be readily deceived by this
wonder-working power; and Protestants, having cast away the shield of
truth, will also be deluded. Papists, Protestants, and worldings will
alike accept the form of godliness without the power, and they will see
in this union a grand movement for the conversion of the world, and the
ushering in of the long-expected millennium.
Through Spiritualism, Satan appears as a benefactor
of the race, healing the diseases of the people, and professing to
present a new and more exalted system of religious faith; but at the
same time he works as a destroyer. His temptations are leading
multitudes to ruin. Intemperance dethrones reason; sensual indulgence,
strife, and bloodshed follow. Satan delights in war; for it excites the
worst passions of the soul, and then sweeps into eternity its victims
steeped in vice and blood. It is his object (407) to incite the
nations to war against one another; for he can thus divert the minds of
the people from the work of preparation to stand in the day of God.
Satan works through the elements also to garner his
harvest of unprepared souls. He has studied the secrets of the
laboratories of nature, and he uses all his power to control the
elements as far as God allows. When he was suffered to afflict Job, how
quickly flocks and herds, servants, houses, children, were swept away,
one trouble succeeding another as in a moment. It is God that shields
his creatures, and hedges them in from the power of the destroyer. But
the Christian world has shown contempt for the law of Jehovah; and the
Lord does just what he has declared that he would do, he withdraws his
blessings from the earth, and removes his protecting care from those
who are rebelling against his law, and teaching and forcing others to
do the same. Satan has control of all whom God does not especially
guard. He will favor and prosper some in order to further his own
designs, and he will bring trouble upon others, and lead men to believe
that it is God who is afflicting them.
While appearing to the children of men as a great
physician who can heal all their maladies, he will bring disease and
disaster until populous cities are reduced to ruin and desolation. Even
now he is as work. In accidents and calamities by sea and by land, in
great conflagrations, in fierce tornadoes and terrific hailstorms, in
tempests, floods, cyclones, tidal waves, and earthquakes, in every
place and in a thousand forms, is Satan exercising his power. He sweeps
away the ripening harvest, and famine (408) and distress
follow. He imparts to the air a deadly taint, and thousands perish by
the pestilence. These visitations are to become more and more frequent
and disastrous. Destruction will be upon the inhabitants of the world.
The beasts of the field will groan, and the earth will languish.
And then the great deceiver will persuade men that
those who serve God are causing these evils. The class that have
provoked the displeasure of Heaven will charge all their troubles upon
the faithful few whom the Lord has sent to them with messages of
warning and reproof. It will be declared that the nation is offending
God by the violation of the Sunday-Sabbath, that this sin has brought
calamities which will not cease until Sunday observance shall be
strictly enforced, and that those who present the claims of the fourth
commandment, thus destroying reverence for Sunday, are troublers of the
nation, preventing its restoration to divine favor and temporal
prosperity. Thus the accusation urged of old against the servant of God
will be repeated, and upon grounds equally well established. "And it
came to pass when Ahab saw Elijah, that Ahab said unto him, Art thou he
that troubleth Israel? And he answered, I have not troubled Israel, but
thou and thy father's house, in that ye have forsaken the commandments
of the Lord, and thou hast followed Baalim." 1 Kings 18:17,18. As the
wrath of the people shall be excited by false charges, they will pursue
a course toward God's ambassadors very similar to that which apostate
Israel pursued toward Elijah.
(409)
The miracle-working power manifested through Spiritualism will exert
its influence against those who choose to obey God rather than men.
Messages will come from the spirits declaring that God has sent them to
inform the rejecters of Sunday that they are in error, and that the
laws of the land should be obeyed as the law of God. They will lament
the great wickedness in the world, and second the testimony of
religious teachers, that the degraded state of morals is caused by the
desecration of Sunday. Great will be the indignation excited against
all who refuse to accept their testimony.
Those who honor the Bible Sabbath will be denounced
as enemies of law and order, as breaking down the moral restraints of
society, causing anarchy and corruption, and calling down the judgments
of God upon the earth. Their conscientious scruples will be pronounced
obstinacy, stubbornness, and contempt of authority. They will be
accused of disaffection toward the government. Ministers who deny the
obligation of the divine law will present from the pulpit the duty of
yielding obedience to the civil authorities as ordained of God. In
legislative halls and courts of justice, commandment-keepers will be
censured and misrepresented. A false coloring will be given to their
words; the worst possible construction will be put upon their motives.
The Protestant churches have rejected the clear,
scriptural arguments in defense of God's law, and they long to stop the
mouths of those whose faith they cannot overthrow by the Bible. Though
they blind their own eyes to the fact, they are now adopting a course
which will lead to the persecution (410) of those who
conscientiously refuse to do what the rest of the Christian world are
doing, and acknowledge the claims of the papal Sabbath.
The dignitaries of Church and State will unite to
bribe, persuade, or compel all classes to honor the Sunday. The lack of
divine authority will be supplied by oppressive enactments. Political
corruption is destroying love of justice and regard for truth, and in
order to secure public favor, legislators will yield to the popular
demand for a law enforcing Sunday observance. Liberty of conscience,
which has cost this nation so great a sacrifice, will no longer be
respected. In the soon-coming conflict we shall see exemplified the
prophet's words: "And the dragon was wroth with the woman, and went to
make war with the remnant of her seed, which keep the commandments of
God, and have the testimony of Jesus Christ." Rev. 12:17.
Our land is in jeopardy. The time is drawing on when
its legislators shall so abjure the principles of Protestantism as to
give countenance to Romish apostasy. The people for whom God has so
marvelously wrought, strengthening them to throw off the galling yoke
of popery, will by a national act give vigor to the corrupt faith of
Rome, and thus arouse the tyranny which only waits for a touch to start
again into cruelty and despotism. With rapid steps are we already
approaching this period. When Protestant churches shall seek the
support of the secular power, thus following the example of that
apostate church, for opposing which their ancestors endured the
fiercest persecution, then will there be a national apostasy which will
end only in national ruin.
CHAPTER 32
THE SCRIPTURES A SAFEGUARD
(411) "To
the law and to the testimony. If they speak not according to this word,
it is because there is no light in them." Isa. 8:20. The people of God
are directed to the Scriptures as their safeguard against the influence
of false teachers and the delusive power of spirits of darkness. Satan
employs every possible device to prevent men from obtaining a knowledge
of the Bible; for its plain utterances reveal his deceptions. At every
revival of God's work, the prince of evil is aroused to more intense
activity; he is now putting forth his utmost efforts for a final,
despairing struggle against Christ and his followers. The last great
delusion is soon to open before us. Antichrist is to perform his
marvelous works in our sight. So closely will the counterfeit resemble
the true, that it will be impossible to distinguish between them except
by the Holy Scriptures. By their testimony every statement and every
miracle must be tested.
Those who endeavor to obey all the commandments of
God will be opposed and derided; their way will be made very hard. They
can stand only in God. In order to endure the trial before them, they
must understand the will of God as revealed in his word; (412)
they can honor him only as they have a right conception of his
character, government, and purposes, and act in accordance with them.
None but those who have trained the intellect to grasp the truths of
the Bible will stand through the last great conflict. To every soul
will come the searching test, Shall I obey God rather than men? The
decisive hour is even now at hand. Are our feet planted on the rock of
God's immutable word? Are we prepared to stand firm in defense of the
commandments of God and the faith of Jesus?
Before his crucifixion the Saviour explained to his
disciples that he was to be put to death, and to rise again from the
tomb; and angels were present to impress his words on minds and hearts.
But the disciples were looking for temporal deliverance from the Roman
yoke, and they could not tolerate the thought that He in whom all their
hopes centered should suffer an ignominious death. The words which they
needed to remember were banished from their minds; and when the time of
trial came, it found them unprepared. The death of Jesus as fully
destroyed their hopes as if he had not forewarned them. So in the
prophecies the future is opened before us as plainly as it was opened
to the disciples by the words of Christ. The events connected with the
close of probation and the work of preparation for the time of trouble,
are clearly brought to view. But multitudes have no more understanding
of these important truths than if they had never been revealed. Satan
watches to catch away every impression that would make them wise unto
salvation, and the time of trouble will find them unready.
(413) When
God sends to men warnings so important that they are represented as
proclaimed by holy angels flying in the midst of heaven, he requires
every person endowed with reasoning powers to heed the message. The
fearful judgments denounced against the worship of the beast and his
image, Rev. 14:9-12. should lead all to a diligent study of the
prophecies to learn what the mark of the beast is, and how they are to
avoid receiving it. But the masses of the people turn away their ears
from hearing the truth, and are turned unto fables. The apostle Paul
declared, looking down to the last days, "The time will come when they
will not endure sound doctrine." 2 Tim. 4:3. That time has fully come.
The multitudes do not want Bible truth, because it interferes with the
desires of the sinful, world-loving heart; and Satan supplies the
deceptions which they love.
But God will have a people upon the earth to maintain
the Bible, and the Bible only, as the standard of all doctrines and the
basis of all reforms. The opinions of learned men, the deductions of
science, the creeds or decisions of ecclesiastical councils, as
numerous and discordant as are the churches which they represent, the
voice of the majority,--not one or all of these should be regarded as
evidence for or against any point of religious faith. Before accepting
any doctrine or precept, we should demand a plain "Thus saith the Lord"
in its support.
Satan is constantly endeavoring to attract attention
to man in the place of God. He leads the people to look to bishops, to
pastors, to professors of theology, as their guides, instead of
searching the (414) Scriptures to learn their duty for
themselves. Then by controlling the minds of these leaders he can
influence the multitudes according to his will.
When Christ came to speak the words of life, the
common people heard him gladly; and many, even of the priests and
rulers, believed on him. But the chief of the priesthood and the
leading men of the nation were determined to condemn and repudiate his
teachings. Though they were baffled in all their efforts to find
accusations against him, though they could not but feel the influence
of the divine power and wisdom attending his words, yet they encased
themselves in prejudice; they rejected the clearest evidence of his
Messiahship, lest they should be forced to become his disciples. These
opponents of Jesus were men whom the people had been taught from
infancy to reverence, to whose authority they had been accustomed
implicitly to bow. "How is it," they asked, "that our rulers and
learned scribes do not believe on Jesus? Would not these pious men
receive him if he were the Christ?" It was the influence of such
teachers that led the Jewish nation to reject their Redeemer.
The spirit which actuated those priests and rulers is
still manifested by many who make a high profession of piety. They
refuse to examine the testimony of the Scriptures concerning the
special truths for this time. They point to their own numbers, wealth,
and popularity, and look with contempt upon the advocates of truth as
few, poor, and unpopular, having a faith that separates them from the
world.
Christ foresaw that the undue assumption of authority practiced by the scribes and Pharisees (415) would
not cease with the dispersion of the Jews. He had a prophetic view of
the work of exalting human authority to rule the conscience, which has
been so terrible a curse to the church in all ages. And his fearful
denunciations of the scribes and Pharisees, and his warnings to the
people not to follow these blind leaders, were placed on record as an
admonition to future generations.
With the many warnings against false teachers, why
are the people so ready to commit the keeping of their souls to the
clergy? There are to-day thousands of professors of religion who can
give no other reason for points of faith which they hold than that they
were so instructed by their religious leaders. They pass by the
Saviour's teachings almost unnoticed, and place implicit confidence in
the words of the ministers. But are ministers infallible? How can we
trust our souls to their guidance unless we know from God's word that
they are light-bearers? A lack of moral courage to step aside from the
beaten track of the world, leads many to follow in the steps of learned
men; and by their reluctance to investigate for themselves, they are
becoming hopelessly fastened in the chains of error. They see that the
truth for this time is plainly brought to view in the Bible, and they
feel the power of the Holy Spirit attending its proclamation; yet they
allow the opposition of the clergy to turn them from the light. Though
reason and conscience are convinced, these deluded souls dare not think
differently from the minister; and their individual judgment, their
eternal interests, are sacrificed to the unbelief, the pride and
prejudice, of another.
(416)
Many are the forms of human influence through which Satan works to bind
his captives. He secures multitudes to himself by attaching them by the
silken cords of affection to those who are enemies of the cross of
Christ. Whatever this attachment may be, parental, filial, conjugal, or
social, the effect is the same; the opposers of truth rule with
despotic power, and the souls held under their sway have not sufficient
courage or independence to obey their own convictions of duty.
The truth and the glory of God are inseparable; it is
impossible for us, with the Bible within our reach, to honor God by
erroneous opinions. It is the first and highest duty of every rational
being to learn from the Scriptures what is truth, and then to walk in
the light, and encourage others to follow his example. Ignorance of
God's word is sin, when every provision has been made that we may
become wise. We should day by day study the Bible diligently, weighing
every thought, and comparing scripture with scripture. With divine
help, we are to form our opinions for ourselves, as we are to answer
for ourselves before God.
The truths most plainly revealed in the Bible have
been involved in doubt and darkness by learned men, who, with a
pretense of great wisdom, teach that the Scriptures have a mystical, a
secret, spiritual meaning not apparent in the language employed. These
men are false teachers. It was to such a class that Jesus declared, "Ye
know not the Scriptures, neither the power of God." Mark 12:24. The
language of the Bible should be explained according to its obvious (417) meaning
unless a symbol or figure is employed. Christ has given the promise,
"If any man will do His will, he shall know of the doctrine." John
7:17. If men would but take the Bible as it reads, if there were no
false teachers to mislead and confuse their minds, a work would be
accomplished that would make angels glad, and that would bring into the
fold of Christ thousands upon thousands who are now wandering in error.
We should exert all the powers of the mind in the
study of the Scriptures, and should task the understanding to
comprehend, as far as mortals can, the deep things of God; yet we must
not forget that the docility and submission of a child is the true
spirit of the learner. Scriptural difficulties can never be mastered by
the same methods that are employed in grappling with philosophical
problems. We should not engage in the study of the Bible with that
self-reliance with which so many enter the domains of science, but with
a prayerful dependence upon God, and a sincere desire to learn his
will. We must come with a humble and teachable spirit to obtain
knowledge from the great I AM. Otherwise, evil angels will so blind our
minds and harden our hearts that we shall not be impressed by the
truth.
Many a portion of Scripture which learned men
pronounce a mystery, or pass over as unimportant, is full of comfort
and instruction to him who has been taught in the school of Christ. One
reason why many theologians have no clearer understanding of God's word
is, they close their eyes to truths which they do not wish to practice.
An understanding of (418) Bible truth depends not so much on
the power of intellect brought to the search as on the singleness of
purpose, the earnest longing after righteousness.
Never should the Bible be studied without prayer. The
Holy Spirit alone can cause us to feel the importance of those things
easy to be understood, or prevent us from wresting truths difficult of
comprehension. It is the office of heavenly angels to prepare the heart
to so comprehend God's word that we shall be charmed with its beauty,
admonished by its warnings, or animated and strengthened by its
promises. We should make the psalmist's petition our own: "Open thou
mine eyes, that I may behold wondrous things out of thy law." Ps.
119:18. Temptations often appear irresistible because through neglect
of prayer and the study of the Bible the tempted one cannot readily
remember God's promises and meet Satan with the Scripture weapons. But
angels are round about those who are willing to be taught in divine
things, and in the time of great necessity, they will bring to their
remembrance the very truths which are needed. Thus when the enemy comes
in like a flood, the Spirit of the Lord will lift up a standard against
him.
All who value their eternal interests should be on
their guard against the inroads of skepticism. The very pillars of
truth will be assailed. It is impossible to keep beyond the reach of
the sarcasms and sophisms, the insidious and pestilent teachings, of
modern infidelity. Satan adapts his temptations to all classes. He
assails the illiterate with a jest or sneer, while he meets the
educated with scientific objections and philosophical reasoning, alike
calculated to excite (419) distrust or contempt of the
Scriptures. Even youth of little experience presume to insinuate doubts
concerning the fundamental principles of Christianity. And this
youthful infidelity, shallow as it is, has its influence. Many are thus
led to jest at the faith of their fathers, and to do despite to the
Spirit of grace. Many a life that promised to be an honor to God and a
blessing to the world, has been blighted by the foul breath of
infidelity. All who trust to the boastful decisions of human reason,
and imagine that they can explain divine mysteries, and arrive at truth
unaided by the wisdom of God, are entangled in the snare of Satan.
We are living in the most solemn period of this
world's history. The destiny of earth's teeming multitudes is about to
be decided. Our own future well-being and also the salvation of other
souls depends upon the course which we now pursue. We need to be guided
by the Spirit of truth. Every follower of Christ should earnestly
inquire, "Lord, what wilt thou have me to do?" We need to humble
ourselves before the Lord, with fasting and prayer, and to meditate
much upon his word, especially upon the scenes of the Judgment. We
should now seek a deep and living experience in the things of God. We
have not a moment to lose. Events of vital importance are transpiring
around us; we are on Satan's enchanted ground. Sleep not, sentinels of
God; the foe is lurking near, ready at any moment, should you become
lax and drowsy, to spring upon you and make you his prey.
Many are deceived as to their true condition before God. They congratulate themselves upon the wrong (420)
acts which they do not commit, and forget to enumerate the good and
noble deeds which God requires of them, but which they have neglected
to perform. It is not enough that they are trees in the garden of God.
They are to answer his expectation by bearing fruit. He holds them
accountable for their failure to accomplish all the good which they
could have done, through his grace strengthening them. In the books of
Heaven they are registered as cumberers of the ground.
When the testing time shall come, those who have made
God's word their rule of life will be revealed. In summer there is no
noticeable difference between evergreens and other trees; but when the
blasts of winter come, the evergreens remain unchanged, while other
trees are stripped of their foliage. So the false-hearted professor may
not now be distinguished from the real Christian, but the time is just
upon us when the difference will be apparent. Let opposition arise, let
the voice of the dragon be heard, let persecution be kindled, and the
half-hearted and hypocritical will waver and yield the faith; but the
true Christian will stand firm as a rock, his faith stronger, his hope
brighter, than in days of prosperity.
"Blessed is the man that walketh not in the counsel
of the ungodly, nor standeth in the way of sinners, nor sitteth in the
seat of the scornful. But his delight is in the law of the Lord; and in
his law doth he meditate day and night. And he shall be like a tree
planted by the rivers of water, that bringeth forth his fruit in his
season; his leaf also shall not wither; and whatsoever he doeth shall
prosper." Ps. 1:1-3.
CHAPTER 33
THE LOUD CRY
(421) "I
saw another angel come down from Heaven, having great power; and the
earth was lightened with his glory. And he cried mightily with a strong
voice, saying, Babylon the great is fallen, is fallen, and is become
the habitation of devils, and the hold of every foul spirit, and a cage
of every unclean and hateful bird." "And I heard another voice from
Heaven, saying, Come out of her, my people, that ye be not partakers of
her sins, and that ye receive not of her plagues." Rev. 18:1,2,4.
In this Scripture the announcement of the fall of
Babylon, as made by the second angel, Rev. 14:8, is repeated, with the
additional mention of the corruptions which have been entering the
churches since 1844. A terrible condition of the religious world is
here described. With every rejection of truth, the minds of the people
have become darker, their hearts more stubborn, until they are
entrenched in an infidel hardihood. In defiance of the warnings which
God has given, they continue to trample upon one of the precepts of the
decalogue, and they persecute those who hold it sacred. Christ is set
at naught in the contempt placed upon his word and his people. (422)
As the teachings of Spiritualism are accepted by the churches, no real
restraint is imposed upon the carnal heart, and the profession of
religion becomes a cloak to conceal the basest iniquity. A belief in
spiritual manifestations opens the door to seducing spirits and
doctrines of devils. The influence of evil angels is felt in the
churches throughout the land.
Of Babylon at this time it is declared, "Her sins
have reached unto heaven, and God hath remembered her iniquities." Rev.
18:5. She has filled up the measure of her guilt, and destruction is
about to fall upon her. But God still has a people in Babylon; and
before the visitation of his judgments, these faithful ones must be
called out, that they "partake not of her sins, and receive not of her
plagues." Hence the movement symbolized by the angel coming down from
Heaven, lightening the earth with his glory, and crying mightily with a
strong voice, announcing the sins of Babylon. In connection with his
message the call is heard, "Come out of her, my people." As these
warnings join the third angel's message, it swells to a loud cry.
Fearful is the issue to which the world is to be
brought. The powers of earth, uniting to war against the commandments
of God, will decree that no man may buy or sell, save he that has the
mark of the beast, and, finally, that whoever refuses to receive the
mark shall be put to death. Rev. 13:15,17. The word of God declares:
"If any man worship the beast and his image, and receive his mark in
his forehead, or in his hand, the same shall drink of the wine of the
wrath of God, which is poured out without mixture into the (423)
cup of his indignation." Rev. 14:9,10. But not one is made to feel the
wrath of God until the truth has been brought in contact with his mind
and conscience, and has been rejected. There are many in the churches
of our country who have never, even in this land of light and
knowledge, had an opportunity to hear the special truths for this time.
The obligation of the fourth commandment has never been set before them
in its true light. Jesus reads every heart, and tries every motive. The
decree is not to be urged upon the people blindly. Every one is to have
sufficient light to make his decision intelligently. The Sabbath will
be the great test of loyalty; for it is the point of truth especially
controverted.
Heretofore those who presented the truths of the
third message have often been regarded as mere alarmists. The
prediction that Church and State would unite to persecute those who
keep the commandments of God has been pronounced groundless and absurd.
It has been confidently declared that this land could never become
other than what it has been, the defender of religious freedom. But as
the question of enforcing Sunday observance is widely agitated, the
event so long doubted and disbelieved is seen to be approaching, and
the third message produces an effect which it could not have had
before.
In every generation God has sent his servants to
rebuke sin, both in the world and in the church. But the people desire
smooth things spoken to them, and the pure, unvarnished truth is not
acceptable. Many reformers, in entering upon their work, determined to
exercise great prudence in attacking the sins of (424) the
church and the nation. They hoped, by the example of a pure Christian
life, to lead the people back to the doctrines of the Bible. But the
Spirit of God came upon them as it came upon Elijah, and they could not
refrain from preaching the plain utterances of the Bible,--doctrines
which they had been reluctant to present. They were impelled to
zealously declare the truth, and the danger which threatened souls. The
words which the Lord gave them they uttered, fearless of consequences,
and the people were compelled to hear the warning.
Thus will the message of the third angel be
proclaimed. As the time comes for the loud cry to be given, the Lord
will work through humble instruments, leading the minds of those who
consecrate themselves to his service. The laborers will be qualified
rather by the unction of his Spirit than by the training of literary
institutions. Men of faith and prayer will be constrained to go forth
with holy zeal, declaring the words which God gives them. The sins of
Babylon will be laid open. The fearful results of a union of Church and
State, the inroads of Spiritualism, the stealthy but rapid progress of
the papal power,--all will be unmasked. By these solemn warnings the
people will be stirred. Thousands upon thousands have never listened to
words like these. In amazement they hear the testimony that Babylon is
the church, fallen because of her errors and sins, because of her
rejection of the truth sent to her from Heaven. The people go to their
former teachers with the eager inquiry, Are these things so? The
ministers present fables, prophesy smooth things, to soothe their
fears, and quiet the awakened (425) conscience. But many refuse
to be satisfied with the mere authority of men, and demand a plain
"Thus saith the Lord." The popular ministry, like the Pharisees of old,
are filled with anger as their authority is questioned; they denounce
the message as of Satan, and stir up the sin-loving multitudes to
revile and persecute those who proclaim it.
As the controversy extends into new fields, and the
minds of the people are called to God's down-trodden law, Satan is
astir. The power attending the message only maddens those who oppose
it. The clergy put forth almost superhuman efforts to shut away the
light, lest it should shine upon their flocks. By every means at their
command they endeavor to suppress the discussion of these vital
questions. The church appeals to the strong arm of civil power, and in
this work, papists are solicited to come to the help of Protestants.
The movement for Sunday enforcement becomes more bold and decided. The
law is invoked against commandment-keepers. They are threatened with
fines and imprisonment, and some are offered positions of influence,
and other rewards and advantages, as inducements to renounce their
faith. But their steadfast answer is, "Show us from the word of God our
error,"--the same plea that was made by Luther under similar
circumstances. Those who are arraigned before the courts make a strong
vindication of the truth, and some who hear them are led to take their
stand to keep all the commandments of God. Thus light is brought before
thousands who otherwise would know nothing of these truths.
Conscientious obedience to the word of God will be treated as rebellion. Blinded by Satan, the parent (426) will
exercise harshness and severity toward the believing child; the master
or mistress will oppress the commandment-keeping servant. Affection
will be alienated; children will be disinherited, and driven from home.
The words of Paul will be literally fulfilled, "All that will live
godly in Christ Jesus shall suffer persecution." 2 Tim. 3:12. As the
defenders of truth refuse to honor the Sunday-Sabbath, some of them
will be thrust into prison, some will be exiled, some will be treated
as slaves. To human wisdom, all this now seems impossible; but as the
restraining Spirit of God shall be withdrawn from men, and they shall
be under the control of Satan, who hates the divine precepts, there
will be strange developments. The heart can be very cruel when God's
fear and love are removed.
As the storm approaches, a large class who have
professed faith in the third message, but have not been sanctified
through it, abandon their position, and take refuge under the banner of
the powers of darkness. By uniting with the world and partaking of its
spirit, they come to view matters in nearly the same light; and when
the test is brought, they are prepared to choose the easy, popular
side. Men of talent and pleasing address, who once rejoiced in the
truth, employ their powers to deceive and mislead souls. They become
the most bitter enemies of their former brethren. When Sabbath-keepers
are brought before the courts to answer for their faith, these
apostates are the most efficient agents of Satan to misrepresent and
accuse them, and by false reports and insinuations to stir up the
rulers against them.
(427) The
Lord's servants have faithfully given the warning, looking to God and
to his word alone. They have not coolly calculated the consequences to
themselves. They have not consulted their temporal interests, or sought
to preserve their reputation or their lives. Yet when the storm of
opposition and reproach bursts upon them, they are overwhelmed with
consternation; and some are ready to claim, "Had we foreseen the
consequences of our words, we would have held our peace." They are
hedged in with difficulties. Satan assails them with fierce
temptations. The work which they have undertaken seems far beyond their
ability to accomplish. They are threatened with destruction. The
enthusiasm which animated them is gone; yet they cannot turn back.
Then, feeling their utter helplessness, they flee to the Mighty One for
strength. They remember that the words which they have spoken were not
theirs, but His who bade them give the warning. God put the truth into
their hearts, and they could not forbear to proclaim it.
The same trials were experienced by men of God in
ages past. Wycliffe, Huss, Luther, Tyndale, Baxter, Wesley, urged that
all doctrines be brought to the test of the Bible, and declared that
they would renounce everything which it condemned. Against these men,
persecution raged with relentless fury; yet they ceased not to declare
the truth. Different periods in the history of the church have each
been marked by the development of some special truth, adapted to the
necessities of the people of God at that time. Every new truth has made
its way against hatred and opposition; those who were (428)
blessed with its light were tempted and tried. The Lord gives a special
truth for the people in an emergency. Who dare refuse to publish it? He
commands his servants to present the last invitation of mercy to the
world. They cannot remain silent, except at the peril of their souls.
Christ's ambassadors have nothing to do with consequences. They must
perform their duty, and leave results with God.
As the opposition rises to a fiercer height, the
servants of God are again perplexed; for it seems to them that they
have brought the crisis. But conscience and the word of God assure them
that their course is right; and although the trials continue, they are
strengthened to bear them. The contest grows closer and sharper, but
their faith and courage rise with the emergency. Their testimony is,
"We dare not tamper with God's word, dividing his holy law, calling one
portion essential and another non-essential to gain the favor of the
world. The Lord whom we serve is able to deliver us. Christ has
conquered the powers of earth; and shall we be afraid of a world
already conquered?"
Persecution in its varied forms is the development of
a principle which will exist as long as Satan exists, and Christianity
has vital power. No man can serve God without enlisting against himself
the opposition of the hosts of darkness. Evil angels will assail him,
alarmed that his influence is taking the prey from their hands. Evil
men, rebuked by his example, will unite with them in seeking to
separate him from God by alluring temptations. When these do not
succeed, then a compelling power is employed to force the conscience.
(429) But
as long as Jesus remains man's intercessor in the sanctuary above, the
restraining influence of the Holy Spirit is felt by rulers and people.
It still controls, to some extent, the laws of the land. Were it not
for these laws, the condition of the world would be much worse than it
now is. While many of our rulers are active agents for Satan, God also
has his agents among the leading men of the nation. The enemy moves
upon his servants to propose measures that would greatly impede the
work of God; but statesmen who fear the Lord are influenced by holy
angels to oppose such propositions with unanswerable arguments. Thus a
few men will hold in check a powerful current of evil. The opposition
of the enemies of truth will be restrained that the third message may
do its work. When the loud cry shall be given, it will arrest the
attention of these leading men through whom the Lord is now working,
and some of them will accept it, and will stand with the people of God
through the time of trouble.
The angel who unites in the proclamation of the third
message is to lighten the whole earth with his glory. A work of
world-wide extent and unwonted power is here brought to view. The
Advent movement of 1840-44 was a glorious manifestation of the power of
God; the first message was carried to every missionary station in the
world, and in this country there was the greatest religious interest
which has been witnessed in any land since the Reformation of the
sixteenth century; but these are to be far exceeded by the mighty
movement under the loud cry of the third message. The work will be
similar to that of the day of Pentecost. Servants of (430) God,
with their faces lighted up and shining with holy consecration, hasten
from place to place to proclaim the warning from Heaven. By thousands
of voices, all over the earth, the message will be given. Miracles are
wrought, the sick are healed, and signs and wonders follow the
believers. Satan also works with lying wonders, even bringing down fire
from heaven in the sight of men. Thus the inhabitants of the earth are
brought to take their stand.
The message will be carried, as was the midnight cry
of 1844, not so much by argument as by the deep conviction of the
Spirit of God. The arguments have been presented. The seed has been
sown, and now it will spring up and bear fruit. The publications
distributed by missionary workers have exerted their influence; yet
many whose minds have been impressed have been prevented from fully
comprehending the truth or from yielding obedience. Now the rays of
light penetrate everywhere, the truth is seen in its clearness, and the
honest children of God sever the bands which have held them. Family
connections, church relations, are powerless to stay them now. Truth is
more precious than all besides. Notwithstanding the agencies combined
against the truth, a large number take their stand upon the Lord's
side.
CHAPTER 34
THE TIME OF TROUBLE
(431) "At
that time shall Michael stand up, the great prince which standeth for
the children of thy people: and there shall be a time of trouble, such
as never was since there was a nation even to that same time; and at
that time thy people shall be delivered, every one that shall be found
written in the book." Dan. 12:1.
When the third message closes, mercy no longer pleads
for the guilty inhabitants of the earth. The people of God have
accomplished their work; they have received the latter rain, or the
refreshing from the presence of the Lord, and they are prepared for the
trying hour before them. Angels are hurrying to and fro in Heaven. An
angel returning from the earth announces that his work is done, that
the seal of God has been placed upon his people. Then Jesus ceased his
intercession in the sanctuary above, He lifts his hands, and with a
loud voice says, "It is done;" and all the angelic host lay off their
crowns as he makes the solemn announcement: "He that is unjust, let him
be unjust still; and he which is filthy, let him be filthy still; and
he that is righteous, let him be righteous still; and he that is holy,
let him be holy still." Rev. 22:11. Every case has been decided for
life (432) or death. Christ has made the atonement for his
people, and blotted out their sins. The number of his subjects is made
up; "the kingdom and dominion and the greatness of the kingdom under
the whole heaven," is about to be given to the heirs of salvation, and
Jesus is to reign as King of kings and Lord of lords.
When he leaves the sanctuary, darkness covers the
inhabitants of the earth. In that fearful time the righteous must live
in the sight of a holy God without an intercessor. The restraint which
has been upon the wicked is removed, and Satan has entire control of
the finally impenitent. The power attending the last warning has
enraged them, and their anger is kindled against all who have received
the message. The people of God are then plunged into those scenes of
affliction and distress described by the prophet as the time of Jacob's
trouble.--
"Thus saith the Lord: We have heard a voice of
trembling, of fear, and not of peace." "All faces are turned into
paleness. Alas! for that day is great, so that none is like it: it is
even the time of Jacob's trouble; but he shall be saved out of it."
Jer. 30:5-7.
Jacob's night of anguish, when he wrestled in prayer
for deliverance from the hand of Esau, Gen. 32:24-30. represents the
experience of God's people in the time of trouble. Because of the
deception practiced to secure his father's blessing, intended for Esau,
Jacob had fled for his life, alarmed by his brother's deadly threats.
After remaining for many years an exile, he had set out, at God's
command, to return with his wives and children, his flocks and herds,
to his (433) native country. On reaching the borders of the
land, he was filled with terror by the tidings of Esau's approach at
the head of a band of warriors, doubtless bent upon revenge. Jacob's
company, unarmed and defenseless, seemed about to fall helpless victims
of violence and slaughter. And to the burden of anxiety and fear was
added the crushing weight of self-reproach; for it was his own sin that
had brought this danger. His only hope was in the mercy of God; his
only defense must be prayer. Yet he leaves nothing undone on his own
part to atone for the wrong to his brother, and to avert the threatened
danger. So should the followers of Christ, as they approach the time of
trouble, make every exertion to place themselves in a proper light
before the people, to disarm prejudice, and to avert the danger which
threatens liberty of conscience.
Having sent his family away, that they may not
witness his distress, Jacob remains alone to intercede with God. He
confesses his sin, and gratefully acknowledges the mercy of God toward
him, while with deep humiliation he pleads the covenant made with his
fathers, and the promises to himself in the night vision at Bethel and
in the land of his exile. The crisis in his life has come; everything
is at stake. In the darkness and solitude he continues praying and
humbling himself before God. Suddenly a hand is laid upon his shoulder.
He thinks that an enemy is seeking his life, and with all the energy of
despair he wrestles with his assailant. As the day begins to break, the
stranger puts forth his superhuman power; at his touch the strong man
seems paralyzed, and he falls, a helpless, weeping (434) suppliant,
upon the neck of his mysterious antagonist. Jacob knows now that it is
the Angel of the covenant with whom he has been in conflict. Though
disabled, and suffering the keenest pain, he does not relinquish his
purpose. Long has he endured perplexity, remorse, and trouble for his
sin; now he must have the assurance that it is pardoned. The divine
visitant seems about to depart; but Jacob clings to him, pleading for a
blessing. The angel urges, "Let me go; for the day breaketh; " but the
patriarch exclaims, "I will not let thee go, except thou bless me."
What confidence, what firmness and perseverance, are here displayed!
Had this been a boastful, presumptuous claim, Jacob would have been
instantly destroyed; but his was the assurance of one who confesses his
weakness and unworthiness, yet trusts the mercy of a covenant-keeping
God.
"He had power over the Angel, and prevailed." Hos.
12:4. Through humiliation, repentance, and self-surrender, this sinful,
erring mortal prevailed with the Majesty of Heaven. He had fastened his
trembling grasp upon the promises of God, and the heart of Infinite
Love could not turn away the sinner's plea. As an evidence of his
triumph, and an encouragement to others to imitate his example, his
name was changed from one which was a reminder of his sin, to one that
commemorated his victory. And the fact that Jacob had prevailed with
God was an assurance that he would prevail with men. He no longer
feared to encounter his brother's anger; for the Lord was his defense.
Satan had accused Jacob before the angels of God, (435)
claiming the right to destroy him because of his sin; he had moved upon
Esau to march against him; and during the patriarch's long night of
wrestling, Satan endeavored to force upon him a sense of his guilt, in
order to discourage him, and break his hold upon God. Jacob was driven
almost to despair; but he knew that without help from Heaven he must
perish. He had sincerely repented of his great sin, and he appealed to
the mercy of God. He would not be turned from his purpose, but held
fast the Angel, and urged his petition with earnest, agonizing cries,
until he prevailed. Heavenly messengers were sent to move upon Esau's
heart, and his purpose of hatred and revenge was changed to fraternal
affection.
As Satan influenced Esau to march against Jacob, so
he will stir up the wicked to destroy God's people in the time of
trouble. And as he accused Jacob, he will urge his accusations against
the people of God. He numbers the world as his subjects; but the little
company who keep the commandments of God are resisting his supremacy.
If he could blot them from the earth, his triumph would be complete. He
sees that holy angels are guarding them, and he infers that their sins
have been pardoned; but he does not know that their cases have been
decided in the sanctuary above. He has an accurate knowledge of the
sins which he has tempted them to commit, and he presents these before
God in the most exaggerated light, representing this people to be just
as deserving as himself of exclusion from the favor of God. He declares
that the Lord cannot in justice forgive their sins, and yet destroy him
and his angels. He claims them as his prey, and demands that they be
given into his hands to destroy.
(436)
As Satan accuses the people of God on account of their sins, the Lord
permits him to try them to the uttermost. Their confidence in God,
their faith and firmness, will be severely tested. As they review the
past, their hopes sink; for in their whole lives they can see little
good. They are fully conscious of their weakness and unworthiness.
Satan endeavors to terrify them with the thought that their cases are
hopeless, that the stain of their defilement will never be washed away.
He hopes to so destroy their faith that they will yield to his
temptations, and turn from their allegiance to God.
Though God's people will be surrounded by enemies who
are bent upon their destruction, yet the anguish which they suffer is
not a dread of persecution for the truth's sake; they fear that every
sin has not been repented of, and that through some fault in themselves
they shall fail to realize the fulfillment of the Saviour's promise, "I
will keep thee from the hour of temptation which shall come upon all
the world." If they could have the assurance of pardon, they would not
shrink from torture or death; but should they prove unworthy, and lose
their lives because of their own defects of character, then God's holy
name would be reproached.
On every hand they hear the plottings of treason, and
see the active working of rebellion; and there is aroused within them
an intense desire, an earnest yearning of soul, that this great
apostasy may be terminated, and the wickedness of the wicked may come
to an end. But while they plead with God to stay the work of rebellion,
there is a throb of self-reproach that they themselves have no more
power (437) to resist and urge back the mighty tide of evil.
They feel that had they always employed all their ability in the
service of Christ, going forward from strength to strength, Satan's
forces would have less power to prevail against them.
They afflict their souls before God, pointing to
their past repentance of their many sins, and pleading the Saviour's
promise, "Let him take hold of my strength, that he may make peace with
me, and he shall make peace with me." Isa. 27:5. Their faith does not
fail because their prayers are not immediately answered. Though
suffering the keenest anxiety, terror, and distress, they do not cease
their intercessions. They lay hold of the strength of God as Jacob laid
hold of the Angel; and the language of their souls is, "I will not let
thee go, except thou bless me."
Had not Jacob previously repented of his sin in
obtaining the birthright by fraud, God would not have heard his prayer
and mercifully preserved his life. So in the time of trouble, if the
people of God had unconfessed sins to appear before them while tortured
with fear and anguish, they would be over-whelmed; despair would cut
off their faith, and they could not have confidence to plead with God
for deliverance. But while they have a deep sense of their
unworthiness, they have no concealed wrongs to reveal. Their sins have
gone beforehand to Judgment, and have been blotted out; and they cannot
bring them to remembrance.
Satan leads many to believe that God will overlook
their unfaithfulness in the minor affairs of life; but the Lord shows
in his dealings with Jacob that he (438) will in no wise
sanction or tolerate evil. All who endeavor to excuse or conceal their
sins, and permit them to remain upon the books of Heaven, unconfessed
and unforgiven, will be overcome by Satan. The more exalted their
profession, and the more honorable the position which they hold, the
more grievous is their course in the sight of God, and the more sure
the triumph of their great adversary. Those who delay a preparation for
the day of God cannot obtain it in the time of trouble or at any
subsequent time. The case of all such is hopeless. Those professed
Christians who come up to that last fearful conflict unprepared, will,
in their despair, confess their sins in words of burning anguish, while
the wicked exult over their distress.
Yet Jacob's history is an assurance that God will not
cast off those who have been deceived and tempted and betrayed into
sin, but who have returned unto him with true repentance. While Satan
seeks to destroy this class, God will send his angels to comfort and
protect them in the time of peril. The assaults of Satan are fierce and
determined, his delusions are terrible; but the Lord's eye is upon his
people, and his ear listens to their cries. Their affliction is great,
the flames of the furnace seem about to consume them; but the Refiner
will bring them forth as gold tried in the fire. God's love for his
children during the period of their severest trial is as strong and
tender as in the days of their sunniest prosperity; but it is needful
for them to be placed in the furnace fire; their earthliness must be
removed that the image of Christ may be perfectly reflected.
The season of distress and anguish before us will (439) require
a faith that can endure weariness, delay, and hunger,--a faith that
will not faint, though severely tried. The period of probation is
granted to all to prepare for that time. Jacob prevailed because he was
persevering and determined. His victory is an evidence of the power of
importunate prayer. All who will lay hold of God's promises as he did,
and be as earnest and persevering as he was, will succeed as he
succeeded. Those who are unwilling to deny self, to agonize before God,
to pray long and earnestly for his blessing, will not obtain it.
Wrestling with God--how few know what it is! How few have ever had
their souls drawn out after God with intensity of desire until every
power is on the stretch. When waves of despair which no language can
express sweep over the suppliant, how few cling with unyielding faith
to the promises of God.
Those who exercise but little faith now, are in the
greatest danger of falling under the power of Satanic delusions and the
decree to compel the conscience. And even if they endure the test, they
will be plunged into deeper distress and anguish in the time of
trouble, because they have never made it a habit to trust in God. The
lessons of faith which they have neglected, they will be forced to
learn under a terrible pressure of discouragement.
We should now acquaint ourselves with God by proving
his promises. Angels record every prayer that is earnest and sincere.
We should rather dispense with selfish gratifications than neglect
communion with God. The deepest poverty, the greatest self-denial, with
his approval, is better than riches, honors, ease, and friendship
without it. We must (440) take time to pray. If we allow our
minds to be absorbed by worldly interests, the Lord may give us time by
removing from us our idols of gold, of houses, or of fertile lands.
The young would not be seduced into sin if they would
refuse to enter any path, save that upon which they could ask God's
blessing. If the messengers who bear the last solemn warning to the
world would pray for the blessing of God, not in a cold, listless, lazy
manner, but fervently and in faith, as did Jacob, they would find many
places where they could say, "I have seen God face to face, and my life
is preserved." They would be accounted of Heaven as princes, having
power to prevail with God and with men.
The time of trouble such as never was, is soon to
open upon us; and we shall need an experience which we do not now
possess, and which many are to indolent to obtain. It is often the case
that trouble is greater in anticipation than in reality; but this is
not true of the crisis before us.
The most vivid presentation cannot reach the
magnitude of the ordeal. And now, while the precious Saviour is making
an atonement for us, we should seek to become perfect in Christ. God's
providence is the school in which we are to learn the meekness and
lowliness of Jesus. The Lord is ever setting before us, not the way we
would choose, which is easier and pleasanter to us, but the true aims
of life. None can neglect or defer this work but at the most fearful
peril to their souls.
The apostle John in vision heard a loud voice in
Heaven exclaiming, "Woe to the inhabiters of the earth and the sea! for
the devil is come down unto (441) you, having great wrath,
because he knoweth that he hath but a short time." Rev. 12:12. Fearful
are the scenes which call forth this exclamation from the heavenly
voice. The wrath of Satan increases as his time grows short, and his
work of deceit and destruction reaches its culmination in the time of
trouble. God's long-suffering has ended. The world has rejected his
mercy, despised his love, and trampled upon his law. The wicked have
passed the boundary of their probation, and the Lord withdraws his
protection, and leaves them to the mercy of the leader they have
chosen. Satan will have power over those who have yielded themselves to
his control, and he will plunge the inhabitants of the earth into one
great, final trouble. As the angels of God cease to hold in check the
fierce winds of human passion, all the elements of strife will be let
loose. The whole world will be involved in ruin more terrible than that
which came upon Jerusalem of old.
A single angel destroyed all the first-born of the
Egyptians, and filled the land with mourning. When David offended
against God by numbering the people, one angel caused that terrible
destruction by which his sin was punished. The same destructive power
exercised by holy angels when God commands, will be exercised by evil
angels when he allows. There are forces now ready, and only waiting the
divine permission, to spread desolation everywhere.
Fearful sights of a supernatural character will soon
be revealed in the heavens, in token of the power of miracle-working
demons. The spirits of devils will go forth to the kings of the earth
and to the whole (442) world. Rulers and subjects will be alike
deceived. Persons will arise pretending to be Christ, and claiming the
title and the worship which belong to the world's Redeemer. They will
perform wonderful miracles of healing, and will profess to have
revelations from Heaven contradicting the testimony of the Scriptures.
As the crowning act in the great drama of deception,
Satan himself will attempt to personate Christ. The church has long
professed to look to the Saviour's advent as the consummation of her
hopes. Now the great deceiver will make it appear that Christ has come.
In different parts of the earth, Satan will manifest himself among men
as a majestic being of dazzling brightness, resembling the description
of the Son of God given by John in the Revelation. Rev. 1:13-15. The
glory that surrounds him is unsurpassed by anything that mortal eyes
have yet beheld. The shout of triumph rings out upon the air, "Christ
has come! Christ has come!" The people prostrate themselves in
adoration before him, while he lifts up his hands, and pronounces a
blessing upon them, as Christ blessed his disciples when he was
personally upon the earth. His voice is soft and subdued, yet full of
melody. In gentle, compassionate tones he presents some of the same
gracious, heavenly truths which the Saviour uttered; he heals the
diseases of the people, and then, in his assumed character of Christ,
he claims to have changed the Sabbath to Sunday, and commands all to
hallow the day which he has blessed. He declares that those who persist
in keeping holy the seventh day are blaspheming his name (443)
by refusing to listen to his angels sent to them with light and truth.
This is the strong, almost overmastering delusion. Like the Samaritans
who were deceived by Simon Magus, the multitudes, from the least to the
greatest, give heed to these sorceries, saying, This is "the great
power of God."
But the people of God will not be misled. The
teachings of this false christ are not in accordance with the
Scriptures. His blessing is pronounced upon the worshipers of the beast
and his image,--the very class upon whom the Bible declares that God's
unmingled wrath shall be poured out. And, furthermore, Satan is not
permitted to counterfeit the manner of Christ's advent. The Scriptures
teach that "as the lightning cometh out of the east, and shineth even
unto the west; so shall also the coming of the Son of man be;" Matt.
24:27. that he "cometh with clouds; and every eye shall see him;" Rev.
1:7. that he will "descend from Heaven with a shout, with the voice of
the archangel, and with the trump of God;" 1 Thess. 4:16. that he will
"come in his glory, and all the holy angels with him," Matt. 25:31. and
will "send his angels with a great sound of a trumpet, and they shall
gather together his elect." Matt. 24:31. Those who have received the
love of the truth will be shielded from the powerful delusion that
takes the world captive. By the testimony of the Scriptures they will
detect the deceiver in his disguise.
To all, the testing time will come. By the sifting of
temptation, the genuine Christian will be revealed. Are the people of
God now so firmly established upon his word that they would not yield
to the (444) evidence of their senses? Would they, in such a
crisis, cling to the Bible, and the Bible only? Satan will, if
possible, prevent them from obtaining a preparation to stand in that
day. He will so arrange affairs as to hedge up their way, entangle them
with earthly treasures, cause them to carry a heavy, wearisome burden,
that their hearts may be overcharged with the cares of this life, and
the day of trial may come upon them as a thief.
Satan will continue to act a double part. Appearing
to be the dispenser of great blessings and divine truths, he will, by
his lying wonders, hold the world under his control; and at the same
time he will indulge his malignity by causing distress and destruction,
and will accuse God's people as the cause of the fearful convulsions of
nature and the strife and bloodshed among men which are desolating the
earth. Thus he will excite to greater intensity the spirit of hatred
and persecution against them. God never forces the will or the
conscience; but Satan will employ the most cruel measures to control
the consciences of men, and to secure worship to himself. And this work
of compulsion is always in favor of human creeds and laws, and in
defiance of God's holy law.
In the last conflict the Sabbath will be the special
point of controversy throughout all Christendom. Secular rulers and
religious leaders will unite to enforce the observance of the Sunday;
and as milder measures fail, the most oppressive laws will be enacted.
It will be urged that the few who stand in opposition to an institution
of the church and a law of the land ought not to be tolerated; and a
decree (445) will finally be issued denouncing them as
deserving of the severest punishment, and giving the people liberty,
after a certain time, to put them to death. Romanism in the Old world,
and apostate Protestantism in the New, will pursue a similar course
toward those who honor the divine precepts.
The people of God will then flee from the cities and
villages, and associate together in companies, dwelling in the most
desolate and solitary places. Many will find refuge in the strongholds
of the mountains. Like the Christians of the Piedmont valleys, they
will make the high places of the earth their sanctuaries, and will
thank God for the "munitions of rocks." But many of all nations and all
classes, high and low, rich and poor, black and white, will be cast
into the most unjust and cruel bondage. The beloved of God pass weary
days, bound in chains, shut in by prison bars, sentenced to be slain,
some apparently left to die of starvation in dark and loathsome
dungeons. No human ear is open to hear their moans; no human hand is
ready to lend them help.
Will the Lord forget his people in this trying hour?
Did he forget faithful Noah when judgments were visited upon the
antediluvian world? Did he forget Lot when the fire came down from
heaven to consume the cities of the plains? Did he forget Joseph
surrounded by idolaters in Egypt? Did he forget Elijah when the oath of
Jezebel threatened him with the fate of the Baal prophets? Did he
forget Jeremiah in the dark and dismal pit of his prison-house? Did he
forget the three worthies in the fiery furnace? or Daniel in the den of
lions? Christ cannot forsake (446) those who are as the apple of his eye, the purchase of his precious blood.
Though the people of God endure privation, and even
suffer for want of food, they are not left to perish. While God's
judgments are visited upon the earth, and the wicked are dying from
hunger and thirst, angels provide the righteous with food and water.
Said Jesus, in his lessons of faith to his disciples: "Consider the
ravens; for they neither sow nor reap; which neither have storehouse
nor barn; and God feedeth them; how much more are ye better than the
fowls?" Luke 12:24. "Are not two sparrows sold for a farthing? and one
of them shall not fall on the ground without your Father. But the very
hairs of your head are all numbered. Fear ye not therefore, ye are of
more value than many sparrows." Matt. 10:29-31.
Yet to human sight it will appear that the people of
God must soon seal their testimony with their blood, as did the martyrs
before them. They themselves begin to fear that the Lord has left them
to fall by the hand of their enemies. It is a time of fearful agony.
Day and night they cry unto God for deliverance. The wicked exult, and
the jeering cry is heard, "Where now is your faith? Why does not God
deliver you out of our hands if you are indeed his people?" But the
waiting ones remember Jesus dying upon Calvary's cross, and the chief
priests and rulers shouting in mockery, "He saved others; himself he
cannot save. If he be the King of Israel, let him now come down from
the cross, and we will believe him." Matt. 27:42. Like Jacob, all are
wrestling with God. Their countenances express their internal (447) struggle. Paleness sits upon every face. Yet they cease not their earnest intercession.
Could men see with heavenly vision, they would behold
companies of angels that excel in strength stationed about those who
have kept the word of Christ's patience. With sympathizing tenderness,
angels have witnessed their distress, and have heard their prayers.
They are waiting the word of their Commander to snatch them from their
peril. But they must wait yet a little longer. The people of God must
drink of the cup, and be baptized with the baptism. The very delay, so
painful to them, is the best answer to their petitions. As they
endeavor to wait trustingly for the Lord to work, they are led to
exercise faith, hope, and patience, which have been too little
exercised during their religious experience. Yet for the elects's sake,
the time of trouble will be shortened. The end will come more quickly
than men expect. The wheat will be gathered and bound in sheaves for
the garner of God; the tares will be bound as fagots for the fires of
destruction.
The heavenly sentinels, faithful to their trust,
continue their watch. In some cases, before the time specified in the
decree, enemies will rush upon the waiting ones to put them to death.
But none can pass the mighty guardians stationed about every faithful
soul. Some are assailed in their flight from the cities and villages;
but the swords raised against them break and fall as powerless as a
straw. Others are defended by angels in the form of men of war.
In all ages God has wrought through holy angels for
the succor and deliverance of his people. Celestial beings have taken
an active part in the affairs of (448) men. They have appeared
clothed in garments that shone as the lightning; they have come as men,
in the garb of wayfarers. Angels have appeared in human form to men of
God. They have rested, as if weary, under the oaks at noon. They have
accepted the hospitalities of human homes. They have acted as guides to
benighted travelers. They have, with their own hands, kindled the fires
of the altar. They have opened prison doors, and set free the servants
of the Lord. Clothed with the panoply of Heaven, they came to roll away
the stone from the Saviour's tomb.
In the form of men, angels are often in the
assemblies of the righteous, and they visit the assemblies of the
wicked, as they went to Sodom, to make a record of their deeds, to
determine whether they have passed the boundary of God's forbearance.
The Lord delights in mercy; and for the sake of a few who really serve
him, he restrains calamities, and prolongs the tranquillity of
multitudes. Little do sinners against God realize that they are
indebted for their own lives to the faithful few whom they delight to
ridicule and oppress.
Though the rulers of this world know it not, yet
often in their councils angels have been spokesmen. Human eyes have
looked upon them; human ears have listened to their appeals; human lips
have opposed their suggestions and ridiculed their counsels; human
hands have met them with insult and abuse. In the council hall and the
court of justice, these heavenly messengers have shown an intimate
acquaintance with human history; they have proved themselves better
able to plead the cause of the (449) oppressed than their
ablest and most eloquent defenders. They have defeated purposes and
arrested evils that would have greatly retarded the work of God, and
would have caused great suffering to his people. In the hour of peril
and distress let it never be forgotten that "the angel of the Lord
encampeth round about them that fear him, and delivereth them." Ps.
34:7.
With earnest longing, God's people await the tokens
of their coming King. As the watchmen are accosted, "What of the
night?" the answer is given unfalteringly, "'The morning cometh, and
also the night.' Light is gleaming upon the clouds above the mountain
tops. Soon will there be a revealing of His glory. The Sun of
Righteousness is about to shine forth. The morning and the night come
hand in hand,--the opening of endless day to the righteous, the
settling down of eternal night to the wicked."
As the wrestling ones urge their petitions before
God, the veil separating them from the unseen seems almost withdrawn.
The heavens glow with the dawning of eternal day, and, like the melody
of angel songs, the words fall upon the ear, "Stand fast to your
allegiance. Help is coming." Christ, the almighty victor, holds out to
his weary soldiers a crown of immortal glory; and his voice comes from
the gates ajar: "Lo, I am with you. Be not afraid, I am acquainted with
all your sorrows; I have borne your griefs. You are not warring against
untried enemies. I have fought the battle in your behalf, and in my
name you are more than conquerors."
The precious Saviour will send help just when we need it. The way to Heaven is consecrated by his (450)
footprints. Every thorn that wounds our feet has wounded his. Every
cross that we are called to bear, he has borne before us. The Lord
permits conflicts, to prepare the soul for peace. If we had no storms,
no shadows, we could not appreciate the sunshine. The time of trouble
is a fearful ordeal for God's people; but it is the time for every true
believer to look up, and by faith he may see the bow of promise
encircling him.
"The redeemed of the Lord shall return, and come with
singing unto Zion; and everlasting joy shall be upon their head; they
shall obtain gladness and joy; and sorrow and mourning shall flee away.
I, even I, am he that comforteth you; who art thou, that thou shouldst
be afraid of a man that shall die, and of the son of man which shall be
made as grass; and forgettest the Lord thy Maker;...and hast feared
continually every day because of the fury of the oppressor, as if he
were ready to destroy? and where is the fury of the oppressor? The
captive exile hasteneth that he maybe loosed. and that he should not
die in the pit, nor that his bread should fail. But I am the Lord thy
God, that divided the sea, whose waves roared. The Lord of hosts is his
name. And I have put my words in thy mouth, and I have covered thee in
the shadow of mine hand."
"Therefore hear now this, thou afflicted and drunken,
but not with wine: Thus saith thy Lord the Lord, and thy God that
pleadeth the cause of his people, Behold, I have taken out of thine
hand the cup of trembling, even the dregs of the cup of my fury; thou
shalt no more drink it again. But I will put it into the hand of them
that afflict thee; which (451) have said to thy soul, Bow down,
that we may go over: and thou hast laid thy body as the ground, and as
the street, to them that went over." Isa. 51:11-16,21-23.
The eye of God, looking down the ages, was fixed upon
the crisis which his people are to meet, when earthly powers shall be
arrayed against them. Like the captive exile, they will be in fear of
death by starvation or by violence. But the Holy One who divided the
Red Sea before Israel, will manifest his mighty power and turn their
captivity. "They shall be mine, saith the Lord of hosts, in that day
when I make up my jewels; and I will spare them, as a man spareth his
own son that serveth him." Mal. 3:17. If the blood of Christ's faithful
witnesses were shed at this time, it would not, like the blood of the
martyrs, be as seed sown to yield a harvest for God. Their fidelity
would not be a testimony to convince others of the truth; for the
obdurate heart has beaten back the waves of mercy until they return no
more. If the righteous were now left to fall a prey to their enemies,
it would be a triumph for the prince of darkness. But Christ has
spoken: "Come, my people, enter thou into thy chambers, and shut thy
doors about thee; hide thyself as it were for a little moment, until
the indignation be overpast. For, behold, the Lord cometh out of his
place to punish the inhabitants of the earth for their iniquity." Isa.
26:20,21. Glorious will be the deliverance of those who have patiently
waited for him, and whose names are written in the book of life.
CHAPTER 35
GOD'S PEOPLE DELIVERED
(452) As
the time appointed in the decree against God's people comes, the
inhabitants of the earth unite to destroy the disturbers of their
peace. In one night they determine to strike the decisive blow that
shall forever silence the voice of the reprover. The waiting ones, in
their solitary retreats, are still pleading for divine protection. In
every quarter, companies of armed men, urged on by hosts of evil
angels, are preparing for the work of death. With shouts of triumph,
with jeers and imprecations, they are about to rush upon their prey.
But lo, a dense blackness, deeper than the darkness
of the night, falls upon the earth. Then a rainbow, shining with the
glory from the throne of God, spans the heavens, and seems to encircle
each praying company. The angry multitudes are suddenly arrested. Their
mocking cries die away. The objects of their murderous rage are
forgotten. With fearful forebodings they gaze upon the symbol of God's
covenant, and long to be shielded from its overpowering brightness.
By the people of God a voice, clear and melodious, is
heard, saying. "Look up," and, lifting their eyes to the heavens, they
behold the bow of promise. (453) The black, angry clouds that
covered the firmament are parted, and like Stephen they look up
steadfastly into Heaven, and see the glory of God, and the Son of man
seated upon his throne. In his divine form they discern the marks of
his humiliation; and from his lips they hear the request, presented
before his Father and the holy angels, "I will that they also, whom
thou hast given me, be with me where I am." Again a voice, musical and
triumphant, is heard, saying, "They come! they come! holy, harmless,
and undefiled. They have kept the word of my patience; they shall walk
among the angels;" and the pale, quivering lips of those who have held
fast their faith, utter a shout of victory.
It is at midnight that God manifests his power for
the deliverance of his people. The sun appears shining in its strength.
Startling signs, and wonders follow in quick succession. The wicked
look with terror and amazement upon the scene, while the righteous
behold with solemn joy the tokens of their deliverance. Everything in
nature seems turned out of its course. The streams cease to flow. Dark,
heavy clouds come up, and clash against each other. In the midst of the
angry heavens in one clear space of indescribable glory, whence comes
the voice of God like the sound of many waters, saying, "It is done."
That voice shakes the heavens and the earth. There is
a mighty earthquake. The firmament appears to open and shut. The glory
from the throne of God seems flashing through. The mountains shake like
a reed in the wind, and ragged rocks are scattered on every side. There
is a roar as of a (454) coming tempest. The sea is lashed into
fury. There is heard the shriek of the hurricane, like the voice of
demons upon a mission of destruction. The whole earth heaves and swells
like the waves of the sea. Its surface is breaking up. Its very
foundations seem to be giving way. Mountain chains are sinking.
Inhabited islands disappear with their living freight. The seaports
that have become like Sodom for wickedness are swallowed up by the
angry waters. Great hailstones, every one "about the weight of a
talent," Rev. 16:21. are doing their work of destruction. The proudest
cities of the earth are laid low. The costly palaces, upon which the
world's great men have lavished their wealth in order to glorify
themselves, are crumbling to ruin before their eyes. Prison walls are
rent asunder, and God's people, who have been held in bondage for their
faith, are set free.
Graves are opened, and "many of them that sleep in
the dust of the earth" "awake, some to everlasting life and some to
shame and everlasting contempt." Dan. 12:2. All who have died in faith
under the third angel's message come forth from the tomb glorified, to
hear God's covenant of peace with those who have kept his law. "They
also which pierced Him," those that mocked and derided Christ's dying
agonies, and the most violent opposers of his truth and his people, are
raised to behold him in his glory, and to see the honor placed upon the
loyal and obedient.
Thick clouds still cover the sky; yet the sun now and
then breaks through, appearing like the avenging eye of Jehovah. Fierce
lightnings leap from the(455) heavens, enveloping the earth in a
sheet of flame. Above the terrific roar of thunder, voices, mysterious
and awful, declare the doom of the wicked. The words spoken are not
comprehended by all; but they are distinctly understood by the false
watchmen. Those who a little before were so reckless, so boastful and
defiant, so exultant in their cruelty to God's commandment-keeping
people, are now overwhelmed with consternation, and shuddering in fear.
Their wails are heard above the sound of the elements. Demons
acknowledge the divinity of Christ, and tremble before his power, while
men are supplicating for mercy, and groveling in abject terror.
Said the prophets of old as they beheld in holy
vision the day of God: "Blow ye the trumpet in Zion, and sound an alarm
in my holy mountain: let all the inhabitants of the land tremble; for
the day of the Lord cometh, for it is nigh at hand." "And the Lord
shall utter his voice before his army; for his camp is very great; for
he is strong that executeth his word; for the day of the Lord is great
and very terrible; and who can abide it?" Joel 2:1,11. "Howl ye; for
the day of the Lord is at hand; it shall come as a destruction from the
Almighty." Isa. 13:6. "Enter into the rock, and hide thee in the dust,
for fear of the Lord, and for the glory of his majesty. The lofty looks
of man shall be humbled, and the haughtiness of men shall be bowed
down, and the Lord alone shall be exalted in that day. For the day of
the Lord of hosts shall be upon every one that is proud and lofty, and
upon every one that is lifted up; and he shall be brought low." Isa.
2:10-12. "In that day a man shall (456) cast his idols of
silver, and his idols of gold, which they made each one for himself to
worship, to the moles and to the bats; to go into the clefts of the
rocks, and into the tops of the ragged rocks, for fear of the Lord, and
for the glory of his majesty, when he ariseth to shake terribly the
earth." Isa. 2:20,21.
Through a rift in the clouds, there beams a star
whose brilliancy is increased fourfold in contrast with the darkness.
It speaks hope and joy to the faithful, but severity and wrath to the
transgressors of God's law. Those who have sacrificed all for Christ
are now secure, hidden as in the secret of the Lord's pavilion. They
have been tested, and before the world and the despisers of truth they
have evinced their fidelity to Him who died for them. A marvelous
change has come over those who have held fast their integrity in the
very face of death. They have been suddenly delivered from the dark and
terrible tyranny of men transformed to demons. Their faces, so lately
pale, anxious, and haggard, are now aglow with wonder, faith, and love.
Their voices rise in triumphant song: "God is our refuge and strength;,
a very present help in trouble. Therefore will not we fear, though the
earth be removed, and though the mountains be carried into the midst of
the sea; though the waters thereof roar and be troubled, though the
mountains shake with the swelling thereof." Ps. 46:1-3.
While these words of holy trust ascend to God, the
clouds sweep back, and the starry heavens are seen, unspeakably
glorious in contrast with the black and angry firmament on either side.
The glory of (457) Heaven is beaming from the gates ajar. Then
there appears against the sky a hand holding two tables of stone folded
together. The hand opens the tables, and there are revealed the
precepts of the decalogue, traced as with a pen of fire. The words are
so plain that all can read them. Memory is aroused, the darkness of
superstition and heresy is swept from every mind, and God's ten words,
brief, comprehensive, and authoritative, are presented to the view of
all the inhabitants of earth. Wonderful code! wonderful occasion!
It is impossible to describe the horror and despair
of those who have trampled upon God's holy requirements. The Lord gave
them his law; they might have compared their characters with it, and
learn their defects while yet there was opportunity for repentance and
reform; but in order to secure the favor of the world, they set aside
its precepts and taught others to transgress. They have endeavored to
compel God's people to profane his Sabbath. Now they are condemned by
that law which they have despised. With awful distinctness they see
that they are without excuse. They chose whom they would serve and
worship. "Then shall ye return, and discern between the righteous and
the wicked, between him that serveth God and him that serveth him not."
Mal. 3:18.
The enemies of God's law, from the ministers down to
the least among them, have a new conception of truth and duty. Too late
they see that the Sabbath of the fourth commandment is the seal of the
living God. Too late they see the true nature of (458) their
spurious Sabbath, and the sandy foundation upon which they have been
building. They find that they have been fighting against God. Religious
teachers have led souls to perdition while professing to guide them to
the gates of Paradise. Not until the day of final accounts will it be
known how great is the responsibility of men in holy office, and how
terrible are the results of their unfaithfulness. Only in eternity can
we rightly estimate the loss of a single soul. Fearful will be the doom
of him to whom God shall say, Depart, thou wicked servant.
The voice of God is heard from Heaven declaring the
day and hour of Jesus' coming, and delivering the everlasting covenant
to his people. Like peals of loudest thunder, his words roll through
the earth. The Israel of God stand listening, with their eyes fixed
upward. Their countenances are lighted up with his glory, and shine as
did the face of Moses when he came down from Sinai. The wicked cannot
look upon them. And when the blessing is pronounced on those who have
honored God by keeping his Sabbath holy, there is a mighty shout of
victory.
Soon there appears in the east a small black cloud,
about half the size of a man's hand. It is the cloud which surrounds
the Saviour, and which seems in the distance to be shrouded in
darkness. The people of God know this to be the sign of the Son of man.
In solemn silence they gaze upon it as it draws nearer the earth,
becoming lighter and more glorious, until it is a great white cloud,
its base a glory like consuming fire, and above it the rainbow of the
covenant. Jesus rides forth as a mighty conqueror, and the armies of
Heaven follow him. With songs of (459) triumph, a vast retinue
of holy angels escort him on his way. The firmament seems filled with
shining forms, ten thousand times ten thousand, and thousands of
thousands. No pen can picture, no human mind conceive, the glory of the
scene. As the living cloud comes still nearer, Jesus can be clearly
seen. He does not wear a crown of thorns, but a crown of glory rests
upon his holy brow. His countenance shines as the noonday sun. Upon his
vesture and thigh is a name written, "King of kings, and Lord of
lords."
Before him every face turns pale, and upon those whom
God has rejected, falls the blackness of despair. The righteous cry
with trembling, "Who shall be able to stand?" The song of the angels
ceases, and there is a period of awful silence. Then the voice of Jesus
is heard, saying, "My grace is sufficient for you." The faces of the
righteous are lighted up, and joy fills every heart. And the angels
strike a note higher, and sing again, as they draw still nearer to the
earth.
The King of kings descends upon the cloud, wrapped in
flaming fire. The earth trembles before him, the heavens are rolled
together as a scroll, and every mountain and every island is moved out
of its place. Says the Psalmist: "Our God shall come, and shall not
keep silence; a fire shall devour before him, and it shall be very
tempestuous round about him. He shall call to the heavens from above,
and to the earth, that he may judge his people. Gather my saints
together unto me; those that have made a covenant with me by sacrifice.
And the heavens (460) shall declare his righteousness; for God is judge himself." Ps. 50:3-6.
"And the kings of the earth, and the great men, and
the rich men, and the chief captains, and the mighty men, and every
bondman, and every freeman, hid themselves in the dens and in the rocks
of the mountains, and said to the mountains and rocks, Fall on us, and
hide us from the face of Him that sitteth on the throne, and from the
wrath of the Lamb; for the great day of his wrath is come, and who
shall be able to stand?" Rev. 6:15-17.
The derisive jests have ceased. Lying lips are hushed
into silence. The clash of arms, the tumult of battle, "with confused
noise, and garments rolled in blood," Isa. 9:5. is stilled. Naught now
is heard but the voice of prayer and the sound of weeping and
lamentation. The cry bursts forth from lips so lately scoffing, "The
great day of His wrath is come; and who shall be able to stand?" The
wicked pray to be covered by the rocks of the mountains, rather than
meet the face of Him whom they have despised and rejected.
Those who mocked Christ in his humiliation are in
that throng. With thrilling power come to their minds the Sufferer's
words, when, adjured by the high priest, he solemnly declared,
"Hereafter shall ye see the Son of man sitting on the right hand of
power, and coming in the clouds of heaven." Matt. 26:64. Now they
behold Christ in his glory, and they are yet to see him sitting on the
right hand of power.
That voice which penetrates the ear of the dead, (461)
they know. How often have its plaintive, tender tones called them to
repentance. How often has it been heard in the touching entreaties of a
friend, a brother, a Redeemer. To the rejecters of his grace, no other
could be so full of condemnation so burdened with denunciation, as that
voice which has so long pleaded, "Turn ye, turn ye; for why will ye
die?" Oh that it were to them the voice of a stranger! Says Jesus, "I
have called, and ye refused; I have stretched out my hand, and no man
regarded. But ye have set at naught all my counsel, and would none of
my reproof." Prov. 1:24,25. That voice awakens memories which they
would fain blot out,--warnings despised, invitations refused,
privileges slighted.
Those who derided his claim to be the son of God are
speechless now. There is the haughty Herod who jeered at his royal
title, and bade the mocking soldiers crown him king. There are the very
men who with impious hands placed upon his form the purple robe, upon
his sacred brow the thorny crown, and in his unresisting hand the mimic
scepter, and bowed before him in blasphemous mockery. The men who smote
and spit upon the Prince of life, now turn from his piercing gaze, and
seek to flee from the overpowering glory of his presence. Those who
drove the nails through his hands and feet, the soldier who pierced his
side, behold these marks with terror and remorse.
With awful distinctness do priests and rulers recall
the events of Calvary. With shuddering horror they remember how,
wagging their heads in Satanic (462) exultation, they
exclaimed, "He saved others; himself he cannot save. If he be the King
of Israel, let him now come down from the cross, and we will believe
him. He trusted in God; let him deliver him now, if he will have him."
Matt. 27:42,43.
Vividly they recall the Saviour's parable of the
husbandmen who refused to render to their lord the fruit of the
vineyard, who abused his servants and slew his son. They remember, too,
the sentence which they themselves pronounced: The lord of the vineyard
will miserably destroy those wicked men. In the sin and punishment of
those unfaithful men, the priests and elders see their own course and
their own just doom. And now there rises a cry of mortal agony. Louder
than the shout, "Crucify him! crucify him!" which ran through the
streets of Jerusalem, swells the awful, despairing wail, "He is the son
of God! He is the true Messiah!" They seek to flee from the presence of
the King of kings. In the deep caverns of the earth, rent asunder by
the warring of the elements, they vainly attempt to hide. In the lives
of all who reject truth, there are moments when conscience awakens,
when memory presents the torturing recollection of a life of hypocrisy,
and the soul is harassed with vain regrets. But what are these compared
with the remorse of that day when "fear cometh as desolation," when
"destruction cometh as a whirlwind!" Prov. 1:27. Those who would have
destroyed Christ and his faithful people, now witness the glory which
rests upon them. In the midst of their terror they hear the voices of
the saints in joyful strains exclaiming, "Lo, this is our God, we have
waited for him, and he will save us." Isa. 25:9.
(463) Amid
the reeling of the earth, the flashing of lightning, and the roaring of
thunder, the voice of the son of God calls forth the sleeping saints.
He looks upon the graves of the righteous, then raising his hands to
heaven he cries, "Awake, awake, awake, ye that sleep in the dust, and
arise!" Throughout the length and breadth of the earth, the dead shall
hear that voice, and they that hear shall live. And the whole earth
shall ring with the tread of the exceeding great army of every nation,
kindred, tongue, and people. From the prison-house of death they come,
clothed with immortal glory, crying, "O death, where is thy sting? O
grave, where is thy victory?" 1 Cor. 15:55. And the living righteous
and the risen saints unite their voices in a long, glad shout of
victory.
All come forth from their graves the same in stature
as when they entered the tomb. Adam, who stands among the risen throng,
is of lofty height and majestic form, in stature but little below the
son of God. He presents a marked contrast to the people of later
generations; in this one respect is shown the great degeneracy of the
race. But all arise from their last deep slumber with the freshness and
vigor of eternal youth. In the beginning, man was created in the
likeness of God, not only in character, but in form and feature. Sin
defaced and almost obliterated the divine image; but Christ came to
restore that which had been lost. He will change our vile bodies, and
fashion them like unto his glorious body. The mortal, corruptible form,
devoid of comeliness, once polluted with sin, becomes perfect,
beautiful, and (464) immortal. All blemishes and deformities
are left in the grave. The redeemed bear the image of their Lord. Oh,
wonderful redemption! long talked of, long hoped for, contemplated with
eager anticipation, but never fully understood.
The living righteous are changed in a moment, in the
twinkling of an eye. At the voice of God they were glorified; now they
are made immortal, and with the risen saints are caught up to meet
their Lord in the air. Friends long separated by death are united,
never more to part. Little children are borne by holy angels to their
mothers' arms, and together, with songs of gladness, they ascend to the
city of God.
On each side of the cloudy chariot are wings, and
beneath it are living wheels; and as the chariot rolls upward, the
wheels cry, "Holy," and the wings, as they move, cry, "Holy," and the
retinue of angels cry, "Holy, holy, holy, Lord God almighty." And the
people of God shout "Alleluia!" as the chariot moves onward toward the
New Jerusalem.
Before entering the city, the saints are arranged in
a hollow square, with Jesus in the midst. In height he surpasses both
the saints and the angels. His majestic form and lovely countenance can
be seen by all in the square. Upon the heads of the overcomers the
Saviour, with his own right hand, places the crowns of glory. For every
saint there is a crown, bearing his new name, and the inscription,
"Holiness to the Lord." In every hand is placed the victor's palm and
the shining harp. The commanding angels strike the note, and every
voice is raised in grateful praise, every hand sweeps the harp-strings (465) with skillful touch, awaking sweet music in rich, melodious strains.
Before the ransomed throng is the holy city. Jesus
opens wide the pearly gates, and the nations that have kept the truth
enter in. There they behold the Paradise of God, the home of Adam in
his innocency. Then that voice, richer than any music that ever fell on
mortal ear, is heard, saying, "Your conflict is ended." The Saviour's
countenance beams with unutterable love as he welcomes the redeemed to
the joy of their Lord.
Suddenly there rings out upon the air an exultant cry
of adoration. The two Adams are about to meet. The Son of God is
standing with outstretched arms to receive the father of our race,--the
being whom he created, who sinned against his Maker, and for whose sin
the marks of the crucifixion are borne upon the Saviour's form. As Adam
discerns the prints of the cruel nails, he does not fall upon the bosom
of his Lord, but in humiliation casts himself at his feet, crying,
"Worth, worthy is the Lamb that was slain!" Tenderly the Saviour lifts
him up, and directs his attention to the Eden home from which he has so
long been exiled.
After his expulsion from Eden, Adam's life on earth
was filled with sorrow. Every dying leaf, every victim of sacrifice,
every blight upon the fair face of nature, every stain upon man's
purity, was a fresh reminder of his sin. Terrible was the agony of
remorse as he beheld iniquity abounding, and, in answer to his
reproofs, met the reproaches cast upon himself as the cause of sin.
With patient humility he bore, for nearly a thousand years, the penalty
of (466) transgression. Faithfully did he repent of his sin,
and trust in the merits of the promised Saviour, and he died in the
hope of a resurrection. The Son of God redeemed man's failure and fall,
and now, through the work of the atonement, Adam is re-instated in his
first dominion. Transported with joy, he beholds the trees that were
once his delight,--the very trees from which he plucked fruit when he
rejoiced in the perfection of innocence and holiness. He sees the vines
that his own hands have trained, the very flowers that he once loved to
care for. His mind grasps the reality of the scene; he comprehends that
this is indeed Eden restored, far more beautiful now than when he was
banished from it. The Saviour leads him to the tree of life, and plucks
the glorious fruit, and bids him eat. He looks about him, and beholds a
multitude of his family redeemed, standing in the Paradise of God. Then
he casts his glittering crown at the feet of Jesus, and, falling upon
his breast, embraces the Redeemer. He touches the golden harp, and the
vaults of Heaven echo the triumphant song, "Worthy, worthy, worthy is
the Lamb that was slain, and lives again!" The family of Adam take up
the strain, and cast their crowns at the Saviour's feet as they bow
before him in adoration.
This reunion is witnessed by the angels who wept at
the fall of Adam, and rejoiced when Jesus, after his resurrection,
ascended to Heaven, having opened the grave for all who should believe
on his name. Now they behold the work of redemption accomplished, and
they unite their voices in the song of praise.
(467)
The Saviour's chosen have been educated and disciplined in the school
of trial. They walked in narrow paths on earth; they were purified in
the furnace of affliction. For Jesus' sake they endured opposition,
hatred, calumny. They followed him through conflicts sore; they endured
self-denial and experienced bitter disappointments. By their own
painful experience they learned the evil of sin, its power, its guilt,
its woe; and they look upon it with abhorrence. A sense of the infinite
sacrifice made for its cure, humbles them in their own sight, and fills
their hearts with gratitude and praise which those who have never
fallen cannot appreciate. They love much, because they have been
forgiven much. Having been partakers of Christ's sufferings, they are
fitted to be partakers with him of his glory.
The heirs of God have come from garrets, from hovels,
from dungeons, from scaffolds, from mountains, from deserts, from the
caves of the earth, from the caverns of the sea. But they are no longer
feeble, afflicted, scattered, and oppressed. Henceforth they are to be
ever with the Lord. They stand before the throne clad in richer robes
than the most honored of the earth have ever worn. They are crowned
with diadems more glorious than were ever placed upon the brow of
earthly monarchs. The days of pain and weeping are forever ended. The
King of glory has wiped the tears from all faces; every cause of grief
has been removed. Amid the waving of palm-branches they pour forth a
song of praise, clear, sweet, and harmonious; every voice takes up the
strain, until the anthem swells through the vaults of Heaven,
"Salvation to our God which (468) sitteth upon the throne, and
unto the Lamb." And all the inhabitants of Heaven respond in the
ascription, "Amen; blessing, and glory, and wisdom, and thanksgiving,
and honor, and power, and might, be unto our God forever and ever."
Rev. 7:10,12.
The theme of redemption has but just begun to be
understood. With our finite comprehension we may consider most
earnestly the shame and the glory, the life and the death, the justice
and the mercy, that meet in the cross; yet with the utmost stretch of
our mental powers we fail to grasp its full significance. The length
and the breadth, the depth and the height of redeeming love are but
dimly comprehended. The plan of redemption will not be fully
understood, even when the ransomed see as they are seen and know as
they are known; but through the eternal ages, new truth will
continually unfold to the wondering and delighted mind. Though the
griefs and pains and temptations of earth are ended, and the cause
removed, the people of God will ever have a distinct, intelligent
knowledge of what their salvation has cost.
The cross of Christ will be the science and the song
of the redeemed through all eternity. In Christ glorified they will
behold Christ crucified. Never will it be forgotten that He who could
command all the powers of nature, who by a word could summon mighty
angels to do his will and execute vengeance upon his enemies,--the
beloved of God, the Majesty of Heaven,--submitted to insult, torture,
and death, that sinners might be redeemed. That the Maker of all
worlds, the Arbiter of all destinies, (469) should lay aside
his glory, and humiliate himself from love to man, will ever excite the
wonder and admiration of the universe. As the nations of the saved look
upon their Redeemer, and behold the eternal glory of the Father shining
in his countenance; as they behold his throne, which is from
everlasting to everlasting, and know that his kingdom is to have no
end, they break forth in rapturous song, "Worthy, worthy is the Lamb
that was slain, and hath redeemed us to God by his own most precious
blood!"
The mystery of the cross explains all other
mysteries. In the light that streams from Calvary, the attributes of
God which had filled us with fear and awe appear beautiful and
attractive. Mercy, tenderness, and parental love are seen to blend with
holiness, justice, and power. While we behold the majesty of his
throne, high and lifted up, we see his character in its gracious
manifestations, and comprehend, as never before the significance of
that endearing title, our Father.
It will be seen that He who is infinite in wisdom
could devise no plan for our salvation except the sacrifice of his son.
The compensation for this sacrifice is the joy of peopling the earth
with ransomed beings, holy, happy, and immortal. The result of the
Saviour's conflict with the powers of darkness is joy to the redeemed,
redounding to the glory of God, throughout eternity. And such is the
value of the soul that the Father is satisfied with the price paid; and
Christ himself, beholding the fruits of his great sacrifice, is
satisfied.
CHAPTER 36
DESOLATION OF THE EARTH
(470) "Therefore
shall her plagues come in one day, death, and mourning, and famine; and
she shall be utterly burned with fire; for strong is the Lord God who
judgeth her. And the kings of the earth, who have committed fornication
and lived deliciously with her, shall bewail her, and lament for her,
when they shall see the smoke of her burning, standing afar off for the
fear of her torment, saying, Alas, alas, that great city of Babylon,
that mighty city! for in one hour is thy judgment come. And the
merchants of the earth shall weep and mourn over her; for no man buyeth
their merchandise any more." Rev. 18:8-11. Such are the judgments that
fall upon Babylon in the day of the visitation of God's wrath. She has
filled up the measure of her iniquity; her time has come; she is ripe
for destruction.
When the voice of God turns the captivity of his
people, there is a terrible awakening of those who have lost all in the
great game of life. While probation continued, they were blinded by
Satan's deceptions, and they justified their course of sin. The rich
prided themselves upon their superiority to those who were less
favored; but they had obtained their (471) riches by violation
of the law of God. They had neglected to feed the hungry, to clothe the
naked, to deal justly, and to love mercy. They had sought to exalt
themselves, and to obtain the homage of their fellow-creatures. Now
they are stripped of all that made them great, and are left destitute
and defenseless. They look upon the destruction of the idols which they
preferred before their maker. They sold their souls for earthly riches
and enjoyments, and did not seek to become rich toward God. The result
is, their lives are a failure; their pleasures are now turned to gall,
their treasures to corruption. The gain of a lifetime is swept away in
a moment. The rich bemoan the destruction of their grand houses, the
scattering of their gold and silver. But their lamentations are
silenced by the fear that they themselves are to perish with their
idols.
The wicked are filled with regret, not because of
their sinful neglect of God and their fellow-men, but because God has
conquered. They lament that the result is what it is; but they do not
repent of their wickedness. They would leave no means untried to
conquer if they could.
The world see the very class whom they have mocked
and derided, and desired to exterminate, pass unharmed through tempest
and earthquake and pestilence. He who is to the transgressors of his
law a devouring fire, is to his people a safe pavilion.
The minister who has sacrificed truth to gain the
favor of men, now discerns the character and influence of his
teachings. It is apparent that an omniscient eye was following him as
he stood in the desk, as he walked the streets, as he mingled with (472)
men in the various scenes of life. Every emotion of the soul, every
line written, every word uttered, every act that led men to rest in a
refuge of falsehood, has been scattering seed; and now, in the
wretched, lost souls around him, he beholds the harvest.
Ministers and people see that they have not sustained
the right relation to God. They see that they have rebelled against the
Author of all just and righteous law. The setting aside of the divine
precepts gave rise to thousands of springs of evil, discord, hatred,
iniquity, until the earth became one vast field of strife, one sink of
corruption. This is the view that now appears to those who rejected
truth and chose to cherish error. No language can express the longing
which the disobedient and disloyal feel for that which they have lost
forever,--eternal life. Men whom the world has worshiped for their
talents and eloquence now see these things in their true light. They
realize what they have forfeited by transgression, and they fall at the
feet of those whose fidelity they have despised and derided, and
confess that God has loved them.
The people see that they have been deluded. They
eagerly accuse one another of having led them to destruction; but all
unite in heaping their bitterest condemnation upon the ministers.
Unfaithful pastors have prophesied smooth things; they have led their
hearers to make void the law of God and to persecute those who would
keep it holy. Now, in their despair, these teachers confess before the
world their work of deception. The multitudes are filled with fury. "We
are lost!" they cry, "and you are the (473) cause of our ruin;"
and they turn upon the false watchmen. The very ones that once admired
them most, will pronounce the most dreadful curses upon them. The very
hands that once crowned them with laurels will be raised for their
destruction. The swords which were to slay God's people are now
employed to destroy their enemies. Everywhere there is strife and
bloodshed.
The mark of deliverance has been set upon those "that
sigh and that cry for all the abominations that be done." Now the angel
of death goes forth, represented in Ezekiel's vision by the men with
the slaughtering weapons, to whom the command is given: "Slay utterly
old and young, both maids, and little children, and women; but come not
near any man upon whom is the mark; and begin at my sanctuary." Says
the prophet, "They began at the ancient men which were before the
house." Eze. 9:6. The work of destruction begins among those who
profess to be the spiritual guardians of the people. The false
shepherds are the first to fall. There are none to pity or to spare.
Men, women, maidens, and little children perish together.
"The Lord cometh out of his place to punish the
inhabitants of the earth for their iniquity; the earth also shall
disclose her blood, and shall no more cover her slain." Isa. 26:21.
"And this shall be the plague wherewith the Lord will smite all the
people that fought against Jerusalem: Their flesh shall consume away
while they stand upon their feet, and their eyes shall consume away in
their holes, and their tongue shall consume away in their mouth. And it
shall come (474) to pass in that day that a great tumult from
the Lord shall be among them; and they shall lay hold every one on the
hand of his neighbor, and his hand shall rise up against the hand of
his neighbor." Zech. 14:12,13. In the mad strife of their own fierce
passions, and by the awful outpouring of God's unmingled wrath, fall
the wicked inhabitants of the earth,--priests, rulers, and people, rich
and poor, high and low. "And the slain of the Lord shall be at that day
from one end of the earth even unto the other end of the earth; they
shall not be lamented, neither gathered, nor buried." Jer. 25:33.
At the coming of Christ the wicked are blotted from
the face of the whole earth,--consumed with the spirit of his mouth,
and destroyed by the brightness of his glory. Christ takes his people
to the city of God, and the earth is emptied of its inhabitants.
"Behold, the Lord maketh the earth empty, and maketh it waste, and
turneth it upside down, and scattereth abroad the inhabitants thereof."
"The land shall be utterly emptied, and utterly spoiled; for the Lord
hath spoken this word." "Because they have transgressed the laws,
changed the ordinance, broken the everlasting covenant. Therefore hath
the curse devoured the earth, and they that dwell therein are desolate;
therefore the inhabitants of the earth are burned." Isa. 24:1,3,5,6.
The whole earth appears like a desolate wilderness.
The ruins of cities and villages destroyed by the earthquake, uprooted
trees, ragged rocks thrown out by the sea or torn out of the earth
itself, are scattered over its surface, while vast caverns mark the
spot where the mountains have been rent from their (475)
foundations. Here is to be the home of Satan with his evil angels for a
thousand years. Here he will be confined, to wander up and down over
the broken surface of the earth, and see the effects of his rebellion
against the law of God. For a thousand years he can enjoy the fruit of
the curse which he has caused. Limited alone to the earth, he will not
have the privilege of ranging to other planets, to tempt and annoy
those who have not fallen. During this time, Satan suffers extremely.
Since his fall his life of intense activity has banished reflection;
but he is now deprived of his power, and left to contemplate the part
which he has acted since first he rebelled against the government of
Heaven, and to look forward with trembling and terror to the dreadful
future, when he must suffer for all the evil that he has done, and be
punished for the sins that he has caused to be committed.
Shouts of triumph ascend from the angels and the
redeemed saints, that they are to be no more annoyed and tempted by
Satan, and that the inhabitant of other worlds are delivered from his
presence and temptations.
During the thousand years between the first and the
second resurrection, the Judgment of the wicked dead takes place. The
righteous reign as kings and priests unto God; and in union with Christ
they judge the wicked, comparing their acts with the statute book, the
Bible, and deciding every case according to the deeds done in the body.
Then the portion which the wicked must suffer is meted out, according
to their works; and it is written against their names in the book of
death. Satan also and evil angels are judged by Christ and his people.
CHAPTER 37
THE CONTROVERSY ENDED
(476) At
the close of the thousand years, Christ again returns to the earth. He
is accompanied by the host of the redeemed, and attended by a retinue
of angels. As he descends in terrific majesty, he bids the wicked dead
arise to receive their doom. They come forth, a mighty host, numberless
as the sands of the sea. What a contrast to those who were raised at
the first resurrection! The righteous were clothed with immortal youth
and beauty. The wicked bear the traces of disease and death.
Every eye in that vast multitude is turned to behold
the glory of the Son of God. With one voice the wicked hosts exclaim,
"Blessed is He that cometh in the name of the Lord!" It is not love to
Jesus that inspires this utterance. The force of truth urges the words
from unwilling lips. As the wicked went into their graves, so they come
forth, with the same enmity to Christ and the same spirit of rebellion.
They are to have no new probation, in which to remedy the defects of
their past lives. Nothing would be gained by this. A lifetime of
transgression has not softened their hearts. A second probation, were
it given them, would be (477) occupied as was the first, in evading the requirements of God and exciting rebellion against him.
Christ descends upon the Mount of Olives, and as his
feet touch the mountain, it parts asunder, and becomes a vast plain.
Then the New Jerusalem, in its dazzling splendor, comes down out of
Heaven. As it rests upon the place purified and made ready to receive
it, Christ, with his people and the angels, enters the holy City.
Now Satan prepares for a last mighty struggle for the
supremacy. While deprived of his power, and cut off from his work of
deception, the prince of evil was miserable and dejected; but as the
wicked dead are raised, and he sees the vast multitudes upon his side,
his hopes revive, and he determines not to yield the great controversy.
He will marshall all the armies of the lost under his banner, and
through them endeavor to execute his plans. The wicked are Satan's
captives. In rejecting Christ they have accepted the rule of the rebel
leader. They are ready to receive his suggestions and to do his
bidding. Yet, true to his early cunning, he does not acknowledge
himself to be Satan. He claims to be the Prince who is the rightful
owner of the world, and whose inheritance has been unlawfully wrested
from him. He represents himself to his deluded subjects as a redeemer,
assuring them that his power has brought them forth from their graves,
and that he is about to rescue them from the most cruel tyranny. The
presence of Christ having been removed, Satan works wonders to support
his claims. He makes the weak strong, and inspires all with his own
spirit and energy. He proposes to lead (478) them against the
camp of the saints, and to take possession of the city of God. With
fiendish exultation he points to the unnumbered millions who have been
raised from the dead, and declares that as their leader he is well able
to overthrow the city, and regain his throne and his kingdom.
In that vast throng are multitudes of the long-lived
race that existed before the flood; men of lofty stature and giant
intellect, who, yielding to the control of fallen angels, devoted all
their skill and knowledge to the exaltation of themselves; men whose
wonderful works of art led the world to idolize their genius, but whose
cruelty and evil inventions, defiling the earth and defacing the image
of God, caused him to blot them from the face of his creation. There
are kings and generals who conquered nations, valiant men who never
lost a battle, proud, ambitious warriors whose approach made kingdoms
tremble. In death these experience no change. As they come up from the
grave, they resume the current of their thoughts just where it ceased.
They are actuated by the same desire to conquer that ruled them when
they fell.
Satan consults with his angels, and then with these
kings and conquerors and mighty men. They look upon the strength and
numbers upon their side, and declare that the army within the city is
small in comparison with theirs, and that it can be overcome. They lay
their plans to take possession of the riches and glory of the New
Jerusalem. All immediately begin to prepare for battle. Skillful
artisans construct implements of war. Military leaders, famed for their
success, marshal the throngs of warlike men into companies and
divisions.
(479) At
last the order to advance is given, and the countless host moves
on,--an army such as was never summoned by earthly conquerors, such as
the combined forces of all ages since war began could never equal.
Satan, the mightiest of warriors, leads the van, and his angels join
their forces for this final struggle. Kings and warriors are in his
train, and the multitudes follow in vast companies, each army under its
appointed leader. With military precision, the serried ranks advance
over the earth's broken and uneven surface to the city of God. By the
command of Jesus, the gates of the New Jerusalem are closed, and the
armies of Satan surround the city, and make ready for the onset.
Now Christ again appears to the view of his enemies.
Far above the city, upon a foundation of burnished gold, is a throne,
high and lifted up. Upon this throne sits the Son of God, and around
him are the subjects of his kingdom. The power and majesty of Christ no
language can describe, no pen portray. The glory of the Eternal Father
is enshrouding his Son. The brightness of his presence fills the city
of God, and flows out beyond the gates, flooding the whole earth with
its radiance.
Nearest the throne are those who were once zealous in
the cause of Satan, but who, plucked as brands from the burning, have
followed their Saviour with deep, intense devotion. Next are those who
perfected Christian characters in the midst of falsehood and
infidelity, those who honored the law of God when the Christian world
declared it void, and the millions, of all ages, who were martyred for
their faith. And beyond is the "great multitude which no (480)
man could number, of all nations and kindreds and people and tongues,"
"before the throne and before the Lamb, clothed with white robes, and
palms in their hands." Their warfare is ended, their victory won. They
have run the race and reached the prize. The palm branch in their hands
is a symbol of their triumph, the white robe an emblem of the spotless
righteousness of Christ which now is theirs.
The redeemed raise a song of praise that echoes and
re-echoes through the vaults of Heaven, "Salvation to our God which
sitteth upon the throne, and unto the Lamb." And angel and seraph unite
their voices in adoration. As the redeemed have beheld the power and
malignity of Satan, they have seen, as never before, that no power but
that of Christ could have made them conquerors. In all that shining
throng there are none to ascribe salvation to themselves, as if they
had prevailed by their own power and goodness. Nothing is said of what
they have done or suffered; but the burden of every song, the keynote
of every anthem, is, Salvation to our God and unto the Lamb.
In the presence of the assembled inhabitants of earth
and Heaven takes place the final coronation of the Son of God. And now,
invested with supreme majesty and power, the King of kings pronounces
sentence upon the rebels against his government, and executes justice
upon those who have transgressed his law and oppressed his people. Says
the prophet of God: "I saw a great white throne, and Him that sat on
it, from whose face the earth and the heaven fled away; and there was
found no place for them. And I saw the dead, small and great, stand
before (481) God; and the books were opened; and another book
was opened, which is the book of life; and the dead were judged out of
those things which were written in the books, according to their
works." Rev. 20:11,12.
As soon as the books of record are opened, and the
eye of Jesus looks upon the wicked, they are conscious of every sin
which they have ever committed. They see just where their feet diverged
from the path of purity and holiness, just how far pride and rebellion
have carried them in the violation of the law of God. The seductive
temptations which they encouraged by indulgence in sin, the blessings
perverted, the messengers of God despised, the warnings rejected, the
waves of mercy beaten back by the stubborn, unrepentant heart,--all
appear as if written in letters of fire.
Above the throne is revealed the cross; and like a
panoramic view appear the scenes of Adam's temptation and fall, and the
successive steps in the great plan of redemption. The Saviour's lowly
birth; his early life of simplicity and obedience; his baptism in
Jordan; the fast and temptation in the wilderness; his public ministry,
unfolding to men Heaven's most precious blessings; the days crowded
with deeds of love and mercy, the nights of prayer and watching in the
solitude of the mountains; the plottings of envy, hate, and malice
which repaid his benefits; the awful, mysterious agony in Gethsemane,
beneath the crushing weight of the sins of the whole world; his
betrayal into the hands of the murderous mob; the fearful events of
that night of horror,--the unresisting prisoner, forsaken by his
best-loved disciples, (482) rudely hurried through the streets
of Jerusalem; the Son of God exultingly displayed before Annas,
arraigned in the high priest's palace, in the judgment hall of Pilate,
before the cowardly and cruel Herod, mocked, insulted, tortured, and
condemned to die,--all are vividly portrayed.
And now before the swaying multitude are revealed the
final scenes,--the patient Sufferer treading the path to Calvary; the
Prince of Heaven hanging upon the cross; the haughty priests and the
jeering rabble deriding his expiring agony; the supernatural darkness;
the heaving earth, the rent rocks, the open graves, marking the moment
when the world's Redeemer yielded up his life.
The awful spectacle appears just as it was. Satan,
his angels, and his subjects have no power to turn from the picture of
their own work. Each actor recalls the part which he performed. Herod,
who slew the innocent children of Bethlehem that he might destroy the
King of Israel; the base Herodias, upon whose guilty soul rests the
blood of John the Baptist; the weak, time-serving Pilate; the mocking
soldiers; the priests and rulers and the maddened throng who cried,
"His blood be on us, and our children!"--all behold the enormity of
their guilt. They vainly seek to hide from the divine majesty of His
countenance, outshining the glory of the sun, while the redeemed cast
their crowns at the Saviour's feet, exclaiming, "He died for me!"
Amid the ransomed throng are the apostles of Christ,
the heroic Paul, the ardent Peter, the loved and loving John, and their
true-hearted brethren, and with them the vast host of martyrs; while (483)
outside the walls, with every vile and abominable thing, are those by
whom they were persecuted, imprisoned, and slain. There is Nero, that
monster of cruelty and vice, beholding the joy and exaltation of those
whom he once tortured, and in whose extremest anguish he found Satanic
delight. His mother is there to witness the result of her own work; to
see how the evil stamp of character transmitted to her son, the
passions encouraged and developed by her influence and example, have
borne fruit in crimes that caused the world to shudder.
There are papist priests and prelates, who claimed to
be Christ's ambassadors, yet employed the rack, the dungeon, and the
stake to control the consciences of his people. There are the proud
pontiffs who exalted themselves above God, and presumed to change the
law of the Most High. Those pretended fathers of the church have an
account to render to God from which they would fain be excused. Too
late they are made to see that the Omniscient One is jealous of his
law, and that he will in no wise clear the guilty. They learn now that
Christ identifies his interest with that of his suffering people; and
they feel the force of his own words, "Inasmuch as ye have done it unto
one of the least of these my brethren, ye have done it unto me."
The whole wicked world stand arraigned at the bar of
God, on the charge of high treason against the government of Heaven.
They have none to plead their cause; they are without excuse; and the
sentence of eternal death is pronounced against them.
It is now evident to all that the wages of sin is (484)
not noble independence and eternal life, but slavery, ruin, and death.
The wicked see what they have forfeited by their life of rebellion. The
far more exceeding and eternal weight of glory was despised when
offered them; but how desirable it now appears, "All this," cries the
lost soul, "I might have had; but I chose to put these things far from
me. Oh, strange infatuation! I have exchanged peace, happiness, and
honor, for wretchedness, infamy, and despair." All see that their
exclusion from Heaven is just. In their lives they declared, We will
not have this Jesus to reign over us.
As if entranced, the wicked have looked upon the
coronation of the Son of God. They see in his hands the tables of the
divine law, the statutes which they have despised and transgressed.
They witness the outburst of wonder, rapture, and adoration from the
saved; and as the wave of melody sweeps over the multitudes without the
city, all with one voice exclaim, "Marvelous are thy works, Lord God
Almighty; just and true are thy ways, thou King of saints;" and falling
prostrate, they worship the Prince of life.
Satan seems paralyzed as he beholds the glory and
majesty of Christ. He who was once a covering cherub remembers whence
he has fallen. A shining seraph, "son of the morning;" how changed, how
degraded! From the council where once he was honored, he is forever
excluded. He sees another now standing near to the Father, veiling his
glory. He has seen the crown placed upon the head of Christ by an angel
of lofty stature and majestic presence, and he knows that this office
might have been his.
(485)
Memory recalls the home of his innocence and purity, the peace and
content that were his until he indulged in murmuring against God, and
envy of Christ. His accusations, his rebellion, his deceptions to gain
the sympathy and support of the angels, his stubborn persistence in
making no effort for self-recovery when God would have granted him
forgiveness,--all come vividly before him. He reviews his work among
men and its results,--the enmity of man toward his fellow-man, the
terrible destruction of life, the rise and fall of kingdoms, the
overturning of thrones, the long succession of tumults, conflicts, and
revolutions. He recalls his constant efforts to oppose the work of
Christ and to sink man lower and lower. He sees that his hellish plots
have been powerless to destroy those who have put their trust in Jesus.
As Satan looks upon his kingdom, the fruit of his toil, he sees only
failure and ruin. He has led the multitudes to believe that the city of
God would be an easy prey; but he knows that this is false. Again and
again in the progress of the great controversy has he been defeated and
compelled to yield. He knows too well the power and majesty of the
Eternal.
The aim of the great rebel has ever been to justify
himself, and to prove the divine government responsible for the
rebellion. To this end he has bent all the power of his giant
intellect. He has worked deliberately and systematically, and with
marvelous success, leading vast multitudes to accept his version of the
great controversy which has been so long in progress. For thousands of
years this chief of conspiracy has palmed off falsehood for truth. But
the (486) time has now come when the rebellion is to be finally
defeated, and the history and character of Satan disclosed. In his last
great effort to dethrone Christ, destroy his people, and take
possession of the city of God, the arch-deceiver has been fully
unmasked. Those who have united with him see the total failure of his
cause. Christ's followers and the loyal angels behold the full extent
of his machinations against the government of God. He is the object of
universal abhorrence.
Satan sees that his voluntary rebellion has unfitted
him for Heaven. He has trained his powers to war against God; the
purity, peace, and harmony of Heaven would be to him supreme torture.
His accusations against the mercy and justice of God are now silenced.
The reproach which he has endeavored to cast upon Jehovah rests wholly
upon himself. And now Satan bows down, and confesses the justice of his
sentence.
Every question of truth and error in the longstanding
controversy is made plain. God's justice stands fully vindicated.
Before the whole world is clearly presented the great sacrifice made by
the Father and the Son in man's behalf. The hour has come when Christ
occupies his rightful position, and is glorified above principalities
and powers and every name that is named.
It was for the joy that was set before him,--that he
might bring many sons unto glory,--that he endured the cross and
despised the shame. And inconceivably great as was the sorrow and the
shame, so great is the joy and the glory. He looks upon the redeemed,
renewed in his own image, every face (487) reflecting the
likeness of their King. In their perfect purity and surpassing joy he
beholds the result of the travail of his soul, and he is satisfied.
Then, in a voice that reaches the assembled multitudes of the righteous
and the wicked, he declares, "Behold the purchase of my blood! For
these I suffered; for these I died; that they might dwell in my
presence throughout eternal ages." And the song of praise ascends from
the white-robed ones about the throne, "Worthy is the Lamb that was
slain to receive power, and riches, and wisdom, and strength, and
honor, and glory, and blessing."
Notwithstanding Satan has been constrained to
acknowledge God's justice, and to bow to the supremacy of Christ, his
character remains unchanged. The spirit of rebellion, like a mighty
torrent, again bursts forth. Filled with frenzy, he determines not to
yield the great controversy. The time has come for a last desperate
struggle against the King of Heaven. He rushes into the midst of his
subjects, and endeavors to inspire them with his own fury, and arouse
them to instant battle. But of all the countless millions whom he has
allured into rebellion, there are none now to acknowledge his
supremacy. His power is at an end. The wicked are filled with the same
hatred of God that inspires Satan; but they see that their case is
hopeless, that they cannot prevail against Jehovah. Their rage is
kindled against Satan and those who have been his agents in deception.
With the fury of demons they turn upon them, and there follows a scene
of universal strife.
Then are fulfilled the words of the prophet: "The (488)
indignation of the Lord is upon all nations, and his fury upon all
their armies: he hath utterly destroyed them, he hath delivered them to
the slaughter." Isa. 34:2. "Upon the wicked he shall rain quick burning
coals, fire and brimstone, and an horrible tempest: this shall be the
portion of their cup." Ps. 11:6. Margin. Fire comes down from God out
of Heaven. The earth is broken up. The weapons concealed in its depths
are drawn forth. Devouring flames burst from every yawning chasm. The
very rocks are on fire. The day has come that shall burn as an oven.
Mal. 4:1. The elements melt with fervent heat, the earth also, and the
works that are therein are burned up. 2 Peter 3:10. The fire of Tophet
is "prepared for the king," the chief of rebellion; the pile thereof is
deep and large, and "the breath of the Lord, like a stream of
brimstone, doth kindle it." Isa. 30:33. The earth's surface seems one
molten mass, --a vast, seething lake of fire. It is the time of the
judgment and perdition of ungodly men,--"the day of the Lord's
vengeance, and the year of recompenses for the controversy of Zion."
Isa. 34:8.
The wicked receive their recompense in the earth.
They "shall be stubble; and the day that cometh shall burn them up,
saith the Lord of hosts." Some are destroyed as in a moment, while
others suffer many days. All are punished according to their deeds. The
sins of the righteous have been transferred to Satan, the originator of
evil, who must bear their penalty. Thus he is made to suffer not only
for his own rebellion, but for all the sins which he has caused God's
people to commit. His punishment is to be far (489) greater
than that of those whom he has deceived. After all have perished who
fell by his deceptions, he is still to live and suffer on. In the
cleansing flames the wicked are at last destroyed, root and
branch,--Satan the root, his followers the branches. The justice of God
is satisfied, and the saints and all the angelic host say with a loud
voice, Amen.
While the earth is wrapped in the fire of God's
vengeance, the righteous abide safely in the holy city. Upon those that
had part in the first resurrection, the second death has no power. Rev.
20:6. While God is to the wicked a consuming fire, he is to his people
both a sun and a shield. Ps. 84:11.
"And I saw a new heaven and a new earth; for the
first heaven and the first earth were passed away." Rev. 21:1. The fire
that consumes the wicked purifies the earth. Every trace of the curse
is swept away. No eternally burning hell will keep before the ransomed
the fearful consequences of sin. One reminder alone remains: our
Redeemer will ever bear the marks of his crucifixion. Upon his wounded
head, his hands and feet, are the only traces of the cruel work that
sin has wrought.
"O Tower of the flock, the stronghold of the daughter
of Zion, to thee shall it come, even the first dominion." Micah 4:8.
The kingdom forfeited by sin, Christ has regained, and the redeemed are
to possess it with him. "The righteous shall inherit the land, and
dwell therein forever." Ps. 37:29. A fear of making the saints'
inheritance seem too material has led many to spiritualize away the
very truths which lead us to look (490) upon the new earth as
our home. Christ assured his disciples that he went to prepare mansions
for them. Those who accept the teachings of God's word will not be
wholly ignorant concerning the heavenly abode. And yet the apostle Paul
declares: "Eye hath not seen, nor ear heard, neither have entered into
the heart of man, the things which God hath prepared for them that love
him." 1 Cor. 2:9. Human language is inadequate to describe the reward
of the righteous. It will be known only to those who behold it. No
finite mind can comprehend the glory of the Paradise of God.
In the Bible the inheritance of the saved is called a
country. Heb. 11:14-16. There the great Shepherd leads his flock to
fountains of living waters. The tree of life yields its fruit every
month, and the leaves of the tree are for the service of the nations.
There are ever-flowing streams, clear as crystal, and beside them
waving trees cast their shadows upon the paths prepared for the
ransomed of the Lord. There the wide-spreading plains swell into hills
of beauty, and the mountains of God rear their lofty summits. On those
peaceful plains, beside those living streams, God's people, so long
pilgrims and wanderers, shall find a home.
There is the New Jerusalem, "having the glory of
God," her light "like unto a stone most precious, even like a jasper
stone, clear as crystal." Rev. 21:11. Saith the Lord, "I will rejoice
in Jerusalem, and joy in my people." Isa. 65:19. "The tabernacle of God
is with men, and he will dwell with them, and they shall be his people,
(491) and God himself shall be with them, and be their God, And
God shall wipe away all tears from their eyes; and there shall be no
more death, neither sorrow nor crying, neither shall there be any more
pain; for the former things are passed away." Rev. 21:3,4.
In the city of God "there shall be no night." None
will need or desire repose. There will be no weariness in doing the
will of God and offering praise to his name. We shall ever feel the
freshness of the morning, and shall ever be far from its close. "And
they need no candle, neither light of the sun; for the Lord God giveth
them light." Rev. 22:5. The light of the sun will be superseded by a
radiance which is not painfully dazzling, yet which immeasurably
surpasses the brightness of our noontide. The glory of God and the Lamb
floods the holy city with unfading light. The redeemed walk in the
sunless glory of perpetual day.
"I saw no temple therein; for the Lord God Almighty
and the Lamb are the temple of it." Rev. 21:22. The people of God are
privileged to hold open communion with the Father and the Son. Now we
"see through a glass, darkly." 1 Cor. 13:12. We behold the image of God
reflected, as in a mirror, in the works of nature and in his dealings
with men; but then we shall see him face to face, without a dimming
vail between. We shall stand in his presence, and gaze upon the glory
of his countenance.
There, immortal minds will study with never-failing
delight the wonders of creative power, the mysteries of redeeming love.
There is no cruel, deceiving foe (492) to tempt to
forgetfulness of God. Every faculty will be developed, every capacity
increased. The acquirement of knowledge will not weary the mind or
exhaust the energies. There the grandest enterprises may be carried
forward, the loftiest aspirations reached, the highest ambitions
realized; and still there will arise new heights to surmount, new
wonders to admire, new truths to comprehend, fresh objects to call
forth the powers of mind and soul and body.
And as the years of eternity roll, they will bring
richer and more glorious revelations of God and of Christ. As knowledge
is progressive, so will love, reverence, and happiness increase. The
more men learn of God, the greater will be their admiration of his
character. As Jesus opens before them the riches of redemption, and the
amazing achievements in the great controversy with Satan, the hearts of
the ransomed beat with a stronger devotion, and they sweep the harps of
gold with a firmer hand; and ten thousand times ten thousand and
thousands of thousands of voices unite to swell the might chorus of
praise.
"And every creature which is in Heaven, and on the
earth, and under the earth, and such as are in the sea, and all that
are in them, heard I saying, Blessing, and honor, and glory, and power,
be unto Him that sitteth upon the throne and unto the Lamb forever and
ever."
Sin and sinners are no more; God's entire universe is
clean; and the great controversy is forever ended.
|
||||||